Introduction to the Third Edition of the Compendium of U.S. Copyright Office Practices (2024)

INTRODUCTION TO THE THIRD EDITION OF THE COMPENDIUM OF U.S COPYRIGHT OFFICE PRACTICES The Compendium of U.S Copyright Office Practices, Third Edition (the “Compendium” or “Third Edition”) is the administrative manual of the Register of Copyrights concerning Title 17 of the United States Code and Chapter 37 of the Code of Federal Regulations. It provides instruction to agency staff regarding their statutory duties and provides expert guidance to copyright applicants, practitioners, scholars, the courts, and members of the general public regarding institutional practices and related principles of law. See 37 CFR § 2012(b)(7) Effective Date of the Third Edition The Compendium, Third Edition was released and became effective on December 22, 2014. The Compendium, Third Edition is a living, electronic document accessible on the official website of the U.S Copyright Office The Office publishes regular revisions, as appropriate, to reflect changes in the law and/or practices,

which customers may access, download, or print. The most recent update was released on September 29, 2017. The version posted on the Office’s website at any given time should be consulted as the current official version. The Office maintains an archive of all revisions so released, as well as prior versions. Citing to the Compendium The full title of this manual is the “Compendium of U.S Copyright Office Practices, Third Edition” The full title may be abbreviated as the “Compendium.” The manual may be cited as follows: Full citation: U.S COPYRIGHT OFFICE, COMPENDIUM OF US COPYRIGHT OFFICE PRACTICES § 101 (3d ed 2017) Short form citation: COMPENDIUM (THIRD) § 101.1(A) What the Compendium Covers The Compendium documents and explains the many technical requirements, regulations, and legal interpretations of the U.S Copyright Office with a primary focus on the registration of copyright claims, documentation of copyright ownership, and recordation of copyright documents,

including assignments and licenses. It describes the wide range of services that the Office provides for searching, accessing, and retrieving information located in its extensive collection of copyright records and the associated fees for these services. The Compendium provides guidance regarding the contents and scope of particular registrations and records. And it seeks to educate revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Introduction to the Third Edition applicants about a number of common mistakes, such as providing incorrect, ambiguous, or insufficient information, or making overbroad claims of authorship. The Compendium does not cover every principle of copyright law or detail every aspect of the Office’s administrative practices. The Office may, in exceptional circumstances, depart from its normal practices to ensure an outcome that is most appropriate. Standard of Deference for the Compendium The Compendium does not override any existing statute or regulation. The

policies and practices set forth in the Compendium do not in themselves have the force and effect of law and are not binding upon the Register of Copyrights or U.S Copyright Office staff However, the Compendium does explain the legal rationale and determinations of the US Copyright Office, where applicable, including circumstances where there is no controlling judicial authority. The Supreme Court recognized that courts may consider the interpretations set forth in administrative manuals, policy statements, and similar materials “to the extent that those interpretations have ‘the power to persuade.’” Christensen v Harris County, 529 US 576, 587 (2000) (internal citations omitted). “The weight of [the agency’s] judgment in a particular case will depend upon the thoroughness evident in its consideration, the validity of its reasoning, its consistency with earlier and later pronouncements, and all those factors which give it power to persuade . ” Skidmore v. Swift &

Co, 323 US 134, 140 (1944) Courts have cited the Compendium in numerous copyright cases. See, eg, Olem Shoe Corp v Washington Shoe Corp., 2015 US App LEXIS 434, at *20-21 (11th Cir. Jan 12, 2015) (finding that the Compendium’s construction of the Copyright Act’s requirements for disclaiming preexisting works during registration “merits deference”); Alaska Stock, LLC v. Houghton Mifflin Harcourt Publishing Co., 747 F3d 673, 684 (9th Cir 2014) (finding the Compendium “persuasive” concerning the registration requirements for databases); Metropolitan Regional Information Systems, Inc v. American Home Realty Network, Inc, 888 F Supp 2d 691, 706-07 (D Md 2012) (deferring to the Compendium concerning the registration requirements for collective works); Rogers v. Better Business Bureau of Metropolitan Houston, Inc., 887 F Supp 2d 722, 732 (SD Tex 2012) (“The Copyright Office’s ‘policy statements, agency manuals, and enforcement guidelines’ do not carry ‘the force of

law,’ but they are entitled to some deference given the ‘specialized experience and broader investigations and information’ of the agency.”); McLaren v Chico’s FAS, Inc, 2010 US Dist. LEXIS 120185, at *9-10 (S.DNY Nov 9, 2010) (concluding that the Office’s interpretation of the unit of publication regulation “is particularly compelling”). Compendium Chapters The Compendium’s chapter scheme addresses the following key areas: • Background on U.S Copyright Office and general copyright law (Chapter 100) • Overview of the registration process (Chapter 200). • What is copyrightable (Chapter 300). | 2 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Introduction to the Third Edition • Who may file an application for copyright registration, and distinguishing between applicants, claimants, and correspondents (Chapter 400). • What may be or is covered by a registration and legal concepts relating to the authorship and ownership of joint works, works made for

hire, derivative works, compilations, and collective works (Chapter 500). • How to complete an application, including general categories of works and standards for examination (Chapter 600). • Guidance regarding the copyrightability and registrability of literary works, works of the performing arts, and visual art works (Chapters 700, 800, and 900). • Guidance regarding the copyrightability and registrability of websites and website content (Chapter 1000). • When and how to register multiple works with one application, one filing fee, and one set of deposit copies (Chapter 1100). • When and how to register mask works and vessel designs (Chapters 1200 and 1300). • Types of applications and filing fees (Chapter 1400). • Identifying and filing proper deposit copies for registration and mandatory deposit (Chapter 1500). • Conditions for, benefits of, and processes for preregistration (Chapter 1600). • How to request reconsideration of a refusal of a registration

(Chapter 1700). • How to modify a registration record, such as correcting or amplifying the information in a certificate of registration, cancelling a copyright registration, or asserting an adverse claim to copyright (Chapter 1800). • Guidance on the meaning of publication and how to determine if a work is published (Chapter 1900). • Registering a foreign work (Chapter 2000). • How to seek a renewal registration for works first published or registered before January 1, 1978 (Chapter 2100). • Copyright notice and the works that are subject to the notice requirement (Chapter 2200). • Recording documents related to copyright ownership, notices of termination, and other documents that the Office records under Title 17 (Chapter 2300). • Accessing and obtaining Office records and other Office services (Chapter 2400). | 3 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Introduction to the Third Edition First and Second Editions of the Compendium The first edition of the

Compendium (commonly referred to as “Compendium I”) governed the Office’s general practices for registration, recordation, and other matters arising under the Copyright Act of 1909. Largely an internal manual, it was directed to the Office’s examining staff. Compendium I was made available to the public for the first time in 1967 and it was last revised in 1973. See US Copyright Office, Introduction to Compendium of US Copyright Office Practices (1st ed. 1973); Inspection and Copying of Records and Other Documents, 32 Fed Reg 9314 (June 30, 1967). The second edition of the Compendium (commonly referred to as “Compendium II”) was also designed for internal use. Compendium II reflects the Copyright Office’s general practices for registration, recordation, and other matters arising under the Copyright Act of 1976, prior to the adoption of the Third Edition. It was first published in 1984 and revised in part in 1988 and 1998 In 1988 the Office added Chapter 600 (Registration

Procedures) and Chapter 1900 (Records, Indexes and Deposits). In 1995 the Office amended Chapter 600, § 60604, which discussed the procedure for requesting reconsideration of a refusal to register. In 1998 the Office revised Chapter 1600 (Recordation of Transfers) and Chapter 1900 (Records, Indexes, and Deposits). See generally Change in Procedure for Recording Certain Multiple Title Documents, 63 Fed. Reg 23,475 (Apr. 29, 1998); Modification of Appeal Procedure, 60 Fed Reg 21,983 (May 4, 1995); Compendium of Copyright Office Practices, 53 Fed. Reg 20,392 (June 3, 1988); Compendium of Copyright Office Practices, 49 Fed. Reg 23,125 (June 4, 1984) Although the Copyright Act of 1909 was repealed effective January 1, 1978, Compendium II did not supersede Compendium I. The preface to Compendium II expressly stated that Compendium I continued “to apply to Copyright Office actions, in situations . where the provisions of the Copyright Act of 1909, as amended, are dispositive.” US

Copyright Office, Preface to Compendium of US Copyright Office Practices (2d ed 1984) In other words, Compendium I remained the governing administrative manual for all registrations, renewals, and recordations issued by the Office prior to January 1, 1978. It also set forth the registration requirements for works published before January 1, 1978 where the applicant subsequently sought to register the work for the original copyright term (i.e, the first twenty-eight years of the copyright), including issues involving copyright notice and the manufacturing clause. Compendiums I and II are available on the Office’s website. They are also available for inspection and copying in the Records, Research and Certification Section See 37 CFR § 2012(b)(7) Relationship Between the First, Second, and Third Editions of the Compendium This version of the Third Edition governs registrations and recordations issued by the U.S Copyright Office on or after September 29, 2017. Registrations and

recordations issued between December 22, 2014 and September 29, 2017 are generally governed by the prior version of the Third Edition, except in cases where that version has been superseded by an amendment to the regulations, intervening case law, or previously announced changes in practice. To the extent there is a conflict between the Third Edition and Compendiums I or II, the current version shall control. That said, the Third Edition does not comprehensively cover all of the Office’s practices under the prior copyright law To the extent that issues arise that are not addressed by the Third Edition, Compendiums I and II remain in effect and continue to be the governing administrative manuals for practices involving those issues. | 4 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Introduction to the Third Edition In particular, the Third Edition generally does not address practices under the Copyright Act of 1909. Compendium I continues to be the controlling manual for

registrations, renewals, and recordations issued by the Office prior to January 1, 1978, and for the registration requirements for works published before January 1, 1978 that were never registered for the original copyright term. For ease of reference, however, Chapter 2100 of the Third Edition summarizes most of the relevant practices from Compendium I concerning the registration and renewal of such works. Similarly, the Third Edition does not address all practices involving provisions of the Copyright Act of 1976 that have been amended or repealed since 1978. As a general rule, Compendium II continues to be the relevant administrative manual for registrations, renewals, and recordations issued by the Office between January 1, 1978 and December 22, 2014. In particular, Chapter 1200 of Compendium II continues to be the governing manual concerning the manufacturing clause, although that Chapter only applies to works published before June 30, 1986, which is the date that the

manufacturing clause expired. Using the Compendium The U.S Copyright Office makes the Compendium available in PDF format The complete manual may be accessed or downloaded in its entirety or on a chapter-by-chapter basis. Each chapter can be accessed through the link set forth in the table of contents for the Compendium as a whole. Additionally, the Compendium includes a glossary of terms that are commonly used in registration and recordation practice. These terms are defined and linked throughout the chapters. Certain frequently used phrases are defined for convenience How to Search the Compendium You may search for specific terms in the Compendium by using the “find” features in Adobe Acrobat or Adobe Reader, or by using the search engine on the Office’s website. These features are described below. Basic Searching with Adobe Acrobat or Adobe Reader The “find” feature in Adobe Acrobat or Adobe Reader allows users to search for specific words or phrases within the

entire Compendium or within specific chapters. To conduct a basic search, follow these steps: Step 1: • Select “Edit” from the toolbar at the top of your screen, and then select “Find” from the drop-down menu. In the alternative, you may press Ctrl+ F to activate the Find feature A box labeled “Find” will appear on your screen. Step 2: • Enter the word or phrase you would like to find in the box labeled Find. To search for specific provisions of the Copyright Act, U.S Copyright Office regulations, or the Compendium, enter the section number you would like to find, such as “409(1)” or “202.1” | 5 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Introduction to the Third Edition Step 3: • Click the “previous” or “next” button. If the search term appears within the document it will be highlighted on your screen. If the search term appears elsewhere within the same document you may find it by clicking the “previous” or “next” buttons again If the

search term does not appear within the document the following message will appear: “Reader has finished searching the document. No matches were found” To close the Find feature, click the “x” that appears in the upper right corner of that box. Advanced Searching with Adobe Acrobat or Adobe Reader Use the “advanced search” feature in Adobe Acrobat or Adobe Reader to identify all of the places where a specific word or phrase appears within the Compendium or within specific chapters. To conduct an advanced search, follow these steps: Step 1: • Save a copy of the entire Compendium or a specific chapter to your desktop. Step 2: • Open the document using Adobe Reader or Adobe Acrobat. Step 3: • Select “Edit” from the toolbar at the top of your screen and then select “Advanced search” from the drop-down menu. In the alternative, you may press Shift+Ctrl+ F to activate the advanced search feature. A box labeled “Search” will appear on the left side of your

screen Step 4: • Enter the word or phrase you would like to find in the box marked “What word or phrase would you like to search for?” To search for specific provisions of the Copyright Act, U.S Copyright Office regulations, or the Compendium, enter the section number you would like to find, such as “409(1)” or “202.1” Step 5: • Click the “Search” button. If the search term appears within the document, it will appear in a box labeled “Results,” along with a brief excerpt from each sentence where that term appears. If the search term does not appear within the document the following message will appear: “0 document(s) with 0 instance(s).” To conduct another search click the “New Search” button To close the advanced search feature, click the “x” that appears in the upper right corner of the Search box. | 6 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Introduction to the Third Edition How to Provide Comments on the Compendium The U.S

Copyright Office welcomes input on an ongoing basis regarding the Compendium Comments may be emailed to the Office by using the form posted on the Office’s website at copyright.gov/comp3/commentshtml In particular, the Office appreciates feedback on the readability, clarity, coverage, and usability of the Compendium. It also may consider well-developed observations regarding the Office’s practices themselves | 7 revised 09/29/2017 compendium: chapter 100 U.S COPYRIGHT OFFICE AND THE COPYRIGHT LAW Contents 101 The U.S Copyright Office 1 101.1 History of the U.S Copyright Office 1 101.2 Organization of the U.S Copyright Office 3 101.2(A) Office of the Register 101.2(B) Office of the General Counsel 101.2(C) Office of Policy and International Affairs 4 101.2(D) Office of Registration Policy and Practice 4 101.2(E) Office of Public Information and Education 101.2(F) Office of Public Records and Repositories 101.2(G) Office of the Chief Information Officer

101.2(H) Office of the Chief Financial Officer 101.2(I) 101.3 3 4 Office of the Chief of Operations 4 5 5 5 5 Functions of the U.S Copyright Office 6 101.3(A) National Copyright Registration and Recordation System 101.3(B) Regulatory Work 101.3(C) Advising Congress and Intergovernmental Work 101.3(D) Administering Statutory Licenses 101.4 102 8 U.S Copyright Office Seal Sources of Law 6 8 8 9 9 102.1 Constitutional Basis for and Purpose of Copyright Law 102.2 Statutes and Regulations 9 10 102.2(A) Copyright Act of 1976 10 102.2(B) U.S Copyright Office Regulations 11 102.3 Administrative Procedure Act 11 102.4 Federal Court Decisions 102.5 State Laws 102.6 Territorial Scope of U.S Copyright Law 102.7 Timeline of Selected Historical Dates in U.S Copyright Law 11 12 12 13 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : U.S Copyright Office and the Copyright Law Chapter 100 | ii revised 09/29/2017 compendium: chapter 100 U.S

COPYRIGHT OFFICE AND THE COPYRIGHT LAW General Background 101 101.1 The U.S Copyright Office History of the U.S Copyright Office In May 1790, when Congress enacted the first federal copyright law, the U.S Copyright Office did not yet exist. Instead, authors and publishers recorded their claims with federal district courts and submitted copies of their works (in those days, book, maps, and charts) in support of their applications. These works, known as deposits, were stored in a variety of places, including in the U.S Department of State and the US Department of the Interior As of 1846, the Smithsonian Institution and the Library of Congress shared them This meant that records of copyright ownership were scattered among different government offices, and despite the federal scheme of protection, there was neither a consolidated tracking system nor centralized plan for preserving or using deposited works. In 1870, Congress moved registration and deposit functions from the dispersed

federal courts to the Library of Congress, which under Ainsworth Spofford advocated for and utilized the deposit copies as a foundation for the Library’s collection. This move helped transform the Library of Congress into a national institution. However, as copyright law evolved in both scope and complexity, the Nation and the Congress began grappling with a variety of policy issues that required leadership and expertise, including, for example, provisions that extended the public performance right to musical compositions and provided corresponding criminal penalties and injunctive relief, and amendments establishing reciprocity with foreign governments. Moreover, the volume of copyright-related work required greater focus and segregation from general Library functions. See Condition of the Library of Congress: Hearings Before the Joint Committee on the Library, 54th Cong. (1897) (statement of Ainsworth Spofford) (“The fruit of [the Copyright Act] has been to enormously enrich the

Library of Congress. On the other hand, it has at the same time enormously increased the difficulties of administration in such miserably narrow quarters.”), reprinted in S Rep No 54-1573, at 28 (1897) In 1897, Congress established and funded the U.S Copyright Office as a separate department within the Library and created the position of Register of Copyrights to head it. Since that act, the Register has been appointed by, and works under the general direction of, the Librarian of Congress. This appointment authority, however, required that the Librarian thereafter be appointed with the advice and consent of the Senate Thus, at the dawn of the twentieth century, Congress had not only created a formal foundation for copyright administration, but also created the Register as the central position of related expertise within the U.S government, who in turn developed an expert staff. As with other matters of intellectual property law, Congressional Rules give the respective judiciary

committees of both chambers legislative jurisdiction over all copyright matters. See Senate revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : U.S Copyright Office and the Copyright Law Rule XXV; House Rule X. The Register is the principal advisor to Congress regarding domestic and international copyright issues, but also works closely and collaboratively with other federal departments and agencies on copyright matters. The longstanding role of the U.S Copyright Office in policy matters was codified in the Copyright Act 17 USC § 701 The work of the Office takes several forms It provides expert subject matter assistance to Congress on copyright policy and interpretation of the copyright law; provides drafting support, including analysis and assistance for copyright legislation and legislative reports; undertakes studies and public roundtables for Congress; and offers advice on compliance with treaties and trade agreements. As a critical office within the U.S government, the US Copyright

Office also works closely with executive branch offices, including most regularly the Department of Justice, the White House, the Office of the U.S Trade Representative, the Department of Commerce and US Patent and Trademark Office, and the Department of State. It provides policy analysis to these offices; participates in copyright-related litigation; provides support on trade and enforcement measures; participates on U.S delegations to intergovernmental meetings and in other international events; hosts copyright training for copyright officials from foreign countries; and provides outreach and education on a routine basis. The Register of Copyrights has an especially important relationship with the Undersecretary for Intellectual Property, who heads the U.S Patent and Trademark Office and advises the President on intellectual property matters. These officers frequently work together in the international arena and the Undersecretary must consult with the Register “on all copyright

and related matters” that involve his Office. 35 USC § 2(c)(5) The US Copyright Office also works closely with the Intellectual Property Enforcement Coordinator (the “IPEC”), based in the Executive Office of the President. The Register is a statutory member of the IPEC’s interagency intellectual property enforcement advisory committee. 15 USC § 8111(b)(3)(A)(ii) Finally, the U.S Copyright Office’s unique position as the guardian of copyright registration documents deserves special mention. The Office maintains a wealth of information about the different types of works that have been registered in the United States throughout the years. This amounts to an unparalleled database of cultural heritage, as the Office has registered millions of copyright claims for authors, artists, publishers, producers, and distributors of creative works since 1897. The Office annually registers more than half a million copyright claims, records more than 10,000 documents relating to chain of

title and other copyright-related matters in connection with hundreds of thousands of titles, and collects more than $300 million dollars in statutory licensing funds. Likewise, it has facilitated the acquisition of hundreds of thousands of copies of books, serial publications, sound recordings, motion pictures, photographs, maps, and prints for the Library’s collection. U.S Copyright Office records also provide a glimpse into the evolution of US registration and recordation practices. Examples of some important historic registrations and recordations include: • First federal registration of a work: John Barry’s book, The Philadelphia Spelling Book, registered with the U.S District Court for the District of Pennsylvania in 1790 • First federal recordation of a document pertaining to copyright: Issued on July 25, 1870. Chapter 100 | 2 revised 09/29/2017 • Registration of the Statue of Liberty: On August 31, 1876, Henry de Stuckle and Auguste F. Bartholdi secured

registration number 9939-G for the “Statue of American Independence,” as the Statue of Liberty was first named. The copyright claim was filed in America’s centennial year, a decade before the statue was erected in New York Harbor. • First registration issued after the establishment of the U.S Copyright Office: “Dr QuixoteA New Comedy in Three Acts” by Charles F. Coughlan, registered by JE Dodson on July 1, 1897 • First motion picture registrations: The Edison Kinetoscopic Record of a Sneeze, January 7, 1894, submitted on January 9, 1894 by William Kennedy Laurie Dickson, is the earliest extant copyrighted motion picture in the Library of Congress’s collections. The short clip, known in film circles as Fred Ott’s Sneeze, shows a mustachioed man sneezing. The motion picture was registered as a series of photographs because motion pictures were not covered by U.S copyright law until 1912. The first work registered as a motion picture was the Republic Film Company’s

September 12, 1912 registration for Black Sheep’s Wool. • First television show registration: “Unexpected Guest” by Hopalong Cassidy, registered in 1947. • First registration for a choreographic work embodied in Laban notation: Hanya Holm’s choreography for Kiss Me Kate, registered as a dramatic work in 1952. • First computer program registration: John F. Banzhaf ’s computer program to compute automobile braking distances, registered in 1964 • First sound recording registration: Bob and Dorothy Roberts’s “Color Photo Processing Cassette, An Accurate Sound Signal and Oral Instruction System for Processing,” registered on February 15, 1972. 101.2 Organization of the U.S Copyright Office The Register of Copyrights is the Director of the U.S Copyright Office and a recognized leader and lawyer within the U.S government By statute, the Register works under the general direction of the Librarian of Congress and carries out a variety of legal and policy functions

that are enumerated throughout Title 17. The US Copyright Office has eight main divisions, in addition to the Register’s Office, and several hundred staff. There are four Associate Registers of Copyrights and four additional division heads that report directly to the Register and help to carry out her statutory mandate. An organizational chart is available on the Office’s website 101.2(A) Office of the Register The Office of the Register of Copyrights has overall responsibility for the U.S Copyright Office and its statutory mandate, specifically: for legal interpretation of the copyright law; administering the provisions of Title 17; promulgating copyright regulations; advising Congress and other government officials on domestic and international copyright policy and other intellectual property issues; determining personnel and other resource requirements for the Office; organizing strategic and annual program planning; and preparing budget estimates for inclusion in the budget

of the Library of Congress and U.S government Chapter 100 | 3 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : U.S Copyright Office and the Copyright Law 101.2(B) Office of the General Counsel The Office of the General Counsel (“OGC”) is headed by the General Counsel and Associate Register of Copyrights, who is an expert copyright attorney and one of four legal advisors to the Register. This Office assists the Register in carrying out critical work of the US Copyright Office regarding the legal interpretation of the copyright law. The General Counsel liaisons with the Department of Justice, other federal departments, and the legal community on a wide range of copyright matters, including litigation and the administration of Title 17. The General Counsel also has primary responsibility for the formulation and promulgation of regulations and the adoption of legal positions governing policy matters and the practices of the U.S Copyright Office. 101.2(C) Office of Policy and

International Affairs The Office of Policy and International Affairs (“PIA”) is headed by the Associate Register of Copyrights and Director of Policy and International Affairs, who is an expert copyright attorney and one of four legal advisors to the Register. This Office assists the Register with critical policy functions of the U.S Copyright Office, including domestic and international policy analyses, legislative support, and trade negotiations. PIA represents the US Copyright Office at meetings of government officials concerned with the international aspects of intellectual property protection, and provides regular support to Congress and its committees on statutory amendments and construction. 101.2(D) Office of Registration Policy and Practice The Office of Registration Policy and Practice is headed by the Associate Register of Copyrights and Director of Registration Policy and Practice, who is an expert copyright attorney and one of four legal advisors to the Register.

This Office administers the US copyright registration system and advises the Register of Copyrights on questions of registration policy and related regulations and interpretations of copyright law. This Office has three divisions: Literary, Performing Arts, and Visual Arts, which are described in Chapters 700, 800, and 900 of this Compendium, respectively. It also has a number of specialized sections, for example, in the area of motion pictures This Office executes major sections of the Compendium of Copyright Office Practices, particularly with respect to the examination of claims and related principles of law. 101.2(E) Office of Public Information and Education The Office of Public Information and Education (“PIE”) is headed by the Associate Register for Public Information and Education, who is an expert copyright attorney and one of four legal advisors to the Register. This Office informs and helps carry out the work of the Register and the U.S Copyright Office in providing

authoritative information about the copyright law to the public and establishing educational programs. The Office publishes the copyright law and other provisions of Title 17; maintains a robust and accurate public website; creates and distributes a variety of circulars, information sheets, and newsletters, including NewsNet; responds to public inquiries regarding provisions of the law, explains registration policies, procedures, and other copyright-related topics upon request; plans and executes a variety of educational activities; and engages in outreach with various copyright community stakeholders. Chapter 100 | 4 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : U.S Copyright Office and the Copyright Law 101.2(F) Office of Public Records and Repositories The Office of Public Records and Repositories is headed by the Director, who is an expert in public administration and one of the Register’s top business advisors. This Office is responsible for carrying out major provisions of

Title 17, including establishing records policies; ensuring the storage and security of copyright deposits, both analog and digital; recording licenses and transfers of copyright ownership; preserving, maintaining, and servicing copyright-related records; researching and providing certified and uncertified reproductions of copyright deposits; and maintaining the official records of the U.S Copyright Office Additionally, the Office engages regularly in discussions with leaders in the private and public sectors regarding issues of metadata, interoperability, data management, and open government. 101.2(G) Office of the Chief Information Officer The Office of the Chief Information Officer is headed by the Chief Information Officer (“CIO”), who is the Register’s top advisor on the development and implementation of technology policy and infrastructure. The Office of the CIO provides strategic leadership and direction for necessary planning, design, development, and implementation of

the U.S Copyright Office’s automated initiatives. The Office of the CIO is a liaison to the central technology office of the Library of Congress, which administers the U.S Copyright Office’s networks and communications The CIO also supervises the Copyright Technology Office (“CTO”) CTO maintains the U.S Copyright Office’s enterprise-wide information technology systems for registration, recordation, public records management and access, and related public services, as well as internal and external help desk functions. 101.2(H) Office of the Chief Financial Officer The Office of the Chief Financial Officer is headed by the Chief Financial Officer (“CFO”), who advises the Register on all fiscal, acquisition, budget, and financial policy matters of the U.S Copyright Office. The Office of the CFO supervises the Copyright Office’s appropriations process, budget execution, acquisitions and procurements, fee processing, statutory royalty investments and disbursements,

financial controls, and resource planning This Office interacts with every other senior management office that reports to the Register and frequently coordinates with management of the Library of Congress. The Office of the CFO also oversees the Licensing Division. This division administers certain statutory licenses set forth in the Copyright Act. It collects royalty payments and examines statements of account for the cable statutory license (17 USC § 111), the satellite statutory license for retransmission of distant television broadcast stations (17 U.SC § 119), and the statutory license for digital audio recording technology (17 U.SC chapter 10) It also accepts and records documents associated with the use of the mechanical statutory license (17 USC § 115) 101.2(I) Office of the Chief of Operations The Office of the Chief of Operations is headed by the Chief of Operations (“COO”), who advises the Register on core business functions and coordinates and directs the

day-to-day operations of the U.S Copyright Office The Office of the COO supervises human capital, mandatory deposits and acquisitions, contracts, and strategic planning functions. This Office interacts with every Chapter 100 | 5 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : U.S Copyright Office and the Copyright Law other senior management office that reports to the Register and frequently coordinates and assesses institutional projects. The COO chairs the US Copyright Office’s operations committee The following divisions fall under the oversight of the Chief of Operations: The Receipt Analysis and Control Division is responsible for sorting, analyzing, and scanning incoming mail; creating initial records; labeling materials; and searching, assembling, and dispatching electronic and hard copy materials and deposits to the appropriate service areas. The Division is responsible for operating the U.S Copyright Office’s central print room, mail functions, and temporary storage The

Copyright Acquisitions Division (“CAD”) administers the mandatory deposit requirements of the Copyright Act, acting as a trusted intermediary between copyright owners of certain published works and the acquisitions staff in the Library of Congress. 17 USC § 407 This Office creates and updates records for the copies received by the US Copyright Office; demands particular works or particular formats of works as necessary; administers deposit agreements between the Library and copyright owners; and assists the Office in public discussions and rulemakings regarding the submission requirements for digital works and the best edition requirements. 101.3 Functions of the U.S Copyright Office The functions of the U.S Copyright Office are set forth in Title 17 of the US Code, which includes the provisions of the Copyright Act of 1976 as well chapters on the Digital Millennium Copyright Act (“DMCA”), vessel designs, and other sui generis protections and exemptions (referenced in this

Compendium, as the case may require, as “Title 17,” the “DMCA,” or the “Copyright Act,” or with respect to the latter, the “1976 Act” or “Act”). The statute directs the Register of Copyrights, as Director of the U.S Copyright Office, to carry out a variety of activities, which are described in Sections 101.3(A) through 1013(D) 101.3(A) National Copyright Registration and Recordation System The Copyright Act establishes the U.S Copyright Office’s statutory obligation to administer both a copyright registration and copyright recordation system on behalf of the Nation. Pursuant to its provisions, the Office undertakes the following duties, among others: • registration: The U.S Copyright Office examines applications for registering claims to copyright and any accompanying deposit copy(ies) to determine whether they satisfy the statutory requirements for registrability, including copyrightability, and otherwise comply with the Office’s regulations. Based on

its findings, the Office then either registers or refuses to register the claims. Many of the controlling provisions for registration are set forth in Chapter 4 of the Copyright Act. Section 408 of the Act authorizes the Register to promulgate regulations to allow identifying material in place of deposit copy(ies), permit the registration of groups of related works with one application, and provide for the correction and amplification of registrations. Section 410 of the Act sets forth the Register’s authority to examine and either register or refuse copyright claims. Sections 411 and 412 address registration as a prerequisite for civil infringement claims and certain remedies. Chapters 200 through 2200 of this Compendium discuss the Office’s policies and practices relating to the examination of claims for copyright registration. Chapter 100 | 6 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : U.S Copyright Office and the Copyright Law • recordation: The statutory provisions

governing recordation are set forth in Chapter 2 of the Copyright Act. Under Section 205, any transfer of copyright ownership or other document relating to copyright may be recorded in the US Copyright Office, subject to certain conditions. The recordation of documents pertaining to transfers or other ownership matters is voluntary, but recommended because: (i) it provides constructive notice of the facts stated in the recorded document if certain conditions have been met; (ii) when a transfer of copyright is timely recorded (within one month of its execution in the United States or two months of its execution outside of the United States, or any time before a conflicting transfer is recorded), the recorded transfer prevails over a later executed transfer; and (iii) a complete public record may mitigate problems related to orphan works. Interested parties also record or consult documents pertaining to licenses, death of authors, expiration of term, wills, trusts, security interests,

and mortgages, to name a few. For a discussion of some of these documents, see Chapter 2300 of this Compendium. • termination notices: The Copyright Act allows, under certain circumstances, authors or their heirs to terminate an agreement that previously granted one or more of the author’s exclusive rights to a third party. These termination provisions are set forth in Sections 203, 304(c), and 304(d) of the Act. To terminate an agreement, a notice of termination must be served on the grantee, and it must be recorded with the U.S Copyright Office in a timely manner as a condition of effect. 17 USC §§ 203(a)(4), 304(c)(4), 304(d)(1) For a discussion of recordation of notices of termination, see Chapter 2300, Section 2310 of this Compendium. • public records: The U.S Copyright Office maintains extensive public records of copyright claims dating back to 1870 and in some instances earlier, including: -- Certificates of registration, which attest that registration has been

made and may constitute prima facie evidence of the validity of the copyright and of the facts stated in the certificate (if registration is made before publication or within five years of first publication). 17 USC § 410(c) -- The online public record, which provides the basic facts of registrations and recordations made after January 1, 1978. This information is available in a searchable database on the Office’s website. -- The Copyright Card Catalog, which is a physical archive available for public use at the Copyright Office in searching for completed registrations and recorded documents made before January 1, 1978. In some circumstances, the Office will issue certified copies of applications, correspondence, deposit copy(ies), documents, and other materials submitted to the Office in connection with copyright registrations and recorded documents. In addition, the Office has a reference search service that provides search reports regarding the facts of registration and

recordation contained in the Office’s files. For a discussion of these services, see Chapter 2400 of this Compendium • Chapter 100 | 7 mandatory deposit: The U.S Copyright Office administers Section 407 of the Copyright Act, which requires copyright owners to deposit certain published works with the Library of Congress for its collections. In this role, the Office may facilitate, demand, negotiate, or exempt the provision of copies or phonorecords. Absent a special exemption, the law requires that one or two copies of the best edition of every copyrightable work published in the United States be sent to the Office within three months of publication, regardless of whether revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : U.S Copyright Office and the Copyright Law a claim in the work is registered. 17 USC § 407(a) For a detailed discussion of mandatory deposit, see Chapter 1500, Section 1511 of this Compendium. • service provider directory: The Office of Public Records and

Repositories administers a directory of service provider agents to receive notifications of claims of infringement as provided under Section 512(c) of the Copyright Act. • mask works: The U.S Copyright Office examines and registers claims to mask works fixed in semiconductor chip products filed under the Semiconductor Chip Protection Act of 1984, title III of Pub. L No 98-620, 98 Stat 3335, 3347 (codified as amended at 17 USC §§ 901914) Chapter 1200 of this Compendium discusses the examination of claims in mask works • vessel designs: The U.S Copyright Office examines and registers claims in vessel designs filed under the Vessel Hull Design Protection Act, title V of the Digital Millennium Copyright Act, Pub. L No 105-304, 112 Stat 2860, 2905 (1998) (codified as amended at 17 USC §§13011332) Chapter 1300 of this Compendium discusses the examination of claims in vessel designs 101.3(B) Regulatory Work The U.S Copyright Office promulgates regulations regarding its

policies and procedures pursuant to the provisions of Title 17, which authorizes the Register of Copyrights “to establish regulations not inconsistent with law for the administration of the functions and duties made the responsibility of the Register under this title.” 17 USC § 702 These regulations are subject to the approval of the Librarian of Congress, who is the agency head. See id Congress expressly made the Register’s actions under Title 17 subject to the provisions of the Administrative Procedure Act of June 11, 1946, as amended. 17 USC § 701(e) 101.3(C) Advising Congress and Intergovernmental Work The Register advises Congress on national and international copyright issues. The US Copyright Office also works closely with the federal departments and agencies discussed in Section 101.1 above. 17 USC § 701 Among other things, the Office provides expert assistance to Congress in the interpretation of Title 17 and compliance with international agreements, such as the

Berne Convention for the Protection of Literary and Artistic Works (the “Berne Convention”) and the WIPO Internet Treaties. The Office also conducts public discussions on law and policy; produces major legal studies, makes policy recommendations; participates in copyright-related litigation when the U.S government has an interest; provides support on trade and enforcement measures; attends intergovernmental meetings and other international events; and hosts copyright training for copyright officials from foreign countries. 101.3(D) Administering Statutory Licenses As discussed in Section 101.2(H), the US Copyright Office’s Licensing Division administers the statutory licenses for cable and satellite retransmissions and the statutory license for digital audio recording technology. It also records certain documents associated with the mechanical statutory license. These statutory licenses allow third parties to make certain limited uses of copyrighted works without the copyright

owners’ permission, provided that certain statutory requirements Chapter 100 | 8 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : U.S Copyright Office and the Copyright Law are met. The Division deducts its operating costs from these royalty fees and invests the balance in interest-bearing securities with the U.S Treasury for later distribution to copyright owners 101.4 U.S Copyright Office Seal The Register of Copyrights has adopted the following official seal pursuant to the authority of the Copyright Act. 17 USC § 701(c); Notice of New Copyright Office Seal, 68 Fed Reg 71,171 (Dec. 22, 2003) The US Copyright Office uses this seal on certificates of registration, certified records, and in connection with other official documents, including reports to Congress. 102 Sources of Law U.S copyright law is derived from several authoritative sources, including the US Constitution, statutory provisions, court decisions, and regulations. These sources and their role in shaping

copyright law in the United States are reviewed in Sections 102.1 through 1027 below 102.1 Constitutional Basis for and Purpose of Copyright Law Copyright has been a part of the American legal landscape since colonial times, when many of the colonies adopted copyright laws. See US Copyright Office Bulletin 3, Copyright Enactments 1783-1900, at 9-29 (listing copyright laws enacted by Connecticut, Massachusetts, Maryland, New Jersey, New Hampshire, Rhode Island, Pennsylvania, South Carolina, Virginia, North Carolina, Georgia, and New York between 1783 and 1786), available at www.copyright gov/history/Copyright Enactments 1783-1973.pdf Upon ratification, the US Constitution provided Congress with the ability to make federal laws to protect copyright. Specifically, Article 1, Section 8, Clause 8 (which includes the “Copyright Clause”) states that “Congress shall have Power . To promote the Progress of Science and useful Arts, by securing for limited Times to Authors and Inventors

the exclusive Right to their respective Writings and Discoveries.” The promotion of “science,” as that term is used in the Copyright Clause, is understood to refer to the purpose of copyright law (despite the contemporary usage of the term). See Eldred v Ashcroft, 537 U.S 186, 197 (2003) The Supreme Court has confirmed that this clause empowers Congress to enact a copyright system. See Golan v Holder, 565 US 302, 323-25 (2012) U.S courts have analyzed the purpose of the Copyright Clause in a number of cases The Supreme Court has interpreted the Copyright Clause to mean that copyright laws should promote both the creation and dissemination of creative works. See, eg, Golan, 132 S Ct at 888-89 Thus, “[t]he Framers intended copyright itself to be the engine of free expression.” Harper & Row Publishers, Inc. v Nation Enterprises et al, 471 US 539, 558 (1985); see also Golan, 132 S Ct at Chapter 100 | 9 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : U.S Copyright Office and

the Copyright Law 890 (“By establishing a marketable right to the use of one’s expression, copyright supplies the economic incentive to create and disseminate ideas.”) 102.2 Statutes and Regulations Congress has exercised its authority to enact federal copyright laws on numerous occasions. The first Copyright Act, enacted in 1790, and subsequent laws are summarized in the historical timeline in Section 102.7 below The current Copyright Act was enacted in 1976 and became effective on January 1, 1978. It has been amended numerous times since its enactment The Copyright Act protects “original works of authorship” that are “fixed in any tangible medium of expression.” 17 U.SC § 102(a) Section 106 of the Act provides copyright holders with a number of exclusive rights (including the right to reproduce works, prepare derivative works, distribute works, and in certain cases, to publicly perform and display works). It also provides certain exceptions and limitations to these

exclusive rights. See 17 USC §§ 107-122 Works that predate the effective date of the 1976 Act are governed by statutory provisions of the 1909 Copyright Act; the most relevant of these provisions are discussed in Chapter 2100 of this Compendium. 102.2(A) Copyright Act of 1976 The 1976 Act replaced the 1909 Copyright Act and changed much of how copyright law operates, including as follows: • The 1976 Act implemented a new calculus for determining the duration of copyright (known as the “term of protection” or, more simply, the “term”). Previously, works were protected for a specific initial term and could be renewed for an additional renewal term. The 1976 Act does not require renewal. In most cases, the Act provides protection to works based on the time frame of the author’s life plus seventy years. 17 USC § 302(a) In the case of an anonymous work, a pseudonymous work, or a work made for hire, the copyright lasts for a term of ninety-five years from the year of its

first publication, or a term of one hundred twenty years from the year of its creation, whichever expires first. 17 USC § 302(c) • Unlike prior U.S copyright laws, copyright protection under the 1976 Act is not contingent on publication or registration. All copyrightable works are now protected from the moment of fixation in a tangible medium of expression, regardless of whether they are published, registered, or recorded at any time. 17 USC § 102(a) • The 1976 Act (in Sections 203, 304(c), and 304(d)) allows an author to terminate certain grants of copyright in the author’s work after a specified number of years. The 1909 Act, by contrast, gave the author an opportunity to recoup his or her rights by vesting the copyright in the renewal term in the author, meaning that the author had to provide a separate grant expressly to a publisher or other third party for the renewal term(i.e, after the first twenty-eight years) • The 1976 Act added protections for certain additional

types of works, including pantomime and choreography. 17 USC § 102(a)(4) Since 1976, the statute has been amended to provide copyright protection for architectural works and certain protection for mask works and vessel designs. Chapter 100 | 10 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : U.S Copyright Office and the Copyright Law • Congress added numerous exceptions and limitations to the statute (currently set forth in Sections 107 through 122 of the Act), including Sections 107 (which codified the judiciallycreated fair use doctrine) and Section 108 (which created specific exceptions for libraries and archives). Congress has updated the 1976 Act several times. For more information concerning these amendments, see the historical timeline in Section 1027 below 102.2(B) U.S Copyright Office Regulations Section 702 of the Copyright Act authorizes the Register of Copyrights, subject to the approval of the Librarian of Congress, to promulgate regulations relating to the

Register’s duties, including the registration of copyrights. Pursuant to this authority, the US Copyright Office has promulgated regulations pertaining to the examination and registration of copyrights and the recordation of transfers of copyright ownership, among other things. These regulations are embodied in Title 37 of the Code of Federal Regulations. They cover a variety of registration topics, such as how to submit applications, how to contest the Office’s refusal to issue a copyright registration, and specific deposit requirements. Ordinarily, when the Office decides to issue a new regulation, it publishes a notice of proposed rulemaking in the Federal Register in accordance with the Administrative Procedure Act. 17 USC § 701(e); see also 5 USC § 553 Typically, the Office also notifies the public through its NewsNet service. In most cases, the public is invited to provide comments on proposed regulations for the Office’s consideration. 102.3 Administrative Procedure Act

Congress expressly made the Register’s actions under the Copyright Act subject to the provisions of the Administrative Procedure Act of June 11, 1946, as amended. 17 USC § 701(e) Congress legislated only one express exception to this rule: Section 706(b) of the Copyright Act which provides for the U.S Copyright Office to issue regulations specifying the conditions under which the Office may authorize or furnish copies or reproductions of deposited articles retained by the Office. 102.4 Federal Court Decisions Federal courts have interpreted the 1976 Act on numerous occasions, resulting in a well-developed body of case law. Sometimes courts decide issues that are not squarely addressed by the 1976 Act and, in doing so, develop standards that are consistent with the Act and provide additional guidance. Thus, certain copyright law doctrines are derived largely from court decisions For example, the Copyright Act does not explain what level of creativity is necessary for a work to

qualify as a “work of authorship” under the Act. Section 102(a) of the Act stateswithout further elaborationthat “[c]opyright protection subsists in original works of authorship fixed in any tangible medium of expression, now known or later developed, from which they can be perceived, reproduced, or otherwise communicated, either directly or with the aid of a machine or device.” Numerous courts have analyzed what an original work of authorship is under the Act. For more information on the originality requirement, see Chapter 300, Section 308 of this Compendium. Chapter 100 | 11 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : U.S Copyright Office and the Copyright Law The standards for comparing works and determining when a work protected by copyright is infringed by another work also come from judicial doctrine. For instance, courts have held that, to prevail in a copyright infringement case, a copyright owner must show (i) direct evidence that the defendant copied the

copyright owner’s work, or (ii) that the defendant had access to the copyrighted work, and (iii) that the copyright owner’s and defendant’s works are substantially similar. Certain U.S copyright law doctrines are entirely judicially-created and have never been directly codified in the Act, such as theories of contributory and vicarious liability for infringement. Others, such as principles of fair use (Section 107 of the Act), are codified at a high level in the 1976 Act, but are interpreted on a case-by-case basis by the courts. For these reasons, it is important to consult court opinions on copyright-related issues. When doing so, note that copyright law doctrines may differ among jurisdictions, as different circuits have followed different standards. For example, the infringement standard in the Ninth Circuit is somewhat different from that of the First and the Second Circuits. Additionally, some circuits allow a claim for copyright infringement to be brought upon submission

of an application for registration to the U.S Copyright Office under Section 411 of the Copyright Act, while others require a certificate of registration or refusal to register issued by the Office. For more information on this issue, see Chapter 600, Section 6255 of this Compendium 102.5 State Laws U.S copyright protection is governed by federal law Section 301(a) of the 1976 Act preempts all similar protections provided by state law, other than with respect to sound recordings fixed before February 15, 1972, as provided under Section 301(c) of the Act. Preemption applies only when a state law provides protections that are equivalent to those set forth in the Copyright Act (i.e, rights equivalent to any of the exclusive rights under Section 106 of the Act in fixed works of authorship that fall within the subject matter of copyright). There are a significant number of court decisions interpreting exactly when a state claim is close enough to an exclusive right provided by the

Copyright Act to be preempted. This case law should be consulted for questions regarding preemption and may vary to some extent by jurisdiction. Sections 301(b) and (c) of the 1976 Act also specifically set forth some types of copyright-like protections that states may provide. These include: (i) works not fixed in a tangible medium of expression; (ii) pre-1972 sound recordings; (iii) state and local landmarks, historic preservation, zoning, or building codes relating to architectural works protected under Section 102(a)(8) of the Act; and (iv) causes of actions for acts that took place before January 1, 1978. 102.6 Territorial Scope of U.S Copyright Law Generally speaking, U.S copyright law applies only to acts that take place in the United States, including the Commonwealth of Puerto Rico and U.S territories See Subafilms, Ltd V MGMPathe Communications Co, 24 F3d 1088, 1094-95 (9th Cir 1994) Under the Berne Convention, national law applies to foreign works, and the law of the

country in which infringement takes place generally applies to infringement disputes. Berne Convention for the Protection of Literary and Artistic Works, art. 5(1), (3), Sept 9, 1886, as revised at Paris on July 24, 1971 and amended on Sept. 28, 1979, S Treaty Doc No 99-27 (1986) Thus, copyright infringement that occurs in the United States is governed by U.S law However, courts may look to the law of a foreign country Chapter 100 | 12 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : U.S Copyright Office and the Copyright Law where ownership of the work was established or transferred in cases where questions are raised concerning foreign ownership and copyright origin even in the context of a U.S infringement action. See, eg, Itar-Tass Russian News Agency v Russian Kurier, Inc, 153 F3d 82, 88-92 (2d Cir 1998). 102.7 Timeline of Selected Historical Dates in U.S Copyright Law The United States has a long and rich history of copyright law. Below is a timeline of some of the most

interesting developments that have occurred since the colonial era. In addition to this timeline, the US Copyright Office’s website includes a wealth of historical information, including additional notable dates, extensive information on past copyright laws, and prior publications. • August 18, 1787: James Madison submits to the framers of the Constitution a provision “to secure to literary authors their copyrights for a limited time.” • June 23, 1789: First federal bill relating to copyrights (H.R10) presented to the first Congress • May 31, 1790: Congress enacts the first federal copyright law, “An act for encouragement of learning by securing copies of maps, charts, and books to the authors and proprietors of such copies during the times therein mentioned.” This law provided for a term of fourteen years with the option of renewing the registration for another fourteen-year term. The law only applied to books, maps, and charts. It also noted that a copyright should

be registered in the U.S district court where the author or proprietor resided (not the US Copyright Office, which had not yet been created). • April 29, 1802: Congress adds prints to works protected by copyright law. • February 3, 1831: First general revision of the copyright law. Music added to works protected against unauthorized printing and vending. First term of copyright extended to twenty-eight years with the option of renewal for another fourteen-year term. • August 18, 1856: Congress passes a supplementary law to protect dramatic compositions. • December 31, 1864: President Abraham Lincoln appoints Ainsworth Rand Spofford to be the sixth Librarian of Congress. Spofford served as the de facto Register of Copyrights until the formal position of Register was created in 1897. • March 3, 1865: Congress enacts “An Act to amend the several Acts respecting Copyright,” which added protections for photographs and photographic negatives. • July 8, 1870: In this

second major revision of copyright law, Congress centralized copyright activities (including registration and deposit) in the Library of Congress. The law added “works of art” to the list of protected works and reserved to authors the right to create certain derivative works, including translations and dramatizations. • March 3, 1891: With the passage of the International Copyright Act, Congress extended copyright protection to certain works by foreign authors. This was the first US copyright law authorizing establishment of copyright relations with foreign countries Chapter 100 | 13 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : U.S Copyright Office and the Copyright Law • July 1891: The Catalog of Copyright Entries, which includes records of registered works, is published in book form for the first time. • 1895: Congress mandates that U.S government works are not subject to copyright protection • January 6, 1897: Congress enacts a law to protect music against

unauthorized public performance. • February 19, 1897: The U.S Copyright Office is established as a separate department of the Library of Congress. Position of Register of Copyrights created • July 1, 1909: Effective date of third general revision of the copyright law. Certain classes of unpublished works now eligible for registration. Term of statutory protection for a work copyrighted in published form measured from the date of publication of the work. Renewal term extended from fourteen to twenty-eight years. • August 24, 1912: Motion pictures, previously allowed to be registered only as a series of still photographs, added as a class of protected works. • July 13, 1914: President Woodrow Wilson proclaims U.S adherence to the Buenos Aires Copyright Convention of 1910, which established copyright protection between the United States and certain Latin American nations. • July 1, 1940: Effective date of transfer of jurisdiction for the registration of commercial prints

and labels from the U.S Patent Office to the US Copyright Office • July 30, 1947: The copyright law codified as Title 17 of the U.S Code • January 1, 1953: Recording and performing rights extended to nondramatic literary works. • September 16, 1955: United States becomes party to the 1952 Universal Copyright Convention as revised in Geneva, Switzerland. • September 19, 1962: First of nine special acts extending terms of subsisting renewal copyrights pending congressional action on general copyright law revision. • February 15, 1972: Effective date of the act extending limited copyright protection to sound recordings fixed and first published on or after this date. • March 10, 1974: United States becomes a member of the Convention for the Protection of Producers of Phonograms Against Unauthorized Duplication of Their Phonograms. • July 10, 1974: United States becomes party to the 1971 revision of the Universal Copyright Convention as revised at Paris, France. •

October 19, 1976: Fourth general revision of the copyright law signed by President Gerald Ford. This extensive revision included numerous provisions that modernized copyright law, as described in Section 102.2(A) above • January 1, 1978: Effective date of principal provisions of the 1976 copyright law. Chapter 100 | 14 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : U.S Copyright Office and the Copyright Law • December 12, 1980: Copyright law amended to address computer programs. • May 24, 1982: Section 506(a) amended to provide that persons who infringe copyright willfully and for purposes of commercial advantage or private financial gain shall be subject to criminal penalties. • October 4, 1984: Effective date of Record Rental Amendments of 1984, which granted the owner of copyright in a sound recording the right to authorize or prohibit the rental, lease, or lending of phonorecords for direct or indirect commercial purposes. • November 8, 1984: Federal statutory

protection for mask works became available under the Semiconductor Chip Protection Act, with the U.S Copyright Office assuming administrative responsibility. The Office began registering claims in mask works on January 7, 1985 • June 30, 1986: Expiration of the manufacturing clause of the Copyright Act of 1976, which required that certain types of works be typeset, printed, and bound in the United States. For more information about the manufacturing clause under the 1909 Act, see Chapter 2100 of this Compendium. • March 1, 1989: The effective date of United States adherence to the Berne Convention for the Protection of Literary and Artistic Works, as revised in Paris, France in 1971. • December 1, 1990: Copyright protection extended to architectural works. Section 106A added to copyright law by the Visual Artists Rights Act, which allows authors of certain types of visual works of art certain moral rights of attribution and integrity. • December 1, 1990: Effective date of

the Computer Software Rental Amendments Act. Grants the owner of copyright in computer programs the exclusive right to authorize or prohibit the rental, lease, or lending of a program for direct or indirect commercial purposes. • June 26, 1992: Renewal registration becomes optional on a prospective basis. Any work in its twenty-eighth year of copyright protection no longer requires a renewal application with the U.S Copyright Office in order for the copyright to extend into and through the renewal term As such, all works initially copyrighted between January 1, 1964 and December 31, 1977 were renewed automatically, even if the party entitled to claim the renewal copyright failed to file a timely renewal with the Office. • October 28, 1992: Effective date of the Audio Home Recording Act. The Act requires the placement of serial copy management systems in digital audio recorders and imposes royalties on the sale of digital audio recording devices and media that are distributed to

the copyright owners. • December 17, 1993: Copyright Royalty Tribunal Reform Act of 1993 eliminates the existing Copyright Royalty Tribunal and replaces it with ad hoc Copyright Arbitration Royalty Panels administered by the Librarian of Congress and the U.S Copyright Office • December 8, 1994: The Uruguay Round Agreements Act restores copyright to certain foreign works under protection in the source country but in the public domain in the United States. It also repeals the sunset of the Software Rental Amendments Act and creates legal measures to prohibit the unauthorized fixation and trafficking in sound recordings of live musical performances and music videos. Chapter 100 | 15 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : U.S Copyright Office and the Copyright Law • November 16, 1997: The No Electronic Theft (NET) Act defines “financial gain” in relation to copyright infringement and sets penalties for willfully infringing a copyright either for the purposes of

commercial advantage or private financial gain or by reproducing or distributing (including by electronic means) phonorecords of a certain value. • October 27, 1998: The Sonny Bono Copyright Term Extension Act extends the term of copyright for most works by twenty years. • October 28, 1998: The Digital Millennium Copyright Act of 1998 (“DMCA”) adds several major provisions to the Copyright Act. It provides for the implementation of the World Intellectual Property Organization (“WIPO”) Copyright Treaty (“WCT”) and the WIPO Performances and Phonograms Treaty (“WPPT”), by adding prohibitions against circumventing technological measures protecting copyrighted works and removing or altering copyright management information. It also creates the Section 512 safe harbors from liability for internet service providers; provides an exemption in Section 117 of the Act permitting the temporary reproduction of computer programs made in the course of maintenance or repair;

clarifies the policy role of the U.S Copyright Office; and creates a new form of protection for vessel designs. • November 2, 2002: The Technology, Education, and Copyright Harmonization (“TEACH”) Act provides for the use of copyrighted works by accredited nonprofit educational institutions in distance education. • November 30, 2004: The Copyright Royalty and Distribution Reform Act phases out the Copyright Arbitration Royalty Panel system and replaces it with the Copyright Royalty Board. • April 27, 2005: The Artists’ Rights and Theft Prevention Act (“ART Act”) allows for preregistration of certain works being prepared for commercial distribution. • October 13, 2008: The Prioritizing Resources and Organization for Intellectual Property Act of 2008 (“PRO-IP Act”) is enacted. Among other things, the PRO-IP Act established the new government position of the Intellectual Property Enforcement Coordinator, codified case law regarding the effect of inaccurate

information knowingly included in an application for copyright registration, and prohibited the export and import of infringing copies of works that are or would be protected under the U.S Copyright Act Chapter 100 | 16 revised 09/29/2017 compendium: chapter 200 OVERVIEW OF THE REGISTRATION PROCESS Contents 201 What This Chapter Covers 1 202 Purposes and Advantages of Registration 2 202.1 Types of Registrations 3 202.2 Registration Distinguished from Preregistration 202.3 Registration Distinguished from Recordation 203 Timing of Registration 204 Required Elements for Registration 204.1 Completed Application 204.1(A) Online Application 5 204.1(B) Paper Applications 6 204.1(B)(1) By Mail 204.1(B)(2) By Courier 204.1(B)(3) By Hand Delivery 3 3 4 4 4 6 7 204.2 Filing Fee 204.3 Deposit Copy(ies) 7 7 8 204.3(A) Deposit Copy(ies) Submitted in Electronic Format 204.3(B) Deposit Copy(ies) Submitted in Physical Format 8 9 205 Privacy 9 206

General Overview of the Examination Process 207 Special Handling 208 Withdrawing an Application 209 The Certificate of Registration and the Effective Date of Registration 210 When Does a Registration Expire? 211 Registration Refused After Examination 212 General Policies Regarding Inaccuracies and Misrepresentations 11 11 11 12 12 13 212.1 Material Misrepresentations 212.2 Immaterial Inaccuracies in the Application 212.3 Errors or Omissions in a Certificate of Registration 13 13 13 13 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Overview of the Registration Process 212.4 213 Chapter 200 | ii Cancellation 14 The Registration Process at a Glance 14 revised 09/29/2017 compendium: chapter 200 OVERVIEW OF THE REGISTRATION PROCESS 201 What This Chapter Covers This Chapter provides a general overview of the copyright registration system and the practices and procedures for submitting an application to register a work created or first published on or

after January 1, 1978. For a chart that illustrates the entire registration process at a glance, see Section 213. For a detailed discussion of the U.S Copyright Office’s registration practices, see the following chapters: • For the practices and procedures for examining copyright claims, see Chapter 600. • For the practices and procedures for registering certain groups of works, see Chapter 1100. • For a general discussion of filing fees and applications, including the Single Application, which may be used to register a single work by a single author, see Chapter 1400. • For the practices and procedures for correcting or amplifying the information in an existing copyright registration and for asserting an adverse claim to copyright, see Chapter 1800. • For the practices and procedures for the renewal of copyright claims, see Chapter 2100. For a detailed discussion of the Office’s practices and procedures for specific types of works, see the following chapters: • For

literary works, see Chapter 700. • For works of the performing arts, see Chapter 800. • For visual art works, see Chapter 900. • For websites and website content, see Chapter 1000. • For mask works, see Chapter 1200. • For vessel designs, see Chapter 1300. • For foreign works, see Chapter 2000. revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Overview of the Registration Process 202 Purposes and Advantages of Registration Under the current copyright law, a work of authorship is protected by copyright from the moment it is created, provided that the work is original and has been fixed in a tangible medium of expression. See 17 USC §§ 102(a), 408(a) Although registration is not required for a work to be protected by copyright, it does provide several important benefits: • A registration creates a public record that includes key facts relating to the authorship and ownership of the claimed work, as well as information about the work, such as title, year of creation, date

of publication (if any), and the type of authorship that the work contains (e.g, photographs, text, sound recordings). • Registration (or a refusal to register) is a prerequisite to filing a lawsuit for copyright infringement involving a U.S work See 17 USC § 411(a); see also Petrella v Metro-Goldwyn-Mayer, Inc., 132 S Ct 1962, 1977 (2014) (“Although registration is ‘permissive,’ both the certificate and the original work must be on file with the Copyright Office before a copyright owner can sue for infringement.”); Alaska Stock, LLC v Houghton Mifflin Harcourt Publishing Co, 747 F3d 673, 678 (9th Cir. 2014) (“Though an owner has property rights without registration, he needs to register the copyright to sue for infringement.”) • To claim statutory damages or attorney’s fees in a copyright infringement lawsuit, a work must be registered before the infringement began or within three months after the first publication of the work. See 17 USC §§ 412(c), 504, 505

• A registration constitutes prima facie evidence of the validity of the copyright and the facts stated in the certificate of registration, but only if the work is registered before or within five years after the work is first published. • A registration provides information to prospective licensees, such as the name and address for obtaining permission to use the work. • A document that has been recorded with the U.S Copyright Office may provide constructive notice of the facts stated therein, but only if the document specifically identifies a work of authorship and only if that work has been registered. See 17 USC § 205(c)(1)-(2) • The deposit copy(ies) submitted with an application for registration of a published work may satisfy the mandatory deposit requirement, provided that the applicant submitted the best edition of the work. See 17 USC §§ 407, 408(b) • A registration is necessary to secure the full benefits of a preregistration that has been issued by the U.S

Copyright Office See 17 USC § 408(f)(3) • The U.S Customs and Border Protection Service may seize foreign pirated copies of a copyright owner’s work, provided that the work has been registered with the US Copyright Office and the certificate of registration has been recorded with the US Customs and Border Protection Service. • “To be entitled to receive royalties under [the section 115] compulsory license, the copyright owner must be identified in the registration or other public records of the Copyright Office.” See 17 U.SC § 115(c)(1) Chapter 200 | 2 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Overview of the Registration Process 202.1 Types of Registrations The U.S Copyright Office registers claims to copyright in works of authorship As a general rule, the Office will issue one registration for each work that is submitted for registration. Generally, the Office will not issue separate registrations for the constituent elements or individual components of a work

of authorship. And as discussed Chapter 500, Section 5031(A), the Office generally will not issue separate registrations to each author who contributed copyrightable expression to the work. The U.S Copyright Office currently offers the following types of registrations: • Basic registrations. An application for a basic registration is used to register a copyright claim in a work created or first published on or after January 1, 1978, and covers the full term of the copyright. This type of registration may be obtained with a Standard Application or a Single Application (provided certain eligibility requirements have been met). For a discussion of the Standard Application and Single Application, see Chapter 1400, Sections 1402.4 and 14025 • Group registrations. An application for a group registration is used to register a claim to copyright in a group of related works that qualify for a single registration See 17 USC § 408(c)(1), (2). For a detailed discussion of group

registration, see Chapter 1100 • Supplementary registration. An application for a supplementary registration may be used to correct or amplify the information in a basic or renewal registration. 17 USC § 408(d) For a detailed discussion of supplementary registration, see Chapter 1800, Section 1802. • GATT registration. An application for a GATT registration is used to register a copyright claim in a work in which U.S copyright was restored by the 1994 Uruguay Round Agreements Act (URAA) See Uruguay Round Agreements Act, 103 PL 465, 108 Stat 4809 (1994) (codified as amended at 17 U.SC § 104A) For a discussion of GATT registration, see Chapter 2000, Section 2007. • Renewal registration. An application for a renewal registration is used to cover the renewal term for works copyrighted before January 1, 1978. See 17 USC § 304 For a detailed discussion of renewal registration, see Chapter 2100 202.2 Registration Distinguished from Preregistration Preregistration is a special

service that is intended for specific types of works that are likely to be infringed before they are completed or before they are released for commercial distribution, such as feature films. A preregistration is not the same as registration and the vast majority of applicants would not benefit from this service. Applicants should reflect carefully on whether preregistration is necessary in a specific case. For more information on preregistration, see Chapter 1600 202.3 Registration Distinguished from Recordation Registration and recordation are two separate procedures: claims to copyright are registered, while documents related to copyright claims, such as agreements to transfer or grant a mortgage in copyrights, are recorded. As discussed in Section 204, an applicant must submit an application, deposit copy(ies), and a filing fee to register a claim to copyright, and together these items Chapter 200 | 3 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Overview of the Registration

Process are the primary source of information for the claim. As a general rule, the applicant does not need to submit additional documents substantiating the information provided in these materials. Registering a claim to copyright is not a substitute for recording a document with the U.S Copyright Office, and recording a document is not a substitute for registering a claim to copyright See 17 U.SC § 205 For a detailed discussion of the practices and procedures for recording a document with the Office, see Chapter 2300. 203 Timing of Registration Registration may be made at any time before the copyright has entered the public domain. See 17 U.SC §§ 302-305 and 408(a) Generally speaking, a copyrighted work enters the public domain in the United States when “its full copyright term has expired” Golan v Holder, 565 US 302, 307 (2012). Although registration may be made at any time before a copyright expires or any time before bringing an infringement action in federal court, the

U.S Copyright Office strongly encourages copyright owners to submit their works for registration in a timely manner As discussed in Section 202, a registration is a prerequisite for seeking statutory damages and attorney’s fees in an infringement action. To pursue these remedies, an unpublished work must be registered before the infringement occurs, while a published work must be registered within three months after publication or before the infringement occurs. See 17 USC § 412 Moreover, if the work is registered before or within five years after the work is first published, the registration constitutes prima facie evidence of the validity of the copyright and the facts stated in the certificate of registration. 204 Required Elements for Registration To register a claim to copyright, an applicant must submit the following items to the U.S Copyright Office: • Completed application; • Full filing fee; and • The requisite deposit copy(ies) of the work. A general discussion of

each of these elements is set forth in Sections 204.1 through 2043 below For detailed information on the practices and procedures for completing the application, see Chapter 600. For detailed information on the requirements for the filing fee, see Chapter 1400, Section 1403. For detailed information on the requirements for deposit copy(ies), see Chapter 1500. 204.1 Completed Application An applicant must use the official applications provided by the U.S Copyright Office Most claims may be submitted online by using the Office’s electronic registration system, and in some cases applicants are required to use the online application to seek a registration. Chapter 200 | 4 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Overview of the Registration Process Applicants generally may submit a paper application as an alternative to using the electronic system, although applicants are required to use a paper application for certain types of claims. Each type of application is discussed in

Sections 204.1(A) and 2041(B) below 204.1(A) Online Application The U.S Copyright Office’s electronic registration system may be accessed from the Office’s website. The Office strongly encourages applicants to use the online application whenever possible. The benefits to filing an online application include: • Lower filing fees for online applications: The filing fee for an online application is lower than the filing fee for a paper application. For a list of the current filing fees, see the Office’s fee schedule. • Faster processing: The Office typically processes electronic claims three to six months sooner than non-electronic claims. Current processing times are listed on the Office’s website • Multiple options for paying the filing fee: An applicant may pay the filing fee for an online application by credit card, debit card, electronic check, or with a U.S Copyright Office deposit account, while in most cases an applicant may pay the filing fee for a paper

application only by check, money order, or deposit account. • Easier submission of the deposit copy(ies): For certain types of works, the applicant may upload deposit copy(ies) directly to the online system as an electronic file, instead of having to submit physical deposit copies through the mail. The Office lists the acceptable file types on its website. If the work is published in hard copy form, the applicant may be required to mail a physical copy to the Office, but filing the application electronically will expedite processing. • The ability to track the status of the application: After submission, the online system allows the applicant to log in and see whether the online application is still pending or whether it has been registered and closed. For detailed information on completing an online application, see Chapter 600. For information on completing an online application for a group of serials, a group of contributions to periodicals, a group of published photographs,

or a group of updates or revisions to a database predominantly consisting of photographs, see Chapter 1100, Sections 1109, 1115, 1116, and 1117. For information on completing an online application for a supplementary registration, see Chapter 1800, Section 1802.8(A) Once the online application has been submitted, the Office automatically issues an email confirming that the application has been received. If there are any issues regarding the claim, a registration specialist will communicate with the applicant via telephone, email, or mail to address those issues. For more information on communications between the Office and the applicant, see Chapter 600, Section 605. Chapter 200 | 5 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Overview of the Registration Process 204.1(B) Paper Applications At this time, applicants must use a paper application to apply for some types of registrations, namely: • A group registration for daily newspapers, daily newsletters, or databases that do

not consist predominantly of photographs. • Renewal registrations. • GATT registrations. • A supplementary registration that corrects or amplifies the information in a renewal registration, a GATT registration, or a registration for a database that does not consist predominantly of photographs. • Mask work and vessel design registrations. In such cases, the applicant must submit a paper application on the appropriate form by mail, courier, or hand delivery. For detailed information on these types of paper applications, see Chapter 1400, Sections 1402.4(B) and 14026(B) through 14029 In all other cases, the Office strongly discourages applicants from using paper applications for the reasons discussed in Section 204.1(A) Applicants may download paper applications from the Office’s website, or by requesting the forms from the Public Information Office via email, fax, telephone, or in person. Once completed, the applicant may submit the paper application, along with the required

deposit copy(ies) and filing fee, to the Office by mail, courier, or hand delivery. For general information on how to complete a paper application, see the instructions provided with each form. For specific information on how to complete each space of a paper application, see Chapter 600. For information on how to submit a paper application by mail, courier, or hand delivery, see Sections 204.1(B)(1) through 2041(B)(3) below 204.1(B)(1) By Mail The address for submitting a paper application, filing fee, and deposit copy(ies) to the U.S Copyright Office is set forth in space 9 of the paper application in the space marked “Mail To,” which may be found at the bottom of every paper application. Be advised that all packages that are submitted to the Office by mail will be screened for the presence of anthrax and other deadly contaminants. This screening will delay examination of the registration materials (i.e, the application, filing fee, and deposit copy(ies)) and, in some cases, it

could possibly damage the deposit copy(ies), which may cause additional delays. For more information on the screening procedure, see Chapter 1500, Section 1508.6 Chapter 200 | 6 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Overview of the Registration Process 204.1(B)(2) By Courier To submit a paper application, filing fee, and deposit copy(ies) by courier, an applicant must include all of the required elements in a single package and deliver it to the Congressional Courier Acceptance Site (“CCAS”), which is located at 2nd and D Streets NE, Washington, DC. This location is open Monday through Friday from 8:30 a.m to 4:30 pm Eastern Time, except for federal holidays. Items delivered to this location typically are sent to the U.S Copyright Office the next working day. Registration materials submitted through a courier service do not receive a dated receipt from the Office but instead will receive one dated by CCAS. The Office considers the CCAS date of receipt as the date of

receipt in the Office. 204.1(B)(3) By Hand Delivery To submit a paper application, filing fee, and deposit copy(ies) in person, an applicant must deliver all of the required elements to the U.S Copyright Office’s Public Information Office This Office is open to the public Monday through Friday, from 8:30 a.m to 5:00 pm Eastern Time, except federal holidays, and is located at the following address: Public Information Office (PIO) Library of Congress, United States Copyright Office James Madison Memorial Building, Room LM-401 101 Independence Avenue SE Washington DC 20559 An applicant who delivers registration materials to the Public Information Office will receive a date-stamped receipt that lists the title of no more than one of the works listed in the application. note: Visitors to the U.S Copyright Office must pass through security before entering the building. Sealed packages or packages that are more than twenty-four inches wide by fifteen inches high are not permitted. 204.2

Filing Fee The current filing fees for online and paper applications are set forth in the U.S Copyright Office’s fee schedule, which is posted on the Office’s website All filing fees are subject to change For information concerning the types of payments that the Office will accept, see Chapter 1400, Section 1403.4 If the applicant fails to submit the correct filing fee, a member of the Office’s staff will notify the applicant in writing. If the applicant submits the correct filing fee within the specified time frame, the effective date of registration will be changed to reflect the date that the funds were received. If the Office does not receive the correct filing fee within the specified time frame, the Office will close the file. If the applicant wishes to resubmit the claim, the applicant must file a new application, new deposit copy(ies), and the correct filing fee. The effective date of registration for a new claim will be based on the date that the new submission is

received by the Office Chapter 200 | 7 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Overview of the Registration Process For a discussion of the effective date of registration, see Section 209 below. For a discussion of the Office’s practices and procedures for closing a file for failure to respond to a written communication, see Chapter 600, Sections 605.7 and 6253(B) 204.3 Deposit Copy(ies) The term “deposit” is frequently misunderstood. It refers to the copy or copies of a work that are submitted to the U.S Copyright Office It does not refer to the filing fee that must be paid in order to register a work with the Office. As a general rule, the applicant must submit a complete copy or copies of the work to register a claim to copyright. In certain cases, the US Copyright Office may accept identifying material in lieu of a complete copy, or the Office may grant special relief from the deposit requirements. (For a definition and discussion of identifying material and

special relief, see Chapter 1500, Sections 1506 and 1508.8) As discussed above, the deposit copy(ies) for a published work also may satisfy the mandatory deposit requirement for certain works that are published in the United States. If the applicant fails to submit a complete copy of the work, fails to submit sufficient identifying material, and/or fails to obtain special relief from the deposit requirements, the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant. If the Office does not receive the correct deposit within the specified time frame, the specialist will close the file. If the applicant wishes to resubmit the claim, the applicant must file a new application, new deposit copy(ies), and the correct filing fee. The effective date of registration for a new claim will be based on the date that the new submission is received by the Office. In specific instances, the deposit copy(ies) may be submitted in digital or physical format. The deposit copy(ies) must conform to

certain requirements depending on the type of work, the deposit requirements, and whether the work is published or unpublished. As a general rule, the deposit copy(ies) should be clear and should contain all the authorship that the applicant intends to register. An application submitted with an incomplete or unclear deposit copy(ies) will be delayed until the Office receives a complete and/or clear copy. Delays due to incomplete and/or unclear deposit copy(ies) may affect the effective date of registration, which is discussed in Section 209 below. Once the Office receives the registration materials, a registration specialist will examine the deposit copy(ies) to determine if the work is eligible for registration. The Office will not return the deposit copy(ies) or the identifying material to the applicant. General information on the procedure for submitting the deposit copy(ies) in digital or physical format is set forth in Sections 204.3(A) and 2043(B) below For detailed information

on the deposit requirements for registration and the mandatory deposit requirements, see Chapter 1500. 204.3(A) Deposit Copy(ies) Submitted in Electronic Format The applicant may submit deposit copy(ies) electronically through the online registration system if the work meets any of the following requirements: • The work is unpublished; Chapter 200 | 8 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Overview of the Registration Process • The work has been published only in a digital format; or • The work has been published and identifying material is the appropriate deposit for that type of work. (For a detailed discussion of identifying material, see Chapter 1500, Section 1506.) An applicant must submit the deposit copy(ies) in an acceptable file format. Failure to submit the deposit copy(ies) in an acceptable file format may delay the examination of the claim, and the applicant may be required to submit an acceptable file type that the U.S Copyright Office can access. The

Office will not establish an effective date of registration until the Office receives a file type that can be opened and examined by a registration specialist. The currently acceptable file formats are listed on the Office’s website. If an applicant submits an online application and the work does not meet the requirements listed above, the applicant must submit deposit copy(ies) in a physical format. Likewise, applicants who submit a paper application must submit the deposit copy(ies) in a physical format by mail, courier, or hand delivery (not electronically). For a discussion of the procedure for submitting the deposit copy(ies) in physical format, see Section 204.3(B) below 204.3(B) Deposit Copy(ies) Submitted in Physical Format Physical deposit copies should be submitted to the U.S Copyright Office by mail, courier, or hand delivery if (i) the work does not meet the requirements listed in Section 204.3(A), (ii) the applicant is submitting a paper application rather than an

online application, or (iii) if the applicant prefers to submit the deposit copy(ies) in a physical format rather than a digital format. When completing an online application, the applicant will be given an opportunity to print a deposit copy shipping slip that corresponds to the online application. The applicant must print the shipping slip, attach it to each deposit copy, and send all of these items in a single package to the address specified on the shipping slip. (For further information concerning this procedure, see Chapter 600, Section 6252(D) and Chapter 1500, Sections 15082 through 15085) In such cases, the effective date of registration is based on the date the Office receives the deposit copy(ies) along with the corresponding shipping slip. If an applicant does not include the shipping slip with each mailed physical deposit the Office will not be able to connect the deposit to an application. When submitting a paper application, an applicant should send the completed

application, proper filing fee, and complete and clear deposit copy(ies) in a single package to the address specified in space 9 marked “Mail To,” which may be found at the bottom of every paper application. 205 Privacy The applicant should not provide any private or confidential information in the application that is not required for registration. All of the information that the applicant provides in the application is a permanent part of the public record, and the US Copyright Office generally cannot remove any information from the public record once a registration has been issued. Section 705(a) of the Copyright Act requires the Register of Copyrights to prepare and maintain “records of deposits, registrations, recordations, and other actions” taken by the Office. 17 USC Chapter 200 | 9 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Overview of the Registration Process § 705(a). Section 705(b) states that all records maintained by the Office in connection with a

completed copyright registration “shall be open to public inspection.” 17 USC § 705(b) With regard to copyright registrations, the Office requests and receives personally identifiable information (“PII”), such as birth dates, addresses, and telephone numbers. The collection of certain types of PII is mandated by statute or regulation, while other requested information is optional for the applicant to provide. See 17 USC § 409 Both types of information are collectively referred to as “Requested PII” The Office will make information provided in a copyright application available to the general public upon request, and much of this information will be available on the Internet through the Office’s online database. For an example of the type of information that is typically displayed in the Office’s online database, see the privacy page on the Office’s website. The Office does not request, but sometimes receives, additional PII, such as driver’s license, social

security, and credit card numbers. This type of information is unnecessary for copyright registration and is referred to in the Office’s regulations as “extraneous PII” See 37 CFR § 2012(f) Applicants should not provide extraneous PII in an application. To protect the privacy of applicants, the Office may remove this type of information from an application during the examination process on its own initiative If extraneous PII is included within the Office’s public records, an author or claimant may request removal of this information in accordance with the Office’s regulations. There is no fee for this service See id Additionally, applicants should not provide any other types of private or confidential information in the application that is not required for registration, because it may also be included in the Office’s online and offline public records. Before submitting an application, an applicant should consider whether to include a nickname, alias, or other personal

information that is not required for registration. For example, providing the name, address, telephone number, and email address of the person who should be contacted for permission to use the work is optional, and the Office will accept an application even if an applicant leaves the Rights and Permissions section blank. Although an applicant is encouraged to provide contact information for rights and permission purposes, it is important to understand that if the applicant completes this portion of the application, the Office will include this information in the online database. If an applicant wants to provide contact information for persons who may be interested in using the work but does not want to provide a home address or other personal information the applicant should consider providing the name of a designated agent, a P.O Box, or a designated email address in the Rights and Permissions field of the application. Modification of the information in the Office’s online public

record (but not its offline public record) is available where the author or claimant submits a written request to remove or replace non-personally identifiable information for certain types of Requested PII (such as replacing a home address with a P.O Box number), and pays the appropriate fee for this service See 37 CFR §§ 201.1(c)(8), 2012(e) See generally Removal of Personally Identifiable Information From Registration Records, 82 Fed. Reg 9004 (Feb 2, 2017) Chapter 200 | 10 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Overview of the Registration Process 206 General Overview of the Examination Process Once the U.S Copyright Office receives the application, deposit copy(ies), and filing fee, the application and deposit copy(ies) will be sent to the Registration Program, where they will be assigned to a registration specialist. The specialist will examine these materials to determine whether the work constitutes copyrightable subject matter and if the applicant has met the

other legal and formal requirements, including those set forth in the Copyright Act, the Copyright Office regulations, and the Compendium of U.S Copyright Office Practices See 17 USC § 410(a). For detailed information on this process, see Chapter 600 207 Special Handling Special handling is a procedure for expediting the examination of an application to register a claim to copyright. There is an additional fee for this expedited service For information concerning this fee, see the Office’s fee schedule The U.S Copyright Office offers this service in certain circumstances where a copyright owner or other interested parties have a compelling reason for an expedited decision on a pending application. Special handling may be requested for an online application or a paper application in the following circumstances: • Pending or prospective litigation; • Customs matters; or • Contract or publishing deadlines that necessitate the expedited issuance of a certificate of

registration. Once it has received and approved a request for special handling, the Office will make every attempt to process the application within five business days, although the Office cannot guarantee that it will process all special handling applications within that time frame, particularly if the claims present issues requiring correspondence. For detailed information on special handling, see Chapter 600, Section 623. 208 Withdrawing an Application An applicant may submit a request to withdraw a pending application at any time before the U.S Copyright Office has issued a certificate of registration or has refused to register the claim The request should be made in writing and it should explain why the applicant is seeking to withdraw the claim. The request should be addressed to the “Associate Register of Copyrights and Director of Registration Policy & Practice.” The applicant may email the request to the registration specialist who has been assigned to the claim.

Alternatively, the applicant may mail the request to the following address: Chapter 200 | 11 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Overview of the Registration Process Associate Register of Copyrights and Director of Registration Policy & Practice Registration Program U.S Copyright Office 101 Independence Avenue SE Washington, DC 20559 The Office will use its discretion to decide whether to approve or deny a timely withdrawal request. In making this decision, the Office will balance the interest of the applicant with the public interest in maintaining the integrity of the registration record. The Office does not routinely grant withdrawals, particularly where the request is made merely to avoid a refusal to register. In the event that the Office approves a withdrawal request, the Office will not refund the filing fee and will not return the deposit copy(ies). The Office will not reinstate an application once it has been withdrawn. If the applicant wishes to resubmit the

claim, the applicant must file a new application, new deposit copy(ies), and the correct filing fee. The effective date of registration for a new claim will be based on the date that the new submission is received by the Office 209 The Certificate of Registration and the Effective Date of Registration If the applicant appears to meet the legal and formal requirements, the U.S Copyright Office will register the claim. The Office will issue a certificate of registration which contains much of the information that the applicant provided in the application. In addition, the Office will create an online public record for the registration, which may be accessed through the Office’s online database. See 17 USC § 410(a) Both the certificate and the online public record contain a registration number and an effective date of registration. The effective date of registration is the date on which the Office received an acceptable application, complete deposit copy(ies), and the proper filing

fee. See 17 USC § 410(d). For detailed information on this topic, see Chapter 600, Section 625 210 When Does a Registration Expire? Registrations and renewal registrations issued under the current statute (the 1976 Act) expire when the work enters the public domain in the United States. As discussed in Section 203, a copyrighted work enters the public domain in this country when the copyright term for that work has expired under U.S law Registrations issued under the prior statute (the 1909 Act) expire at the end of the first twentyeight years of the copyright term, and if the copyright is renewed, the renewal registration expires at the end of the renewal term. See Supplementary Registration, 81 Fed Reg 86,656, 86,660 n23 (Dec. 1, 2016) The fact that a work has entered the public domain in a foreign jurisdiction does not mean it has entered the public domain in the United States. Chapter 200 | 12 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Overview of the Registration Process

211 Registration Refused After Examination The U.S Copyright Office registers claims to copyright and issues certificates of registration only when an applicant appears to meet the legal and formal requirements set forth in the Copyright Act, the Copyright Office regulations, and the Compendium of U.S Copyright Office Practices See 17 U.SC § 410(a) If the Office finds that an applicant has not met the legal requirements for copyright registration, the Office will refuse to register the claim and will specify the reasons for its decision. The Office will notify the applicant by sending a written communication to the address provided in the Correspondent field/space of the application. For examples of situations in which the Office will refuse to register a claim because of a failure to meet the legal and/or formal requirements, see Chapter 600, Section 608, and Chapter 1500, Section 1503.2 An applicant may appeal a refusal to register a copyright claim. For more information on the

appeals process, see Chapter 1700. An applicant may institute a civil suit for copyright infringement even if the Office has refused to register a claim, provided that the applicant satisfies the requirements set forth in Section 411(a) of the Copyright Act. For information concerning this topic, see Chapter 1700, Section 1706 212 212.1 General Policies Regarding Inaccuracies and Misrepresentations Material Misrepresentations Knowingly making a false representation of a material fact in an application for copyright registration, or in any written statement filed in connection with the application, is a crime that is punishable under 17 U.SC § 506(e) 212.2 Immaterial Inaccuracies in the Application As a general rule, the registration specialist may ignore immaterial inaccuracies in the application that appear to be inadvertent and do not affect the registrability of the claim. For information concerning the U.S Copyright Office’s practices and procedures for dealing with

inaccuracies in an application, see Chapter 600, Section 603. 212.3 Errors or Omissions in a Certificate of Registration If the information set forth in the registration record is incorrect or incomplete, an applicant may be able to correct that error or omission by submitting an application for a supplementary registration, or under certain limited circumstances, by submitting a new application for a new basic registration. For a discussion of these procedures, see Chapter 1800, Sections 1802 and 1803. Chapter 200 | 13 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Overview of the Registration Process 212.4 Cancellation If the U.S Copyright Office discovers an error or omission in the registration record, it may contact the applicant to correct the error, or it may cancel the registration if warranted under the Office’s cancellation regulations. See 37 CFR § 2017 For a discussion of cancellation, see Chapter 1800, Section 1807. 213 The Registration Process at a Glance The

following chart illustrates the registration process from start to finish: Chapter 200 | 14 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Overview of the Registration Process Applicant submits application, fee, and deposit copy(ies). Applicant cures deficiencies. Applicant provides sufficient application, fee, deposit copy(ies), and the work is copyrightable. If the work is copyrightable but the application, fee, and/or deposit copy(ies) are insufficient, the Copyright Office communicates with the applicant. Applicant fails to cure deficiencies or does not reply. The Copyright Office closes the claim. The Copyright Office determines it is copyrightable. On second review, if the Copyright Office finds the work is uncopyrightable, the Copyright Office affirms the rejection. If the Copyright Office finds the work is uncopyrightable, the claim is rejected. Applicant may ask the Office to reconsider the rejection in writing for an additional fee. The Office reviews the request

to determine if the work is copyrightable. On first review, if the Copyright Office finds the work uncopyrightable, the claim is rejected. Applicant may ask the Office to reconsider the rejection in writing for an additional fee. The Office reviews the request to determine if the work is copyrightable. The Copyright Office registers the claim. Certificate is mailed to the applicant. The Copyright Office determines the work is copyrightable. Applicant Copyright Office Chapter 200 | 15 revised 09/29/2017 compendium: chapter 300 COPYRIGHTABLE AUTHORSHIP Contents 301 What This Chapter Covers 302 The Legal Framework 303 Copyrightability Is Determined Based on U.S Copyright Law 304 Eligibility 305 The Fixation Requirement 306 The Human Authorship Requirement 307 Copyrightable Subject Matter 4 308 The Originality Requirement 5 1 Independent Creation 308.2 Creativity 3 4 5 6 Examining a Work for Copyrightable Authorship 309.1 Prior Works and Prior

Registrations 309.2 Facts Stated in the Application 309.3 No Precedential Value 310 6 7 7 7 Factors That Will Not Be Considered in the Examination of Originality 310.1 Novelty or Ingenuity 310.2 Aesthetic Value, Artistic Merit, and Intrinsic Quality 310.3 Symbolic Meaning and Impression 310.4 Look and Feel 310.5 The Author’s Inspiration and Intent 310.6 The Author’s Skill and Experience 310.7 The Time, Effort, or Expense Required to Create the Work 310.8 Design Alternatives 310.9 Material Composition of the Work 310.10 311 2 2 308.1 309 1 8 8 8 9 9 9 9 10 Commercial Appeal or Success Derivative Works 9 10 10 10 311.1 Copyrightable Subject Matter 11 311.2 The Originality Requirement for Derivative Works 11 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered 312 Compilations and Collective Works 12 312.1 Copyrightable Subject Matter 312.2 The Originality Requirement for Compilations

312.3 The Originality Requirement for Collective Works 313 Uncopyrightable Material 13 14 16 16 313.1 Works That Have Not Been Fixed 313.2 Works That Lack Human Authorship 313.3 Works That Do Not Constitute Copyrightable Subject Matter 313.3(A) Ideas, Procedures, Processes, Systems, Methods of Operation, Concepts, Principles, or Discoveries 18 313.3(B) Merger of Idea and Expression 313.3(C) Facts 313.3(D) Typeface and Mere Variations of Typographic Ornamentation 313.3(E) Format and Layout 313.4 16 16 17 19 19 20 20 Works That Do Not Satisfy the Originality Requirement 21 313.4(A) Mere Copies 21 313.4(B) De Minimis Authorship 313.4(C) Words and Short Phrases 313.4(D) Works Consisting Entirely of Information That Is Common Property 313.4(E) Measuring and Computing Devices 313.4(F) Mere Listing of Ingredients or Contents 313.4(G) Blank Forms 313.4(H) Characters 22 23 24 24 25 26 313.4(I) Scènes à Faire 313.4(J) Familiar Symbols and

Designs 313.4(K) 26 Mere Variations of Coloring 27 28 313.5 Specific Types of Works That May Contain Uncopyrightable Material 313.6 Other Types of Works That Cannot Be Registered with the U.S Copyright Office 313.6(A) Foreign Works That Are Not Eligible for Copyright Protection in the United States 29 313.6(B) Unlawful Use of Preexisting Material in a Derivative Work, a Compilation, or a Collective Work 29 313.6(C) Government Works U.S Government Works 313.6(C)(2) Government Edicts | ii 28 29 30 313.6(C)(1) Chapter 300 24 30 31 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered 313.6(D) Chapter 300 Works in the Public Domain 31 314 Use of Protected Names, Characters, Slogans, Symbols, Seals, Emblems, and Insignia 32 315 Obscenity 316 Classified Material | iii 32 33 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered Chapter 300 | iv revised 09/29/2017

compendium: chapter 300 COPYRIGHTABLE AUTHORSHIP: What Can Be Registered 301 What This Chapter Covers This Chapter discusses the U.S Copyright Office’s practices and procedures for evaluating copyrightable authorship For guidance on practices and procedures relating to specific types of works, see the following Chapters: • For a general overview of the registration process, see Chapter 200. • For guidance in determining who may file an application and who may be named as the copyright claimant, see Chapter 400. • For guidance in identifying the work that will be submitted for registration, see Chapter 500. • For guidance in completing the application, see Chapter 600. • For a discussion of literary works, see Chapter 700. • For a discussion of works of the performing arts, see Chapter 800. • For a discussion of visual art works, see Chapter 900. • For a discussion of websites and website content, see Chapter 1000. • For a discussion of the options for

registering certain groups of works, see Chapter 1100. • For a discussion of renewal registrations, see Chapter 2100. 302 The Legal Framework The Copyright Act protects “original works of authorship fixed in any tangible medium of expression, now known or later developed, from which they can be perceived, reproduced, or otherwise communicated, either directly or with the aid of a machine or device.” 17 USC § 102(a) Section 410(a) of the statute states that the Register of Copyrights shall register a claim to copyright and issue a certificate of registration if the U.S Copyright Office determines that “the material deposited constitutes copyrightable subject matter and that the other legal and formal requirements have been met.” If the Office determines that “the material deposited does not constitute copyrightable subject matter or that the claim is invalid for any other reason, the Register shall refuse registration and shall notify the applicant in writing of the

reasons for such refusal.” 17 USC § 410(b) revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered In determining whether a work is copyrightable, the Office analyzes questions such as: • Is the work eligible for copyright protection in the United States? • Has the work been fixed in a tangible medium of expression? • Was the work created by a human author? • Does the work constitute copyrightable subject matter? • Is the work sufficiently original? -- Was the work independently created? -- Does the work possess at least some minimal degree of creativity? If the answer to all of these questions is “yes,” the work is copyrightable and the claim may be registered, as long as there are no other issues in the registration materials that raise questions concerning the claim and as long as the other legal and formal requirements have been met. These questions are discussed in Sections 304 through 308 below. For information on how the

Office interprets these questions when examining derivative works, compilations, and collective works, see Sections 311 and 312. For information on how the Office interprets these questions when examining specific types of literary works, works of the performing arts, and visual art works, see Chapters 700, 800, and 900. 303 Copyrightability Is Determined Based on U.S Copyright Law The U.S Copyright Act is the exclusive source of copyright protection in the United States To register a work with the U.S Copyright Office, all applicantsboth foreign and domesticmust satisfy the requirements of US copyright law In determining whether a work is copyrightable, the Office applies U.S copyright law pursuant to title 17 of the US Code, even if the work was created in a foreign country, first published in a foreign country, or created by a citizen, domiciliary, or habitual resident of a foreign country. 304 Eligibility The U.S Copyright Office may register a work of authorship if it is

eligible for copyright protection in the United States All US worksboth published and unpublishedcreated on or after January 1, 1978, are eligible for U.S copyright protection 17 USC § 104(a), (b) Additionally, all unpublished foreign works and most published foreign works are eligible for U.S copyright protection. Id For more information on the eligibility requirements for published foreign works, see Chapter 2000, Section 2003. Chapter 300 | 2 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered 305 The Fixation Requirement A work of authorship may be deemed copyrightable, provided that it has been “fixed in any tangible medium of expression, now known or later developed, from which [it] can be perceived, reproduced, or otherwise communicated, either directly or indirectly with the aid of a machine or device.” 17 USC § 102(a) Specifically, the work must be fixed in a copy or phonorecord “by or under the authority of the author”

and the work must be “sufficiently permanent or stable to permit it to be perceived, reproduced, or otherwise communicated for a period of more than transitory duration.” 17 USC § 101 (definition of “fixed”) The terms “copy” and “phonorecord” are very broad. They cover “all of the material objects in which copyrightable works are capable of being fixed,” H.R Rep No 94-1476, at 53 (1976), reprinted in 1976 USCCAN 5659, 56661 • Copies are “material objects, other than phonorecords, in which a work is fixed by any method now known or later developed, and from which the work can be perceived, reproduced, or otherwise communicated, either directly or with the aid of a machine or device,” including the material object “in which the work is first fixed.” 17 USC § 101 • Phonorecords are “material objects in which sounds, other than those accompanying a motion picture or other audiovisual work, are fixed by any method now known or later developed, and from

which the sounds can be perceived, reproduced, or otherwise communicated, either directly or with the aid of a machine or device,” including “the material object in which the sounds are first fixed.” 17 USC § 101 There are countless ways that a work may be fixed in a copy or phonorecord and “it makes no difference what the form, manner, or medium of fixation may be.” HR Rep No 94-1476, at 52 (1976), reprinted in 1976 U.SCCAN at 5666 For example, a work may be expressed in “words, numbers, notes, sounds, pictures, or any other graphic or symbolic indicia” and the author’s expression may be fixed “in a physical object in written, printed, photographic, sculptural, punched, magnetic, or any other stable form.” Id Most works are fixed by their very nature, such as an article printed on paper, a song recorded in a digital audio file, a sculpture rendered in bronze, a screenplay saved in a data file, or an audiovisual work captured on film. Nevertheless, some works of

authorship may not satisfy the fixation requirement, such as an improvisational speech, sketch, dance, or other performance that is not recorded in a tangible medium of expression. Other works may be temporarily embodied in a tangible form, but may not be sufficiently permanent or stable to warrant copyright protection, such as “purely evanescent or transient reproductions such as those projected briefly on a screen, shown electronically on a television, or captured momentarily in the memory of a computer.” HR Rep No 94-1476, at 53 (1976), reprinted in 1976 USCCAN at 5666 (internal quotations marks omitted). The Office rarely encounters works that do not satisfy the fixation requirement because the Office requires applicants to submit copies or phonorecords that contain a visually or aurally perceptible copy of the work. However, the Office may communicate with the applicant or may refuse registration if the work or the medium of expression only exists for a transitory period 1

The provisions of the House Report cited or quoted throughout this Chapter are identical to the corresponding provisions set forth in Senate Report No. 94-473 (1975) Chapter 300 | 3 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered of time, if the work or the medium is constantly changing, or if the medium does not allow the specific elements of the work to be perceived, reproduced, or otherwise communicated in a consistent and uniform manner. 306 The Human Authorship Requirement The U.S Copyright Office will register an original work of authorship, provided that the work was created by a human being. The copyright law only protects “the fruits of intellectual labor” that “are founded in the creative powers of the mind.” Trade-Mark Cases, 100 US 82, 94 (1879) Because copyright law is limited to “original intellectual conceptions of the author,” the Office will refuse to register a claim if it determines that a human being

did not create the work. Burrow-Giles Lithographic Co v Sarony, 111 U.S 53, 58 (1884) For representative examples of works that do not satisfy this requirement, see Section 313.2 below 307 Copyrightable Subject Matter A work of authorship may be registered with the U.S Copyright Office, provided that it constitutes copyrightable subject matter Section 102(a) of the Copyright Act states that the subject matter of copyright includes the following categories of works: • Literary works. • Musical works, including any accompanying words. • Dramatic works, including any accompanying music. • Pantomimes and choreographic works. • Pictorial, graphic, and sculptural works. • Motion pictures and other audiovisual works. • Sound recordings. • Architectural works. Section 102(a) states that the subject matter of copyright also includes derivative works, compilations, and collective works. See 17 USC § 103(a);; see also 17 USC § 101 (explaining that “[t]he term

‘compilation’ includes collective works”). These types of works are a subset of the categories set forth in Section 102(a), rather than separate and distinct categories of works. In other words, derivative works, compilations, and collective works may be registered, provided that the work falls within one or more of the congressionally established categories of authorship under Section 102(a). See Registration of Claims to Copyright, 77 Fed Reg 37,605, 37,606 (June 22, 2012). Chapter 300 | 4 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered The categories of works set forth in Section 102(a) “do not necessarily exhaust the scope of ‘original works of authorship’ that the [Copyright Act] is intended to protect.” HR Rep No 94-1476, at 53 (1976), reprinted in 1976 U.SCCAN at 5666 The statute “sets out the general area of copyrightable subject matter” with “sufficient flexibility to free the courts from rigid or outmoded

concepts of the scope of particular categories.” Id The categories are also “overlapping in the sense that a work falling within one class may encompass works coming within some or all of the other categories.” Id Congress gave federal courts the flexibility to interpret the scope of the existing subject matter categories, but only Congress has the authority to create entirely new categories of authorship. “If the federal courts do not have the authority to establish new categories of subject matter, it necessarily follows that the Copyright Office also has no such authority in the absence of any clear delegation of authority to the Register of Copyrights.” 77 Fed Reg at 37,607 While the categories listed in Section 102(a) are “very broad there are unquestionably other areas of existing subject matter that [the Copyright Act] does not propose to protect.” HR Rep. No 94-1476, at 52 (1976), reprinted in 1976 USCCAN at 5665 If the Office determines that a work does not fall

within the categories of copyrightable subject matter, the Office will refuse to register the claim. For representative examples of works that do not satisfy this requirement, see Sections 3133 and 3136(C) below 308 The Originality Requirement Originality is “the bedrock principle of copyright” and “the very premise of copyright law.” Feist Publications, Inc. v Rural Telephone Service Co, Inc, 499 US 340, 347 (1991) (citation omitted) “To qualify for copyright protection, a work must be original to the author,” which means that the work must be “independently created by the author” and it must possess “at least some minimal degree of creativity.” Id at 345 (citations omitted) These requirements are discussed in Sections 308.1 and 3082 below 308.1 Independent Creation The term “independent creation” means that the author created the work without copying from other works. See Feist, 499 US at 345 The copyright law protects “those components of a work that

are original to the author,” but “originality” does not require “novelty.” Id at 345, 348 A work may satisfy the independent creation requirement “even though it closely resembles other works so long as the similarity is fortuitous, not the result of copying.” Id at 345 For example, if two authors created works that are similar or even identical, each work could be registered provided that the authors did not copy expression from each other. As a general rule, the Office will accept the applicant’s representation that the work was independently created by the author(s) named in the application, unless that statement is implausible or is contradicted by information provided elsewhere in the registration materials or in the Office’s records or by information that is known to the registration specialist. If the specialist Chapter 300 | 5 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered determines that the work was not

independently created, he or she may communicate with the applicant or may refuse to register the claim. For representative examples of works that do not satisfy the independent creation requirement, see Section 313.4(A) below 308.2 Creativity A work of authorship must possess “some minimal degree of creativity” to sustain a copyright claim. Feist, 499 US at 358, 362 (citation omitted) “[T]he requisite level of creativity is extremely low.” Even a “slight amount” of creative expression will suffice “The vast majority of works make the grade quite easily, as they possess some creative spark, ‘no matter how crude, humble or obvious it might be.’” Id at 346 (citation omitted) An author’s expression does not need to “be presented in an innovative or surprising way,” but it “cannot be so mechanical or routine as to require no creativity whatsoever.” A work that it is “entirely typical,” “garden-variety,” or “devoid of even the slightest traces of

creativity” does not satisfy the originality requirement. Feist, 499 US at 362 “[T]here is nothing remotely creative” about a work that merely reflects “an age-old practice, firmly rooted in tradition and so commonplace that it has come to be expected as a matter of course.” Id at 363 Likewise, a work “does not possess the minimal creative spark required by the Copyright Act” if the author’s expression is “obvious” or “practically inevitable.” Id at 363 Although the creativity standard is low, it is not limitless. Id at 362 “There remains a narrow category of works in which the creative spark is utterly lacking or so trivial as to be virtually nonexistent. Such works are incapable of sustaining a valid copyright” Id at 359 (citations omitted) If the Office determines that a work possesses sufficient creativity, it will register the claim and issue a certificate of registration. Conversely, if the Office determines that the work does not possess some minimal

degree of creativity, it will refuse registration. For more information on works that do not satisfy the creativity requirement, see Sections 313.4(A) through 3134(K) below 309 Examining a Work for Copyrightable Authorship As discussed in Section 302, the U.S Copyright Office will examine a work of authorship to determine if “the material deposited constitutes copyrightable subject matter” and if “the other legal and formal requirements have been met.” 17 USC § 410(a) In determining whether a work is copyrightable, the registration specialist will consider (i) the application, (ii) the deposit copy(ies), (iii) whether the correct the filing fee was submitted, as well as (iv) any communications between the applicant and the Office relating to the registration of the claim or any other material that has been submitted to the Office. Together, these items are referred to as the “registration materials” As discussed in Sections 304 through 308, a work may be copyrightable

(i) if it is eligible for copyright protection in the United States, (ii) if the work has been fixed in a tangible medium of expression, (iii) if the work was created by a human author, (iv) if the work constitutes copy- Chapter 300 | 6 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered rightable subject matter, and (v) if the work contains at least a minimum amount of creative authorship that is original to the author. When examining a claim to copyright, the registration specialist will use objective criteria to determine whether the work satisfies these requirements by reviewing the information provided in the application and by examining the deposit copy(ies), including its individual elements as well as the work as a whole. The specific criteria that the specialist will consider when examining a derivative work, a compilation, or a collective work are discussed in Sections 311 and 312 The specific criteria that the specialist will

consider when examining a literary work, a work of the performing arts, or a work of the visual arts are discussed in Chapters 700, 800, and 900. 309.1 Prior Works and Prior Registrations As a general rule, the registration specialist will not search the U.S Copyright Office’s records to determine if the work has been registered before, unless there is conflicting information in the registration materials or other sources of information that are known by the Office or the general public. The specialist will not compare the deposit copy(ies) with other works that have been previously registered with the Office. Likewise, the specialist generally will not compare the deposit copy(ies) with other works to determine whether the applicant is attempting to register a work that is substantially similar to another work of authorship, unless the applicant appears to be asserting a claim in a work that is unusually similar to another work of authorship that is known to the specialist. 309.2

Facts Stated in the Application The U.S Copyright Office generally will accept the facts stated in the application and other registration materials, unless they are implausible or conflict with information in the registration materials, the Office’s records, or other sources of information that are known by the Office or the general public. Knowingly making a false representation of a material fact in an application for copyright registration, or in any written statement filed in connection with an application, is a crime that is punishable under 17 U.SC § 506(e) Ordinarily, the Office will not conduct its own factual investigation to confirm the truth of the statements made in the application. However, the Office may take administrative notice of facts or matters that are known by the Office or the general public, and may communicate with the applicant if the application appears to contain inaccurate or erroneous information. 309.3 No Precedential Value The determination of

copyrightability will be made on a case-by-case basis. The fact that the U.S Copyright Office registered a particular work does not necessarily mean that the Office will register similar types of works or works that fall within the same category. A decision to register a particular work has no precedential value and is not binding upon the Office when it examines any other application. Chapter 300 | 7 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered 310 Factors That Will Not Be Considered in the Examination of Originality As a general rule, the U.S Copyright Office will not consider factors that have no bearing on whether the originality requirement has been met. Examples of such factors are discussed in Sections 310.1 through 31010 below 310.1 Novelty or Ingenuity The U.S Copyright Office will examine each work in isolation to determine whether it satisfies the originality requirement. The fact that a work may be novel, distinctive,

innovative, or even unique is irrelevant to this analysis. See HR Rep No 94-1476, at 51 (1976), reprinted in 1976 U.SCCAN at 5664 (stating “the standard of originality established by the courts does not include requirements of novelty [or] ingenuity” and that Congress did not intend “to enlarge the standard of copyright protection” to impose these requirements). As discussed in Section 308 “originality requires independent creation plus a modicum of creativity.” Feist, 499 US at 346 The author’s expression does not need to be novel, and it does not need to “be presented in an innovative or surprising way.” Id at 362; see also L Batlin & Son v. Snyder, 536 F2d 486, 490 (2d Cir 1976) (“Originality is distinguished from novelty; there must be independent creation, but it need not be invention in the sense of striking uniqueness, ingeniousness, or novelty”). A work of authorship may be original, even though it is neither new nor inventive or even if “it

closely resembles other works.” Feist, 499 US at 345 (explaining that “[o]riginality does not signify novelty”). Conversely, the fact that a work is new, innovative, or even unique does not necessarily mean that it contains a sufficient amount of creative expression to satisfy the originality requirement. 310.2 Aesthetic Value, Artistic Merit, and Intrinsic Quality In determining whether a work contains a sufficient amount of original authorship, the U.S Copyright Office does not consider the aesthetic value, artistic merit, or intrinsic quality of a work. HR Rep No 94-1476, at 51 (1976), reprinted in 1976 USCCAN at 5664 For example, the Office will not look for any particular style of creative expression. Likewise, the Office will not consider whether a work is visually appealing or written in elegant prose. As the Supreme Court noted, “it would be a dangerous undertaking for persons trained only to the law to constitute themselves final judges of the worth of pictorial

illustrations, outside of the narrowest and most obvious limits.” Bleistein v Donaldson Lithographing Co, 188 US 239, 251 (1903). The legislative history for the Copyright Act recognizes that “the standard of originality established by the courts does not include requirements of esthetic merit” and expressly states that Congress did not intend “to enlarge the standard of copyright protection” to impose this requirement. See HR Rep No 94-1476, at 51 (1976), reprinted in 1976 USCCAN at 5664 For the same reasons, the Office will not consider the truth or falsity of the facts set forth in a work of authorship. Nor will the Office consider the soundness or the unsoundness of the views espoused in the work. See Belcher v Tarbox, 486 F2d 1087, 1088 (9th Cir 1973) (“The gravity and immensity of the problems, theological, philosophical, economic and scientific, that would confront a court if this view were adopted are staggering to contemplate. It is surely not a task lightly to

be assumed, and we decline the invitation to assume it.”) (footnote omitted) Chapter 300 | 8 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered 310.3 Symbolic Meaning and Impression When the U.S Copyright Office examines a work of authorship, it determines whether the work “possess[es] the minimal creative spark required by the Copyright Act and the Constitution.” Feist, 499 U.S at 363 The symbolic meaning or impression of a work is irrelevant to this determination The Office will use objective criteria to determine whether a work constitutes copyrightable subject matter and satisfies the originality requirement. In making this determination, the Office will consider the expression that is fixed in the work itself and is perceptible in the deposit copy(ies). Specifically, the Office will focus only on the actual appearance or sound of the work that has been submitted for registration, but will not consider any meaning or

significance that the work may evoke. The fact that creative thought may take place in the mind of the person who encounters a work has no bearing on the issue of originality. See 17 USC § 102 310.4 Look and Feel The U.S Copyright Office will not consider the so-called “look and feel” of a work Invoking a work’s “feel” is not a viable substitute for an objective analysis of the work’s fixed and creative elements. See 4 Melville & David Nimmer, Nimmer on Copyright §1303[A][1][c] (2013) (criticizing the use of “feel” as a “wholly amorphous referent” that “merely invites an abdication of analysis”). 310.5 The Author’s Inspiration and Intent When examining a work for original authorship, the U.S Copyright Office will not consider the author’s inspiration for the work, creative intent, or intended meaning. Instead, the Office will focus solely on the appearance or sound of the work that has been submitted for registration to determine whether it is

original and creative within the meaning of the statute and the relevant case law. The fact that creative thought may take place in the mind of the person who created a work (or a person viewing or listening to the work) has no bearing on the issue of originality unless the work objectively demonstrates original authorship. Mental processes do not themselves provide an objective basis for evaluating creativity. See 17 USC § 102(b) 310.6 The Author’s Skill and Experience The U.S Copyright Office will not consider the author’s creative skill and experience when evaluating a work for copyrightable authorship, because the author’s personal or professional history is irrelevant to the determination of copyrightability. Instead, the Office will focus solely on the appearance or sound of the work that has been submitted for registration to determine whether it satisfies the originality requirement. See L Batlin & Son, 536 F2d at 491 (finding that “the requirement of originality

[cannot] be satisfied simply by the demonstration of ‘physical skill’ or ‘special training’”). 310.7 The Time, Effort, or Expense Required to Create the Work When examining a work for original authorship, the U.S Copyright Office will focus on the appearance or sound of the work that the author created but will not consider the amount of time, effort, or expense required to create the work. These issues have no bearing on whether a Chapter 300 | 9 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered work possesses the minimum creative spark required by the Copyright Act and the Constitution. See, e.g, Feist, 499 US at 352-354, 364 (rejecting the so-called “sweat of the brow” doctrine that provided copyright protection solely as a “reward for the hard work” of creating a work). As Justice O’Connor observed, “copyright rewards originality, not effort” and “[w]ithout a doubt, the ‘sweat of the brow’ doctrine

flouted basic copyright principles.” Id at 352, 354, 364 310.8 Design Alternatives When examining a work for original authorship, the U.S Copyright Office will focus on the appearance or sound of the work that has been submitted for registration, including its individual elements and the work as a whole, to determine whether it contains a sufficient amount of original and creative authorship. As a general rule, the Office will not consider possible design alternatives that the author may have considered when he or she created the work. Likewise, the Office will not consider potential variations in the use of the work, such as the fact that a work could be presented in a different color, in a different size, or with a different orientation. The creative process often requires many choices involving the size, coloring, orientation, proportion, configuration, perspective, or other constituent elements of the work. These types of choices are present in every work of authorship. It is

not the variety of choices available to the author that must be evaluated, but the actual work that the author created. 310.9 Material Composition of the Work As a general rule, the materials used to create a work have no bearing on the originality analysis. For example, the US Copyright Office will not consider the fact that a jewelry design was constructed with precious metals or gemstones, or the fact that a silk screen was printed on a particular paper stock. 310.10 Commercial Appeal or Success The U.S Copyright Office will not consider the marketability or commercial success of the work, because these issues are irrelevant to the originality analysis. “Works may experience commercial success even without originality and works with originality may enjoy none whatsoever.” Paul Morelli Design, Inc. v Tiffany & Co, 200 F Supp 2d 482, 488 (ED Pa 2002) 311 Derivative Works This Section discusses the U.S Copyright Office’s practices and procedures for evaluating the

copyrightability of a derivative work. For a definition and general discussion of derivative works, see Chapter 500, Section 507. For specific instructions on how to prepare an application to register this type of work, see Chapter 600, Sections 613.6, 6175, 6185, 6207, and 621 Chapter 300 | 10 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered 311.1 Copyrightable Subject Matter A derivative work may be registered with the U.S Copyright Office, provided that it constitutes copyrightable subject matter. As discussed in Section 307 above, derivative works are a subset of the subject matter categories, rather than a separate and distinct category of work. In other words, the new material that the author contributed to the derivative work must fall “within one or more of the categories listed in section 102 [of the Copyright Act].” HR Rep No 94-1476, at 57 (1976), reprinted in 1976 U.SCCAN at 5670 If the new material does not fall within

one or more of the congressionally established categories of authorship, the registration specialist may communicate with the applicant if the authorship is questionable or may refuse registration. For example, the Office may register a drawing of a dress or a photograph of a garden, but it cannot register a “revised dress design” or a “genetically modified plant,” because clothing and plants do not constitute copyrightable subject matter under Section 102(a) of the Copyright Act. Cf Registration of Claims to Copyright, 77 Fed. Reg 37,605, 37,606 (June 22, 2012) In addition, the preexisting work that has been recast, transformed, or adapted, “must come within the general subject matter of copyright set forth in section 102, regardless of whether it is or was ever copyrighted.” HR Rep No 94-1476, at 57 (1976), reprinted in 1976 USCCAN at 5670. In other words, the preexisting work must qualify as a literary work; a musical work; a dramatic work; a pantomime or choreographic

work; a pictorial, graphic or sculptural work; a motion picture or audiovisual work; a sound recording; and/or an architectural work. For example, a ballet based on an epic poem would be considered a derivative work, because a poem is a type of literary work. By contrast, a photograph of a lake or a sculpture of a mountain would not be considered a derivative work, because lakes and mountains do not constitute copyrightable subject matter. The fact that the author incorporated uncopyrightable elements of a preexisting work into his or her work does not necessarily mean that the author’s expression qualifies as a derivative work. For example, merely incorporating a word, letter, number, or common geometric shape from one or more preexisting works does not constitute derivative authorship. Instead, the author of the derivative work must recast, transform, or adapt some of the copyrightable portions of a preexisting work. See HR Rep No 94-1476, at 57 (1976), reprinted in 1976 USCCAN at

5670 (explaining that a derivative work “requires a process of recasting, transforming, or adapting ‘one or more preexisting works’” and that “the ‘preexisting work’ must come within the general subject matter of copyright” whereas “[a] ‘compilation’ results from a process of selecting, bringing together, organizing and arranging previously existing material of all kinds, regardless of whether the individual items in the material have been or ever could have been subject to copyright.”) 311.2 The Originality Requirement for Derivative Works Creating a derivative work requires “a process of recasting, transforming, or adapting ‘one or more preexisting works.’” HR Rep No 94-1476, at 57 (1976), reprinted in 1976 USCCAN at 5670. Thus, derivative works contain two distinct forms of authorship: • The authorship in the preexisting work(s) that has been recast, transformed, or adapted within the derivative work; and • The new authorship involved in

recasting, transforming, or adapting those preexisting work(s). Chapter 300 | 11 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered The new authorship that the author contributed to the derivative work may be registered, provided that it contains a sufficient amount of original expression, meaning that the derivative work must be independently created and it must possess more than a modicum of creativity. See Waldman Publishing Corp. v Landoll, Inc, 43 F3d 775, 782 (2d Cir 1994) As discussed in Section 308.1, independent creation means that the author(s) named in the application created the new or revised material that the applicant intends to register, “and this in turn means that the work must not consist of actual copying.” L Batlin & Son, 536 F2d at 490 (citation omitted). The amount of creativity required for a derivative work is the same as that required for a copyright in any other work. “All that is needed to satisfy both

the Constitution and the statute is that the ‘author’ contributed something more than a ‘merely trivial’ variation, something recognizably ‘his own.’” Alfred Bell & Co v Catalda Fine Arts, Inc, 191 F2d 99, 102-03 (2d Cir 1951) (citing Chamberlin v. Uris Sales Corp, 150 F2d 512, 513 (2d Cir 1945)) Thus, “the key inquiry is whether there is sufficient nontrivial expressive variation in the derivative work to make it distinguishable from the [preexisting] work in some meaningful way.” Schrock v Learning Curve International, Inc., 586 F3d 513, 521 (7th Cir 2009) “While the quantum of originality that is required may be modest indeed,” courts have recognized that derivative works “[l]acking even a modest degree of originality. are not copyrightable” L Batlin & Son, 536 F2d at 490; Durham Industries, Inc v Tomy Corp, 630 F2d 905, 911 (2d Cir. 1980) Miniscule variations do not satisfy this requirement, such as merely changing the size of the preexisting

work. Merely recasting a work from one medium to another alone does not support a claim in derivative authorship. See L Batlin & Son, 536 F2d at 491 “Nor can the requirement of originality be satisfied simply by the demonstration of ‘physical skill’ or ‘special training.’” Id A registration for a derivative work only covers the new authorship that the author contributed to that work. It does not cover the authorship in the preexisting work(s) that has been recast, transformed, or adapted by the author of the derivative work. HR Rep No 94-1476, at 57 (1976), reprinted in 1976 U.SCCAN at 5670 Likewise, a registration for a derivative work does not cover any previously published material, previously registered material, or public domain material that appears in the derivative work. Nor does it cover any material that is not owned by the copyright claimant. See 17 USC § 103(b) (stating that the copyright in a derivative work is “independent of, and does not affect or

enlarge the scope, duration, ownership, or subsistence of, any copyright protection in the preexisting material”). If a derivative work contains an appreciable amount of previously published material, previously registered material, public domain material, or third party material, the applicant should exclude that material from the claim using the procedure described in Chapter 600, Section 621. For additional information concerning the scope of the copyright in a derivative work, see Chapter 500, Section 507.2 312 Compilations and Collective Works This Section discusses the U.S Copyright Office’s general practices and procedures for evaluating the copyrightability of compilations and collective works. Chapter 300 | 12 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered For a definition and general discussion of these types of works, see Chapter 500, Sections 508 and 509. For specific instructions on how to prepare an application to

register a compilation, see Chapter 600, Sections 613.7, 6175, 6186, 6207, and 6218(C) For specific instructions on how to prepare an application to register a collective work, see Chapter 600, Sections 610.4, 6138, 618.7, 6208, and 6218(D) 312.1 Copyrightable Subject Matter A compilation or a collective work may be registered with the U.S Copyright Office, provided that it constitutes copyrightable subject matter. As discussed in Section 307, compilations and collective works are a subset of the subject matter categories set forth in Section 102(a) of the Copyright Act, rather than separate and distinct categories of works. See Registration of Claims to Copyright, 77 Fed Reg 37,605, 37,606 (June 22, 2012). Thus, a compilation or a collective work must qualify as a literary work; a musical work; a dramatic work; a pantomime or choreographic work; a pictorial, graphic or sculptural work; a motion picture or audiovisual work; a sound recording; and/or an architectural work. See id. If

the authorship involved in creating the compilation or collective work as a whole (ie, the author’s selection, coordination, and/or arrangement) does not fall within one or more of the congressionally established categories of authorship, the registration specialist may communicate with the applicant if the authorship appears questionable or may refuse registration. Id Examples: • The Office may register a work comprised of rocks that are selected, coordinated, arranged, and fixed in such a way as to result in a sculptural work. Likewise, the Office may register a photograph of a rock, a drawing of a handtool, or a written expression of an idea. However, the Office cannot register a mere “compilation of ideas,” a mere “selection and arrangement of handtools,” or a mere “compilation of rocks,” because ideas, handtools, and rocks do not constitute copyrightable subject matter under Section 102(a) of the Copyright Act. • The Office may register a photograph of food if

the photographer exercised some minimal level of creativity in taking the picture. However, the Office cannot register a “compilation of food” based on a selection, coordination, and/or arrangement of items on a plate, because food does not constitute copyrightable subject matter under Section 102(a) of the Copyright Act. Although a sculptural depiction of a plate of food may be copyrightable, that would not prevent actual food from being arranged in the same way. See 17 U.SC § 113(b) • The Office may register a claim in a compilation containing the names of the author’s fifty favorite restaurants. While a restaurant or the name of a restaurant does not constitute copyrightable subject matter under Section 102(a) of the Act, a list of restaurant names may constitute a literary work, which is one of the congressionally established categories of authorship. See 77 Fed. Reg at 37,606 Chapter 300 | 13 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What

Can Be Registered 312.2 The Originality Requirement for Compilations A compilation may contain several distinct forms of authorship: selection • authorship involved in choosing the material or data that will be included in the compilation; coordination • authorship involved in classifying, categorizing, ordering, or grouping the ma- terial or data; and/or arrangement • authorship involved in organizing or moving the order, position, or placement of material or data within the compilation as a whole. See Feist, 499 U.S at 348 In determining whether a compilation satisfies the originality requirement, the registration specialist should focus on the manner in which the materials or data “have been selected, coordinated, and arranged” and “the principal focus should be on whether the selection, coordination, and arrangement are sufficiently original to merit protection.” Id at 358 The authorship involved in selecting, coordinating, and arranging the preexisting material

or data must be objectively revealed in the deposit copy(ies). See id (“Originality requires only that the author make the selection or arrangement independentlyand that it display some minimal level of creativity”) (emphasis added). For instance, a compilation of statistics is not copyrightable if the author’s selection, coordination, or arrangement of data is not evident in the claim While “[t]he originality requirement is not particularly stringent,” the Office cannot register a compilation “in which the selection, coordination, and arrangement are not sufficiently original to trigger copyright protection.” Id The preexisting material or data do not need to “be presented in an innovative or surprising way” See id at 362 The Office may register the claim if the author’s selection possesses some minimal degree of creativity, even if the coordination and/or arrangement do not (or vice versa). However, the more creative the selection, coordination, and/ or

arrangement, the more likely it is that the author’s compilation will be registered. For example, the Office generally will not register a compilation consisting of all the elements from a particular set of data, because the selection is standard or obvious. Likewise, the Office generally will not register a compilation containing only two or three elements, because the selection is necessarily de minimis. See HR Rep No 94-1476, at 122 (1976), reprinted in USCCAN at 5737 (stating that a work does not qualify as a collective work “where relatively few separate elements have been brought together,” as in the case of “a composition consisting of words and music, a work published with illustrations or front matter, or three one-act plays”). In determining whether the author’s compilation is sufficiently original, the U.S Copyright Office may consider the following factors: • What type of material or data did the author compile? • How is the material or data presented? •

Was the selection, coordination, and/or arrangement made from a large or diverse pool of material or data? Chapter 300 | 14 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered • Was the coordination or arrangement standard? • Is the selection exhaustive (e.g, a parts catalog containing standard information for all of the parts sold by a particular company)? • Is the coordination or arrangement obvious (e.g, is the information listed in alphabetical, numerical, or chronological order)? The statute also provides that preexisting material or data “must be selected, coordinated, or arranged ‘in such a way’ as to render the work as a whole original. This implies that some ‘ways’ will trigger copyright, but that others will not.” Feist, 499 US at 358 (citing 117 USC § 101 definition of “compilation”) Examples: • Generally, a selection consisting of less than four items will be scrutinized for sufficient authorship. •

A selection, coordination, and/or arrangement that is mechanical or routine, such as an alphabetical list of items added to a catalog within the past twelve months, a symmetrical arrangement of stones on jewelry, arranging geometric shapes in a standard or symmetrical manner, arranging notes in standard scales or in standard melodic or harmonic intervals, or a musical work consisting solely of a musical scale(s). • A selection, coordination, and/or arrangement that is commonplace such that it has come to be expected as a matter of course. • A compilation that contains an obvious selection, coordination, and/or arrangement of material, such as a complete list of stories written by Zane Grey between 1930 and 1939, a complete collection of Arthur Conan Doyle’s Sherlock Holmes stories, or a collection of a feature writer’s contributions to a particular newspaper over a period of six months arranged in chronological order. • A selection that is dictated by law, such as a law

requiring a telephone company to publish a directory containing the names, addresses, and telephone numbers of its subscribers. • A selection, coordination, and/or arrangement of data that is practically inevitable, such as a standard organizational chart. • Mailing or subscriber lists that contain standard information about a predetermined group of people organized in an obvious manner, such as an alphabetical list of all the names, telephone numbers, and email addresses for the members of the graduating class of a particular college or university. • A compilation that contains an exhaustive selection of information where the information is presented in sequential order, such as a genealogy containing a comprehensive selection of public records arranged in alphabetical or chronological order. Chapter 300 | 15 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered 312.3 The Originality Requirement for Collective Works A collective

work “is a species of ‘compilation’” that “by its nature, must involve the selection, assembly, and arrangement of ‘a number of contributions.’” HR Rep No 94-1476, at 122 (1976), reprinted in 1976 U.SCCAN at 5737 (discussing 17 USC § 101’s definitions of “compilation” and “collective work”). Because a collective work is a type of compilation, the U.S Copyright Office will apply the criteria set forth in Section 3122 to determine whether the author’s selection, coordination, and/ or arrangement satisfies the originality requirement. When examining a particular contribution that appears within a collective work, the Office will apply the criteria set forth in Section 309. 313 Uncopyrightable Material The U.S Copyright Office has no authority to register works that are not protected by copyright law. Some of the more common types of uncopyrightable material are discussed in Sections 313.1 through 3136 below Although uncopyrightable material, by definition,

is not eligible for copyright protection, the Office may register a work that contains uncopyrightable material, provided that the work as a whole contains other material that qualifies as an original work of authorship (e.g, a selection, coordination, and/or arrangement of uncopyrightable elements where the resulting work as a whole constitutes an original work of authorship). 313.1 Works That Have Not Been Fixed As discussed in Section 305, a work of authorship may be registered, provided that it has been fixed in a tangible medium of expression. See 17 USC § 102(a) A work that has not been fixed is not protected by the Copyright Act and cannot be registered with the U.S Copyright Office, although it might be eligible for protection under state law. Examples: • Choreography that has never been filmed or notated. • An extemporaneous speech that has not been filmed or recorded. • A work communicated solely through conversation or a live broadcast that has not been filmed,

recorded, written, or transcribed. • A dramatic sketch or musical composition improvised or developed from memory that has not been filmed, recorded, or transcribed. See H.R Rep No 94-1476, at 52, 131 (1976), reprinted in 1976 USCCAN at 5747 313.2 Works That Lack Human Authorship As discussed in Section 306, the Copyright Act protects “original works of authorship.” 17 USC § 102(a) (emphasis added). To qualify as a work of “authorship” a work must be created by a Chapter 300 | 16 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered human being. See Burrow-Giles Lithographic Co, 111 US at 58 Works that do not satisfy this requirement are not copyrightable. The Office will not register works produced by nature, animals, or plants. Likewise, the Office cannot register a work purportedly created by divine or supernatural beings, although the Office may register a work where the application or the deposit copy(ies) state that the

work was inspired by a divine spirit. Examples: • A photograph taken by a monkey. • A mural painted by an elephant. • A claim based on the appearance of actual animal skin. • A claim based on driftwood that has been shaped and smoothed by the ocean. • A claim based on cut marks, defects, and other qualities found in natural stone. • An application for a song naming the Holy Spirit as the author of the work. Similarly, the Office will not register works produced by a machine or mere mechanical process that operates randomly or automatically without any creative input or intervention from a human author. Examples: • Reducing or enlarging the size of a preexisting work of authorship. • Making changes to a preexisting work of authorship that are dictated by manufacturing or materials requirements. • Converting a work from analog to digital format, such as transferring a motion picture from VHS to DVD. • Declicking or reducing the noise in a preexisting sound

recording or converting a sound recording from monaural to stereo sound. • Transposing a song from B major to C major. • Medical imaging produced by x-rays, ultrasounds, magnetic resonance imaging, or other diagnostic equipment. • A claim based on a mechanical weaving process that randomly produces irregular shapes in the fabric without any discernible pattern. 313.3 Works That Do Not Constitute Copyrightable Subject Matter As discussed in Section 307 above, a work of authorship may be registered, provided that it falls within one or more of the categories of works set forth in Section 102(a) of the Copyright Act. Chapter 300 | 17 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered In other words, a work may be eligible for copyright protection if it qualifies as a literary work; a musical work; a dramatic work; a pantomime; a choreographic work; a pictorial, graphic, or sculptural work; a motion picture or other audiovisual work;

a sound recording; or an architectural work. Works that do not fall within the existing categories of copyrightable subject matter are not copyrightable and cannot be registered with the U.S Copyright Office See Registration of Claims to Copyright, 77 Fed Reg 37,605, 37,607 (June 22, 2012) (“Congress did not delegate authority to the courts [or the Copyright Office] to create new categories of authorship. Congress reserved this option for itself.”) 313.3(A) Ideas, Procedures, Processes, Systems, Methods of Operation, Concepts, Principles, or Discoveries Section 102(b) of the Copyright Act expressly excludes copyright protection for “any idea, procedure, process, system, method of operation, concept, principle, or discovery, regardless of the form in which it is described, explained, illustrated, or embodied in such work.” 17 USC § 102(b); see also 37 C.FR § 2021(b) As such, any work or portion of a work that is an idea, procedure, process, system, method of operation,

concept, principle, or discovery does not constitute copyrightable subject matter and cannot be registered. Examples: • The idea or concept for a work of authorship. • The idea for a character. • Ideas, procedures, processes, or methods for doing, making, or building things. • Scientific or technical methods or discoveries. • Business operations or procedures. • Mathematical principles, formulas, algorithms, or equations. • DNA sequences and other genetic, biological, or chemical substances or compounds, regardless of whether they are man-made or produced by nature. • An extrapolation or application of an idea or system that always produces substantially the same result, such as a computation of interest based upon a particular rate. The Office may register a literary, musical, graphic, or artistic description, explanation, or illustration of an idea, procedure, process, system, method of operation, concept, principle, or discovery, provided that the work contains a

sufficient amount of original authorship. See HR Rep. No 94-1476, at 56 (1976), reprinted in 1976 USCCAN at 5669 However, the registration would be limited to the copyrightable literary, musical, graphic, or artistic aspects of the work because copyright law does not give copyright owners any exclusive rights in the ideas, procedures, processes, systems, methods of operation, concepts, principles, or discoveries described in their works. As such, copyright owners do not have the right to prevent others from using the ideas, concepts, principles, or discoveries or from implementing the procedures, processes, systems, or methods of operation described in such works. See Feist, 499 US at 344-45 (explaining that “[t]he most fundamental axiom of copyright law is that ‘no author may copyright his Chapter 300 | 18 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered ideas or the facts he narrates.’” (quoting Harper & Row, Publishers,

Inc v Nation Enterprises, 471 U.S 539, 556 (1985)) 313.3(B) Merger of Idea and Expression In some cases, there may be only one way or only a limited number of ways to express a particular idea, procedure, process, system, method of operation, concept, principle, or discovery. If the U.S Copyright Office determines that extending copyright protection to the author’s expression would effectively accord protection to the idea, procedure, process, system, method of operation, concept, principle, or discovery itself, the registration specialist may communicate with the applicant or may refuse to register the claim. For example, the Office cannot register a claim in the mere idea for a story that is based on a common theme, such as “a quarrel between a Jewish father and an Irish father, the marriage of their children, the birth of grandchildren and a reconciliation.” See Nichols v Universal Pictures Corp., 45 F2d 119, 122 (2d Cir 1930) The Office cannot register a claim based solely

on standard programming techniques that are commonly used to achieve a specific result in a computer program. See, eg, Sega Enterprises, Ltd v Accolade, Inc, 977 F2d 1510, 1524 (9th Cir 1992) Likewise, the Office cannot register a claim based solely on standard expressions that naturally follow from the idea for a work of authorship, such as a sculpture that depicts a brightly colored jellyfish swimming in a vertical orientation. See Satava v Lowry, 323 F3d 805, 811 (9th Cir 2003) 313.3(C) Facts Facts are not copyrightable and cannot be registered with the U.S Copyright Office “No one may claim originality as to facts because facts do not owe their origin to an act of authorship.” Feist, 499 U.S at 347 (internal citation omitted) A person who finds and records a particular fact does not create that fact; he or she merely discovers its existence. As a result, facts “are never original” and Section 102(b) of the Copyright Act “is universally understood to prohibit any

copyright in facts.” Id at 356 “[This] is true of all factsscientific, historical, biographical, and news of the day.” Id at 348 For the same reason, theories, predictions, or conclusions that are asserted to be facts are uncopyrightable, even if the assertion of fact is erroneous or incorrect. See, eg, Hoehling v Universal City Studios, Inc., 618 F2d 972, 978-79 (2d Cir 1980); Nash v CBS, Inc, 899 F2d 1537, 1541 (7th Cir. 1990) Although facts are not copyrightable, a work of authorship that contains factual information may be registered, provided that the work contains a sufficient amount of original authorship. For example, a newspaper may be registered, but the registration does not cover “[t]he news elementthe information respecting current events contained in the [publication],” because the news of the day “is not the creation of the writer, but is a report of matter that ordinarily are publici juris.” International News Service v Associated Press, 248 US 215, 234

(1918) abrogated on other grounds by Erie Railroad Co. v Tompkins, 304 US 64, 58 (1938) Likewise, “a directory that contains absolutely no protectable written expression, only facts,” may be protected by copyright only “if it features an original selection or arrangement.” Feist, 499 US at 348 The copyright in such works only protects the compilation expression that the author contributed to the work. “No matter how original the format the facts themselves do not become original through association.” Id at 349 Chapter 300 | 19 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered 313.3(D) Typeface and Mere Variations of Typographic Ornamentation The copyright law does not protect typeface or mere variations of typographic ornamentation or lettering. 17 USC § 102(b); 37 CFR § 2021(a), (e) A typeface is a set of letters, numbers, or other symbolic characters with repeating design elements that are consistently applied in a

notational system that is intended to be used in composing text or other combinations of characters. HR Rep No 94-1476, at 55 (1976), reprinted in 1976 U.SCCAN at 5668 Typeface includes typefonts, letterforms, and the like Registrability of Computer Programs that Generate Typefaces, 57 Fed. Reg 6,201, 6,202 (Feb 21, 1992) The U.S Copyright Office cannot register a claim to copyright in typeface or mere variations of typographic ornamentation or lettering, regardless of whether the typeface is commonly used or truly unique. Likewise, the Office cannot register a simple combination of a few typefonts, letterforms, or typeface designs with minor linear or spatial variations. In Eltra Corp v Ringer, 579 F.2d 294 (4th Cir 1978) the Office refused to register a typeface design under the 1909 Act Both the District Court and the Court of Appeals affirmed the Office’s decision, noting that “typeface has never been considered entitled to copyright under the provisions of [the 1909 Act].”

579 F.2d at 298 The Fourth Circuit noted that many parties have asked “Congress to amend the law in order to provide copyright protection to typeface” and “[j]ust as consistently Congress has refused to grant the protection.” Id Congress addressed this issue when it drafted the 1976 Act and concluded that typeface is not copyrightable. The House Report expressly states: “The Committee does not regard the design of typeface, as thus defined, to be a copyrightable ‘pictorial, graphic, or sculptural work’ within the meaning of this bill. ” HR Rep No 94-1476, at 55 (1976), reprinted in 1976 U.SCCAN at 5668-69 For the same reasons, the Office cannot register a claim that is based solely on calligraphy because calligraphy is a stylized form of handwriting that is a mere variation of typographic ornamentation. Although calligraphy in itself is not copyrightable, a literary work, a pictorial work, or a graphic work that contains a sufficient amount of original authorship may

be registered notwithstanding the fact that it is executed in calligraphic form. As a general rule, the mere arrangement of type on a page or screen is not copyrightable. See Section 3133(E) However, if the arrangement produces an abstract or representational image, such as an advertisement that uses letters to create a representation of a person, the Office may register the claim provided that the resulting image contains a sufficient amount of pictorial expression. The Office may register computer programs that generate typeface(s) provided that they contain a sufficient amount of literary authorship. However, the registration does not extend to any typeface or mere variations of typographic ornamentation or lettering that may be generated by the program. See Registrability of Computer Programs that Generate Typeface, 57 Fed Reg. at 6202 For a discussion of computer programs that generate typeface, see Chapter 700, Section 723. 313.3(E) Format and Layout As a general rule, the U.S

Copyright Office does not accept vague claims of “format” and/or “layout.” The general layout or format of a book, a page, a slide presentation, a website, a webpage, a poster, a form, or the like, is not copyrightable because it is a template of expression. These terms should be avoided and, if used, will be questioned by the registration specialist. Chapter 300 | 20 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered Copyright protection may be available for the selection, coordination, and/or arrangement of specific content, such as a compilation of artwork or a compilation of text, provided that the content is arranged in a sufficiently creative manner. However, the claim would be limited to the selection, coordination, and/or arrangement of that specific content, and it would not apply to the format and layout itself. A standard or common selection, coordination, and/or arrangement of specific content or simple variations

thereof will not support a claim of compilation authorship and cannot be registered with the Office. If the content that appears in the work is copyrightable, but the selection, coordination, and/or arrangement of that content is not, the claim should be limited to the copyrightable content that the author contributed to the work (e.g, text, artwork, etc) and the compilation authorship should not be included in the claim. For a general discussion of format and layout, see Chapter 900, Section 906.5 313.4 Works That Do Not Satisfy the Originality Requirement As discussed in Section 308, the Copyright Act protects “original works of authorship.” 17 USC § 102(a) (emphasis added). To qualify as an “original” work of authorship, the work must be independently created and must contain some minimal amount of creativity The US Copyright Office will not register works that do not satisfy these requirements. 313.4(A) Mere Copies A work that is a mere copy of another work of

authorship is not copyrightable. The Office cannot register a work that has been merely copied from another work of authorship without any additional original authorship. See L Batlin & Son, 536 F2d at 490 (“one who has slavishly or mechanically copied from others may not claim to be an author”); Bridgeman Art Library, Ltd. v Corel Corp., 36 F Supp 2d 191, 195 (SDNY 1999) (“exact photographic copies of public domain works of art would not be copyrightable under United States law because they are not original”). As a general rule, the registration specialist will not search the Office’s records or conduct independent research to determine whether the work was created by the author(s) named in the application because the existence of similar or identical works will not preclude a claim in a work that was independently created. However, if the applicant asserts a claim in a work that is unusually similar to another work of authorship that is known to the specialist, he or

she may communicate with the applicant. If the specialist determines that the author copied or incorporated another work of authorship, he or she may ask the applicant to exclude the preexisting work from the claim or may refuse registration if the author did not contribute a sufficient amount of additional original authorship to the work. Examples: • An exact reproduction of the Mona Lisa that cannot be distinguished from the original. • A photocopy or scan of a photograph. • Photocopying, scanning, or digitizing a literary work. Chapter 300 | 21 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered • Dubbing a sound recording from a preexisting recording. • A toy model that is an exact replica of an automobile, airplane, train, or other useful article where no creative expression has been added to the existing design. 313.4(B) De Minimis Authorship The term “de minimis” comes from the legal principle “de minimis non

curat lex,” which means “the law does not take notice of very small or trifling matters.” As the Supreme Court stated, “copyright protects only those constituent elements of a work that possess more than a de minimis quantum of creativity.” Feist, 499 US at 363 Works that contain no expression or only a de minimis amount of original expression are not copyrightable and cannot be registered with the U.S Copyright Office Examples: Literary Works: • Substituting the pronouns “she” and “her” for “he” and “his” in a preexisting work of authorship. • Combining a coined term with a few short phrases that define the term. • A Venn diagram consisting of three overlapping circles containing the names of various personality disorders and a few words and short phrases that describe the symptoms of each condition. • A standard form contract for a real estate transaction requesting factual information from the buyer and containing standard legal language for the

release of the seller’s interest in the property. • Editing that merely consists of spelling and grammatical corrections. Works of the Performing Arts: • A synopsis consisting of a single sentence. • A musical phrase consisting of three notes. • A sound recording consisting of a single tone. Works of the Visual Arts: • Solitaire rings, simple diamond stud earrings, simple hoop earrings, and other jewelry designs that contain only a trivial amount of authorship. • Touching-up an aged or damaged photograph in order to restore it to its original condition, without adding an appreciable amount of authorship to the original image. Chapter 300 | 22 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered • A public domain photograph of Winston Churchill combined with the word “Commitment” and the quotation “Never, never, never give up.” • An outline map of South Carolina with a blue heart in the center of the design

featuring the white crescent moon and white palmetto tree from the state flag. Specific categories of literary works, works of the performing arts, and works of the visual arts that contain a de minimis amount of authorship are discussed in Chapters 700, 800, and 900. 313.4(C) Words and Short Phrases Words and short phrases, such as names, titles, and slogans, are not copyrightable because they contain a de minimis amount of authorship. See 37 CFR § 2021(a) The US Copyright Office cannot register individual words or brief combinations of words, even if the word or short phrase is novel or distinctive or lends itself to a play on words. See Kitchens of Sara Lee, Inc v Nifty Foods Corp., 266 F2d 541, 544 (2d Cir 1959) (concluding that the Office’s regulation barring the registration of short phrases is “a fair summary of the law”). Examples: • The name of an individual (including pseudonyms, pen names, or stage names). • The name of a business or organization. • The name

of a band or performing group. • The name of a product or service. • A domain name or URL (e.g, wwwcopyrightgov) • The title or subtitle of a work of authorship. • The name of a character. • Catchwords, catchphrases, mottoes, slogans, or other short expressions. For the same reasons, short musical phrases consisting of only a few musical notes standing alone are not copyrightable and cannot be registered with the U.S Copyright Office, even if the phrase is novel or distinctive. See 37 CFR § 2021(a) Examples: • Clock chimes. • “Mi do re sol, sol re mi do.” • A trademark consisting of three musical notes. Similarly, individual numbers, letters, sounds, and short phrases consisting of such elements are not copyrightable, because they do not contain sufficient creative authorship. Id Chapter 300 | 23 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered The Office maintains various databases, indexes, catalogs, and other

records that contain titles of works that have been registered with the Office. These titles are part of the public record, but the titles themselves are not subject to copyright protection. 313.4(D) Works Consisting Entirely of Information That Is Common Property The U.S Copyright Office cannot register works consisting entirely of information that is common property because such works contain no original authorship 37 CFR § 2021(d) Examples of common property include, without limitation, standard calendars, schedules of sporting events, and lists or tables taken from public documents or other common sources. Id For the same reasons, the Office cannot register a claim in common sayings, diatonic and chromatic musical scales, or common chord progressions that merely consist of standard harmonies or common musical phrases. 313.4(E) Measuring and Computing Devices The U.S Copyright Office cannot register devices that are designed for computing or measuring or other useful articles

in and of themselves. See 37 CFR § 2021(d) Examples of such devices include, without limitation, height and weight charts, tape measures and rulers, calculators, scales, and thermometers. Although measuring and computing devices are not copyrightable, the Office may register pictorial, graphic, or sculptural features that have been applied to a device, but only if those features are separablefrom the article. For example, a drawing that appears on the surface of a height and weight chart or a fanciful graphic that appears on the surface of a thermometer may be registered if the pictorial or graphic feature can be perceived as a two-dimensional “work of art separate from the useful article” and would qualify as a protectable pictorial or graphic work “if it were imagined separately from the useful article into which it is incorporated.” Star Athletica, LLC v Varsity Brands, Inc., 137 S Ct 1002, 1007 (2017) For a general discussion of useful articles, see Chapter 900, Section

924. 313.4(F) Mere Listing of Ingredients or Contents A mere listing of ingredients or contents is not copyrightable and cannot be registered with the U.S Copyright Office 37 CFR § 2021(a) Examples: • A list of ingredients for a recipe. • A list of components for a formula, compound, prescription, or the like. • A list of musical tracks contained in a compact disc. • A product label that merely lists the ingredients for the product, merely describes the product, or merely describes the contents of the product packaging. Chapter 300 | 24 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered The Office may register a work that explains how to perform a particular activity, such as a cookbook or user manual, provided that the work contains a sufficient amount of text, photographs, artwork, or other copyrightable expression. However, the registration does not extend to any list of ingredients or contents that may be included in the

work. See Publications International v. Meredith Corp, 88 F3d 473, 480 (7th Cir 1996) (“We do not view the functional listing of ingredients as original within the meaning of the Copyright Act.”); see also Policy Decision on Copyrightability of Digitized Typefaces, 53 Fed. Reg 38,110, 38,112 (Sept 29, 1988) (explaining that “the explanation and illustration of recipes is copyrightable even though the end resultthe food productis not”). 313.4(G) Blank Forms Blank forms that are designed for recording information and do not in themselves convey information are not copyrightable. 37 CFR § 2021(c) Likewise, the copyright law does not protect the ideas or principles behind a blank form, the systems or methods implemented by a form, or any functional layout, coloring, or design that facilitates the use of a form. See Baker v Selden, 101 U.S 99 (1879) Blank forms typically contain empty fields or lined spaces, as well as words or short phrases that identify the content that should

be recorded in each field or space. Examples include, without limitation, time cards, graph paper, account books, diaries, bank checks, scorecards, address books, report forms, order forms, and the like. 37 CFR § 2021(c) As a general rule, the Office will register a work of authorship that contains an appreciable amount of written or artistic expression, even if it contains a blank form that is designed for recording information. For example, bank checks may be registered if they contain sufficient pictorial authorship that decorates the form. Likewise, contracts, insurance policies, and other textual documents with “fill-in” spaces may be registered if they contain a sufficient amount of expressive, literary authorship that is not standard or functional. However, the mere inclusion of a large number of terms on a blank form may not satisfy the originality requirement if those terms are part of a system for recording information, such as a medical diagnostic form. See 17 U.SC §

102(b) When examining these types of works, the Office applies “a standard consistent with that applied to all works submitted for registration: does the work evidence an appreciable quantum of original, creative expression?” See Registration of Claims to Copyright: Notice of Termination of Inquiry Regarding Blank Forms, 45 Fed. Reg 63,297 (Sept 24, 1980) In applying this standard, the Office focuses on the textual or pictorial expression that the author contributed to the work. In other words, does the form qualify as a literary work, a pictorial work, or a work that contains an original combination of literary and pictorial expression? If so, the Office will register the claim. In all cases, the registration covers only the original textual or pictorial expression that the author contributed to the work, but does not cover the blank form or other uncopyrightable elements that the form may contain. The Office cannot register the empty fields or lined spaces in a blank form.

Likewise, the Office cannot register the words, short phrases, or other de minimis text that appears in the headings for a blank form, even if the applicant attempts to register the work as a compilation of uncopyrightable material. As discussed in Section 307, a compilation is a subset of the subject matter categories listed in Section 102(a) of the Copyright Act, rather than a separate and distinct category of authorship. In other words, a compilation may be registered, provided that the work Chapter 300 | 25 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered as a whole falls within one or more of the congressionally established categories of authorship. A blank form that merely contains words, short phrases, or a de minimis amount of text does not satisfy this requirement because it does not qualify as a literary work, a pictorial work, a graphic work, or any of the other categories of works listed in Section 102(a). Cf Registration of

Claims to Copyright, 77 Fed. Reg 37,605, 37,607 (June 22, 2012) If a blank form poses an extensive number of questions or contains an exhaustive checklist of information, the registration specialist may communicate with the applicant or may refuse registration if it appears that the applicant is asserting a claim in the ideas, principles, systems, or methods implemented by the form. 313.4(H) Characters Although the copyright law does not protect the name or the general idea for a character, a work that depicts or describes a particular character may be registered if it contains a sufficient amount of original authorship. A registration for a visual art work, a literary work, or a work of the performing arts that depicts or describes a character covers the expression set forth in the deposit copy(ies), but it does not cover the character per se. In other words, the copyright in the registered work protects the author’s expression of the character, but it does not protect the mere

concept of the character. The copyright in the character itself is limited to the artistic rendition of the character in visual form or the literary delineation of the character’s specific attributes in textual form. (The trademark law may provide additional protection for the character’s name or other attributes if the character is sufficiently distinctive and is used to identify the source of the trademark owner’s goods or services.) For a further discussion of characters, see Chapter 800, Section 804.2(B) and Chapter 900, Section 911 313.4(I) Scènes à Faire The copyright law does not protect stock characters, settings, or events that are common to a particular subject matter or medium because they are commonplace and lack originality. For example, the copyright for a work about the Hindenburg would not cover elements that are “indispensable, or at least standard, in the treatment of ” that topic, such as scenes that take place in a German beer hall or characters who

utter common greetings of the period. See Hoehling, 618 F.2d at 979 The copyright for a work about a police station in an urban slum would not cover elements that necessarily result from the choice of that setting, such as scenes depicting drunks, prostitutes, vermin, and derelict cars, or stock themes commonly linked to the genre of police fiction, such as foot chases or the “familiar figure of the Irish cop.” See Walker v Time Life Films, Inc., 784 F2d 44, 50 (2d Cir 1986) Likewise, the fact “[t]hat treasure might be hidden in a cave inhabited by snakes, that fire might be used to repel the snake, that birds might frighten an intruder in the jungle, and that a weary traveler might seek solace in a tavern [are] simply too general to be protectable.” See Zambito v Paramount Pictures Corp, 613 F Supp 1107, 1112 (E.DNY 1985) Chapter 300 | 26 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered While scènes à faire cannot be

registered by themselves, a work of authorship that contains standard expressions or stock characters, settings, or events may be registered provided that the work as a whole contains a sufficient amount of original expression. 313.4(J) Familiar Symbols and Designs Familiar symbols and designs are not copyrightable and cannot be registered with the U.S Copyright Office, either in two-dimensional or three-dimensional form. 37 CFR § 2021(a) Likewise, the Office cannot register a work consisting of a simple combination of a few familiar symbols or designs with minor linear or spatial variations, either in two-dimensional or threedimensional form. Examples of familiar symbols and designs include, without limitation: • Letters. • Punctuation. • Symbols typically found on a keyboard, such as asterisks, ampersands, and the like. • Abbreviations. • Musical notes and symbols. • Numbers. • Mathematical symbols. • Currency symbols. • Arrows and other directional or

navigational symbols. • Common representational symbols, such as a spade, club, heart, diamond, star, yin yang, fleur de lys, or the like. • Common patterns, such as standard chevron, polka dot, checkerboard, or houndstooth designs. • Well-known and commonly used symbols that contain a de minimis amount of expression or that are in the public domain, such as the peace symbol, gender symbols (♀ ♂), the symbols for “play, pause, stop, forward, back,” simple emoticons such as the typical smiley face (J), or the like. • Standard industry designs, such as the caduceus, the barber pole, food labeling symbols, hazard warning symbols, or the like. • Familiar religious symbols such as crosses, stars, crescents, and the like. • Common architecture moldings, such as the volute used to decorate Ionic and Corinthian columns. Chapter 300 | 27 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered While familiar symbols and designs

cannot be registered by themselves, a work of authorship that incorporates one or more of these elements into a larger design may be registered if the work as a whole contains a sufficient amount of creative expression. For additional information concerning familiar symbols and designs, see Chapter 900, Section 906.2 313.4(K) Mere Variations of Coloring Color is one of the basic building blocks for pictorial, graphic, and sculptural works. The US Copyright Office may register an original combination or arrangement of colors if it results in a pictorial, graphic, or sculptural work that qualifies as an original work of authorship. See Copyright Registration for Colorized Versions of Black and White Motion Pictures, 52 Fed. Reg. 23,443, 23,445 (June 22, 1987) The Office cannot register a claim to copyright in color in and of itself or a system for matching pairs and sets of colors. See 17 USC § 102(b) Likewise, the Office cannot register mere variations in coloring, regardless of

whether the variations are made by hand, by computer, or any other process. 37 CFR § 2021(a) If the author merely added or changed a few colors that appear in a preexisting work of authorship or merely added, changed, or combined expected or familiar sets or pairs of colors, the Office may communicate with the applicant or may refuse to register the claim. Similarly, the Office may communicate or refuse registration for a compilation of colors if the colors merely enhance the visual display of a chart, table, graph, device, or other article. Examples: • Creating a new version of a fabric design where the colors red and blue are substituted for the colors yellow and green. • Producing three greeting cards containing the same visual and textual content where the only difference is that each card is printed in a different color. • Making a few minor changes in a preexisting work of authorship, such as simple tone-overs or color overlays. • Using color as a simple form of

typographic ornamentation. • Using color to enhance sonar imaging or x-rays, sonograms, echocardiograms, magnetic resonance imaging, or the like. • Removing all the color from a preexisting work of authorship. For additional information concerning color, see Chapter 900, Section 906.3 313.5 Specific Types of Works That May Contain Uncopyrightable Material The U.S Copyright Office has adopted policies regarding the copyrightability of specific types of literary works, works of the performing arts, and works of the visual arts. Chapter 300 | 28 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered For information concerning literary works that may be or may contain uncopyrightable material, see Chapter 700, Sections 707.1 (Numbers), 7072 (Research), and 7073 (Book Design) For information concerning works of the performing arts that may be or may contain uncopyrightable material, see Chapter 800: • Common property musical scales and

arpeggios (Section 802.5(A)) • Sound recordings fixed prior to February 15, 1972 (Section 803.5(D)) • Social dances, simple routines, and other uncopyrightable movements (Sections 805.5(B) and 806.5(B)) For information concerning works of the visual arts that may be or may contain uncopyrightable material, see Chapter 900: • Geometric figures and shapes (Section 906.1) • Bridges, canals, dams, tents, mobile homes, and other uncopyrightable structures (Section 923.2) • Interior design and landscape design (Section 923.2) • Useful articles (Section 924). 313.6 313.6(A) Other Types of Works That Cannot Be Registered with the U.S Copyright Office Foreign Works That Are Not Eligible for Copyright Protection in the United States As discussed in Section 304, a work of authorship may be registered, provided that it is eligible for copyright protection in the United States under Sections 104(a) or 104(b) of the Copyright Act. Works that do not satisfy these requirements are not

protected by US copyright law and cannot be registered with the U.S Copyright Office For more information concerning these requirements, see Chapter 2000, Section 2003. 313.6(B) Unlawful Use of Preexisting Material in a Derivative Work, a Compilation, or a Collective Work Some derivative works, compilations, and collective works cannot be registered with the U.S Copyright Office. Section 103(a) of the statute states that copyright protection for a compilation or derivative work “employing preexisting material in which copyright subsists does not extend to any part of the work in which such material has been used unlawfully.” 17 USC § 103(a) This provision also applies to collective works because “the term ‘compilation’ includes collective works.” 17 USC § 101 (definition of compilation) Section 103(a) is intended to prevent “an infringer from benefiting, through copyright protection, from committing an unlawful act.” HR Rep No 941476, at 57 (1976), reprinted in 1976

Chapter 300 | 29 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered U.SCCAN at 5671 At the same time, it allows the author of a derivative work, a compilation, or a collective work to claim copyright in “those parts of the work that do not [unlawfully] employ the preexisting work.” Id Ordinarily, the Office will not examine the preexisting material that appears in a derivative work, a compilation, or a collective work to determine whether that material is protected by copyright or whether it has been used in a lawful manner. However, the registration specialist may communicate with the applicant if the preexisting material has not been excluded from the claim and it is reasonably clear that the claimant may not own the copyright in that material, such as a mix tape containing a compilation of well-known sound recordings. The Office also may question derivative claims that appear to be unlawful and that are inseparable or intertwined

with an underlying work, such as stage directions for a dramatic work. The Office may register a derivative work, a compilation, or a collective work that contains preexisting copyrightable material, provided that the author’s contribution to that work can be separated from the preexisting material. For example, an anthology of poetry may be registered as a collective work, even if the author accidentally included one poem that was unauthorized, because that poem could be severed from the anthology without affecting the lawful aspects of the collective work as a whole. By contrast, the Office may refuse registration if the preexisting material is inseparably intertwined with the compilation or the derivative work, such as an unauthorized translation of a novel or an unauthorized arrangement of a song. See HR Rep No 941476, at 5758 (1976), reprinted in 1976 U.SCCAN at 5671 313.6(C) 313.6(C)(1) Government Works U.S Government Works Copyright protection under the Copyright Act is not

available for “any work of the United States Government,” regardless of whether it is published or unpublished. 17 USC § 105; see also HR Rep. No 94-1476, at 58 (1976), reprinted in 1976 USCCAN at 5672 This includes legislation enacted by Congress, decisions issued by the federal judiciary, regulations issued by a federal agency, or any other work prepared by an officer or employee of the U.S federal government while acting within the course of his or her official duties. It also includes works prepared by an officer or employee of the government of the District of Columbia, the Commonwealth of Puerto Rico, or the organized territories under the jurisdiction of the federal government. If an applicant states that the U.S government or any of its agencies, officers, or employees created the work while acting within the scope of their employment, the registration specialist may communicate with the applicant and may refuse registration, even if the claimant is a nongovernmental

entity. There are several exceptions to these rules: • Although works prepared by officers or employees of the U.S government within the scope of their employment are not copyrightable, the federal government may receive and hold “copyrights transferred to it by assignment, bequest, or otherwise.” 17 USC § 105 For example, a US government agency may register a website created by a government contractor, provided that the contractor did not create the website for the agency as a work made for hire and provided that the contractor transferred the copyright in that work to that agency. Chapter 300 | 30 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered • Works prepared by officers or employees of the U.S Postal Service, the Corporation for Public Broadcasting, the Public Broadcasting Services, or National Public Radio are not considered works of the U.S government See HR Rep No 94-1476, at 59 (1976), reprinted in 1976 U.SCCAN at

5674 (expressly exempting the US Postal Service) • Works prepared by officers or employees of the Smithsonian Institution are not considered works of the U.S government if the author-employee was paid from the Smithsonian trust fund. • The U.S Secretary of Commerce may secure copyright for a limited term not to exceed five years in any standard reference data prepared or disseminated by the National Technical Information Service. See 15 USC §290e; HR Rep No 94-1476, at 59-60 (1976), reprinted in 1976 U.SCCAN at 5673 • A work prepared by an officer or employee of the U.S government may be registered if the work was prepared at that person’s own volition and outside his or her official duties, even if the subject matter focuses on the author’s work for the government. See HR Rep No 94-1476, at 58 (1976), reprinted in 1976 U.SCCAN at 5671 313.6(C)(2) Government Edicts As a matter of longstanding public policy, the U.S Copyright Office will not register a government edict

that has been issued by any state, local, or territorial government, including legislative enactments, judicial decisions, administrative rulings, public ordinances, or similar types of official legal materials. Likewise, the Office will not register a government edict issued by any foreign government or any translation prepared by a government employee acting within the course of his or her official duties. See Banks v Manchester, 128 US 244, 253 (1888) (“there has always been a judicial consensus, from the time of the decision in the case of Wheaton v. Peters, 8 Pet 591, that no copyright could under the statutes passed by Congress, be secured in the products of the labor done by judicial officers in the discharge of their judicial duties”); Howell v. Miller, 91 F. 129, 137 (6th Cir 1898) (Harlan, J) (“no one can obtain the exclusive right to publish the laws of a state in a book prepared by him”). There is a limited exception to this rule. Section 104(b)(5) of the Act states

that works first published by the United Nations or any of its specialized agencies, or first published by the Organization of American States are eligible for copyright protection in the United States. See 17 U.SC § 104(b)(5) A work that does not constitute a government edict may be registered, even if it was prepared by an officer or employee of a state, local, territorial, or foreign government while acting within the course of his or her official duties. For example, the Office may register a tourist magazine written and published by Arizona’s department of tourism or a map created and published by the public transit authority for the city of Detroit. Likewise, the Office may register annotations that summarize or comment upon legal materials issued by a federal, state, local, or foreign government, unless the annotations themselves have the force of law. See Chapter 700, Section 7171 Chapter 300 | 31 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What

Can Be Registered 313.6(D) Works in the Public Domain Works that are in the public domain in the United States cannot be registered with the U.S Copyright Office. A copyrighted work enters the public domain in the United States when “its full copyright term has expired.” Golan v Holder, 565 US 302, 307 (2012) Works that do not comply with certain statutory formalities may also be in the public domain, such as U.S works published without a copyright notice on or before March 1, 1989, or U.S works published or registered on or before December 31, 1963 that were not renewed in a timely manner. Likewise, works that are not copyrightable are in the public domain, such as works that have not been fixed in a tangible medium of expression or works that merely contain a de minimis amount of authorship. A derivative work, compilation, or collective work that contains public domain material may be registered, provided that the new work contains a sufficient amount of original authorship.

The copyright in such works covers the compilation authorship or the new material that the author contributed to the derivative work, the compilation, or the collective work, but it “is independent of, and does not affect or enlarge the scope, duration, ownership, or subsistence of, any copyright protection in the [public domain] material.” 17 USC § 103(b) 314 Use of Protected Names, Characters, Slogans, Symbols, Seals, Emblems, and Insignia Occasionally, the U.S Copyright Office receives works that contain names, characters, slogans, symbols, seals, emblems, or insignia that may be restricted by federal law, such as “Olympic,” “Smokey Bear,” “Woodsy Owl,” “Give a Hoot, Don’t Pollute,” the 4-H Club Emblem, or the sign of the Red Cross. See, eg, 18 USC §§ 700-716; 36 USC § 220506 If the work contains a sufficient amount of original authorship and if the federally protected material has been excluded from the claim, the registration specialist may register the

claim without communicating with the applicant. By contrast, if the specialist is aware that the work contains federally protected material that has not been excluded from the claim, the specialist may notify the applicant that the material appears to be restricted and may ask the applicant whether that material has been used in a lawful manner. 315 Obscenity Pornographic works may be registered with the U.S Copyright Office, provided that they contain a sufficient amount of original authorship As a general rule, a registration specialist will not examine a work or authorship to determine whether it contains material that might be considered obscene. See Mitchell Brothers Film Group v Cinema Adult Theater, 604 F.2d 852, 858 (5th Cir 1979) (concluding that the 1909 Act protects “all creative works, obscene or non-obscene, that otherwise meet the requirements of the [statute]” and that there is “no explicit or implicit bar to the copyrighting of obscene materials”). However, if

a work contains material that appears to fall within the scope of the Child Protection Act, the specialist will refer the work to the Associate Register of Copyrights and Director of Registration Policy & Practice. If the Associate Register determines that the work clearly falls within the scope of Title 18, sections 2251-2255, and if the Register of Copyrights concurs, the application, deposit copy(ies), and any other materials that have been submitted to the Office will be referred Chapter 300 | 32 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered to the U.S Department of Justice See Operating Guidelines Regarding the Child Protection Act; Public Availability, 52 Fed. Reg 10,177 (Mar 30, 1987) 316 Classified Material If the U.S Copyright Office is aware that the deposit copy(ies) contain information that has been classified by the U.S government, the registration specialist will refer the work to the Associate Register of

Copyrights and Director of Registration Policy & Practice. The material should be held or disposed of in accordance with instructions from the Associate Register, and the examination or other processing of the material by the Office should be suspended until the matter has been resolved. Chapter 300 | 33 revised 09/29/2017 compendium: chapter 400 WHO MAY FILE AN APPLICATION Contents 401 What This Chapter Covers 402 Who Is the Applicant? 403 Who Is the Correspondent? 404 Who Is the Claimant? 405 Applications Filed by or on Behalf of the Author 405.1 Joint Works 405.2 Minors 405.3 Mental Incompetents 405.4 Prisoners 405.5 Deceased Authors 405.6 Foreign Authors 1 1 1 2 2 3 3 3 3 4 4 406 Applications Filed by or on Behalf of a Copyright Owner Who Owns All of the Exclusive Rights 4 407 Applications Filed by an Owner of One or MoreBut Less than All of the Exclusive Rights 4 408 Exclusive Licensees and Nonexclusive Licensees 409 Authorized Agents

410 Who May File the Application: At a Glance 4 5 5 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Who May File An Application Chapter 400 | ii revised 09/29/2017 compendium: chapter 400 WHO MAY FILE AN APPLICATION 401 What This Chapter Covers This Chapter provides general information on who may and may not submit an application to register a copyright claim. For information on who may file a claim for specific types of works, who may file a renewal application, and who may record a transfer of ownership, a notice of termination, or other documents pertaining to copyright, see the following chapters: • • • • 402 For mask works, see Chapter 1200, Section 1211. For vessel designs, see Chapter 1300, Section 1311.2 For renewal applications, see Chapter 2100, Section 2115.5 For recording documents, see Chapter 2300, Sections 2309.4, 23106, 2311, 23121, 23135, and 2314.6 Who Is the Applicant? The applicant is the party who signs the certification and submits the

application to the U.S Copyright Office. Any of the following parties may certify and submit an application to register a copyright claim: • • • • The author of the work; The owner of all the exclusive rights in the work; The owner of one or morebut less than allof the exclusive rights in the work; or A duly authorized agent of any of the foregoing parties. No other parties are entitled to file an application for copyright registration. See 17 USC § 408(a) (stating that “the owner of copyright or of any exclusive right in the work may obtain registration of the copyright claim”); see also 37 C.FR § 2023(c)(1) (specifying the parties who may submit an application for copyright registration); Registration of Copyright: Definition of Claimant, 77 Fed. Reg 29,257, 29,258 (May 17, 2012) 403 Who Is the Correspondent? When completing an application, the applicant must provide the name, address, and other contact information for the person or persons whom the Office should

contact if the registration specialist has questions or concerns regarding the application. This person is referred to as the correspondent. revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Who May File An Application In most cases, the correspondent and the applicant are the same person, because the correspondent typically certifies and submits the application. In all cases, the correspondent must be: • • • • An author of the work; An owner who owns all of the exclusive rights in the work; An owner of one or morebut less than allof the exclusive rights in the work; or A duly authorized agent of one or more of the foregoing parties. As a general rule, the U.S Copyright Office will send all communications concerning an application or a registration to the correspondent at the address provided in the registration record For guidance in completing the Correspondent field/space of the application, see Chapter 600, Section 622.2 For information on who may certify an application,

see Chapter 600, Section 624 404 Who Is the Claimant? The only parties who are eligible to be the copyright claimant are (i) the author of the work, or (ii) a copyright owner who owns all of the exclusive rights in the work. 37 CFR § 2023(a)(3) A person or entity who owns one or morebut less than allof the exclusive rights in a work is not eligible to be a claimant. See Part 202 - Registration of Claims to Copyright, 43 Fed Reg 965, 965 (Jan. 5, 1978); Registration of Copyright: Definition of Claimant, 77 Fed Reg 29,257, 29,258 (May 17, 2012). Although the author or the copyright owner who owns all of the rights are the only parties who are entitled to claim ownership of the copyright, an application to register that claim may be certified and submitted by any of the parties listed in Section 402. In some cases, the applicant and the claimant may be the same party, while in other cases they may be different. 405 Applications Filed by or on Behalf of the Author An author is either

(i) the person or persons who created the work, or (ii) the employer or other person for whom the work was prepared, if the work was created during the course of employment or commissioned as a work made for hire. The author may be either a US or a foreign citizen. If the author owns all of the rights under the copyright on the date that the application is filed, the author must be named in the application as the copyright claimant. The author or the author’s duly authorized agent may certify and submit an application to register that claim In the situation where the author certifies and submits the application, the author is considered both the applicant and the claimant. If the author’s duly authorized agent certifies and submits the application, the author is still the claimant but the author’s agent is considered the applicant. The author also may be named as the copyright claimant even if the author has transferred the copyright or one or more of the exclusive rights to

another party, or even if the author does not own any of the rights at the time the application is filed. See generally Registration of Copyright: Definition of Claimant, 77 Fed. Reg 29,257, 29,258 (May 17, 2012); Registration of Claims to Copyright, 43 Fed. Reg 965, 965 (Jan 5, 1978) Chapter 400 | 2 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Who May File An Application If the author transferred all of the rights in a work to another party, either the author or the transferee may be named as the copyright claimant, and the application may be submitted by the author, the transferee, or their respective agents. If the author transferred only some of his or her rights to another party, the author must be named as the copyright claimant, and the application to register the copyright in the author’s name may be filed by any of the parties listed in Section 402 (i.e, the author, an owner of one or more exclusive rights, or their respective agents) 405.1 Joint Works The U.S

Copyright Office will accept an application filed by or on behalf of one or more authors of a joint work if the application is otherwise proper and complete The application must identify all of the authors of the joint work. If a joint author transferred all of his or her rights to a third party, either the joint author or the transferee may be named as a copyright claimant, and the application may be filed by the joint author, the transferee, or their respective agents. If a joint owner transferred only some of his or her rights to a third party, the joint author must be named as the copyright claimant, although the application to register the copyright in the joint author’s name may be filed by the transferee or any of the other parties listed in Section 402. 405.2 Minors Minors may claim copyright, and the U.S Copyright Office will accept applications submitted either by or on behalf of a minor if the application is otherwise proper and complete. Minors may appoint a duly

authorized agent to file the application on their behalf, such as a parent, guardian, or other qualified agent. Because registration records are open to the public, the applicant should not provide any private or confidential information in the application that is not required for registration if the applicant does not wish to make that information public. Any information that is provided in the application may be made available to the general public through the Office’s online database. Once the Office issues a certificate of registration, in most cases it cannot remove any information from the registration record, including a minor’s name, address, or year of birth. 405.3 Mental Incompetents Mental incompetents may claim copyright, and the U.S Copyright Office will accept applications submitted either by or on behalf of a mentally incompetent person, provided the application is otherwise proper and complete If a committee or guardian has been appointed for a person adjudged to

be incompetent, such committee or guardian generally should submit the application as a duly authorized agent of the applicant. 405.4 Prisoners An incarcerated person may claim copyright, and the U.S Copyright Office will accept applications submitted either by or on behalf of an inmate of a prison or other penal institution if the application is otherwise proper and complete. Chapter 400 | 3 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Who May File An Application 405.5 Deceased Authors The U.S Copyright Office will accept applications submitted by or on behalf of a claimant who owns all of the rights that initially belonged to a deceased author, such as the author’s estate, a devisee, or an heir. Likewise, the Office will accept applications that name a deceased author as the copyright claimant if the author is the only party who is eligible to be named as the copyright claimant. If the application names an individual as author and claimant and the Office discovers that the

individual died before the application has been approved for registration, the registration specialist may communicate with the applicant for the name of the current claimant. See Group Registration of Contributions to Periodicals, 81 Fed Reg 86,634, 86,641-42 (Dec. 1, 2016) 405.6 Foreign Authors The U.S Copyright Office will register works created by a foreign author if the work is eligible for copyright protection in the United States. US copyright law protects the unpublished works of all authors (domestic or foreign) as long as the work is not in the public domain. Published works of foreign authors may be eligible for protection in the United States if they satisfy the requirements described in Chapter 2000, Section 2003. 406 Applications Filed by or on Behalf of a Copyright Owner Who Owns All of the Exclusive Rights A transferee who owns all of the rights in the copyright may be named in the application as the copyright claimant. An application to register the copyright in

the transferee’s name may be certified and submitted by the author of the work, by the transferee, or by their respective agents. In this situation, the transferee is considered to be the claimant, anddepending on who submitted the applicationthe author, the transferee, or the authorized agent of the author or the transferee is considered the applicant. 407 Applications Filed by an Owner of One or MoreBut Less than All of the Exclusive Rights Any of the exclusive rights that make up a copyright or any subdivision of those rights can be transferred and owned separately. 17 USC § 201(d)(2) A party who owns one or more but not all of the rights that initially belonged to an author cannot be named as a copyright claimant. See 37 CFR § 2023(a)(3) However, an owner of one or more of the exclusive rights may submit an application to register the copyright in the author’s name. In this situation, the author is considered to be the claimant, and the owner of the exclusive right(s) is

considered the applicant. See generally Registration of Copyright: Definition of Claimant, 77 Fed Reg 29,257, 29,258-59 (May 17, 2012). 408 Exclusive Licensees and Nonexclusive Licensees An exclusive licensee is a party who has been granted one or more of the exclusive rights set forth in Section 106 of the Copyright Act, or any subdivision of those rights. Exclusive licensees are considered owners of those right(s) during the term of the license. A nonexclusive licensee Chapter 400 | 4 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Who May File An Application is a party who has the right to use a work or an exclusive right in the work, but does not have the right to prevent others from using the same work. Nonexclusive licensees are not owners of the right(s) or parts thereof, but rather, they are considered authorized users. The Copyright Act states that only “the owner of copyright or of any exclusive right in the work may obtain registration of the copyright claim.” 17 USC

§ 408(a) Although an exclusive licensee who owns one or more of the exclusive rights is entitled to submit an application, only an exclusive licensee who owns all of the exclusive rights in a work is entitled to be named as a copyright claimant. 37 CFR §2023(a)(3) An exclusive licensee with less than all rights may submit an application by naming the author as the claimant. As a general rule, a nonexclusive licensee is not entitled to be named as a copyright claimant or to submit an application to register a copyright claim, because a nonexclusive licensee is neither the “owner of copyright or of any exclusive right in the work.” 17 USC §408(a); see also 17 USC § 101 (definition of “transfer of copyright ownership,” which explicitly excludes nonexclusive licenses). A nonexclusive licensee may certify or submit an application to register the copyright only if the licensee is a duly authorized agent acting on behalf of the author or a person or entity that owns all of the

rights under copyright that initially belonged to the author. 409 Authorized Agents An author, a copyright owner who owns all of the rights in the work, or an owner of one or more of the exclusive right(s) may use a duly authorized agent to submit an application on their behalf. Examples of such agents include, but are not limited to, legal guardians, business managers, literary agents, and attorneys. In most cases, the correspondent is a duly authorized agent of one or more of the parties listed above, and as a general rule, the U.S Copyright Office will direct all communications concerning the application to that person. See Section 403 The Office imposes no special qualifications or tests for authorized agents (including attorneys) before they may file applications or otherwise conduct business with the Office. Nor does the Office require applications to be prepared or submitted by an attorney. In certain special cases the Office may suggest that the claimant consider seeking

legal advice, but the Office does not furnish the names of copyright attorneys, publishers, agents, or other similar information. See 37 C.FR § 2012(a)(2) As a general rule, the Office will accept the statement on the application certifying that the person who signs the application is an authorized agent of the author or an owner of the exclusive rights in the work. In some circumstances, the Office may ask an alleged agent to submit documentation showing that he or she is in fact authorized to act for one or more of those parties 410 Who May File the Application: At a Glance The following chart is intended to assist potential applicants in determining who may file an application and who may be named as a claimant: Chapter 400 | 5 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Who May File An Application Who May File the Application: At a Glance Who owns the rights? Who may be named as claimant? Who may file the application? The author of the work owns all of the rights The

author The author or An authorized agent of the author The author of the work owns somebut not allof the rights The author The author or An owner of one or more of the exclusive rights or An authorized agent of one or more of the aforementioned parties The author of the work owns none of the rights The author and/or The transferee who owns all of the rights The author or The transferee who owns all of the rights or An owner of one or morebut not allof the exclusive rights or An authorized agent of one or more of the aforementioned parties A transferee owns all of the rights The author and/or The transferee who owns all of the rights The author or The transferee who owns all of the rights or An authorized agent of one or more of the aforementioned parties A transferee owns somebut not allof the rights The author The author or An owner of one or more of the exclusive rights or An authorized agent of one or more of the aforementioned parties An exclusive licensee owns all of

the rights The author and/or The exclusive licensee who owns all of the rights The author or The exclusive licensee who owns all of the rights or An authorized agent of one or more of the aforementioned parties A exclusive licensee owns somebut not allof the rights The author The author or An owner of one or more of the exclusive rights or An authorized agent of one or more of the aforementioned parties Chapter 400 | 6 revised 09/29/2017 compendium: chapter 500 IDENTIFYING THE WORK(S) COVERED BY A REGISTRATION Contents 501 What This Chapter Covers 502 A Copyright Registration Covers a Claim in a Work of Original Authorship 503 Identifying the Original Authorship That the Applicant Intends to Register 503.1 1 What Is the Work of Authorship? 2 2 3 503.1(A) Works of Authorship Distinguished from the Constituent Elements of the Work 503.1(B) Copyrightable Subject Matter 503.1(C) Compilations and Derivative Works 503.1(D) Work of Authorship Distinguished from

the Medium of Expression 503.1(E) Copyrightable Authorship 3 4 5 5 503.2 Who Is the Author of the Work? 503.3 What Type of Authorship Did the Author Create? 503.4 Who Owns the Copyright in the Authorship? 503.5 Does the Work Contain Unclaimable Material? 6 7 7 8 503.5(A) Unclaimable Material: Previously Published Material 9 503.5(B) Unclaimable Material: Previously Registered Material 9 503.5(C) Unclaimable Material: Public Domain Material 503.5(D) Unclaimable Material: Copyrightable Material That Is Owned by a Third Party 504 9 The Scope of a Registration for a Work of Original Authorship 504.1 Copyrightable Authorship vs. Uncopyrightable Material 504.2 Authorship Contained in the Deposit Copy(ies) 504.3 Multiple Versions of the Same Work 505 Joint Works 10 10 11 11 11 12 505.1 What Is a Joint Work? 505.2 Determining Whether the Work Is a Joint Work 505.3 The Scope of the Copyright in a Joint Work 506 3 Works Made for Hire 12 12 13

14 506.1 What Is a Work Made for Hire? 14 506.2 Works Created by an Employee Within the Scope of His or Her Employment 15 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration 506.3 Works Specially Ordered or Commissioned as a Work Made for Hire 506.4 Determining whether the Work is a Work Made for Hire 506.4(A) Applicant Makes the Determination 506.4(B) Work Made for Hire Questionnaire 506.5 507 19 What Is a Derivative Work? 507.2 The Scope of the Copyright in a Derivative Work Compilations 21 What Is a Compilation? 508.2 The Scope of the Copyright in a Compilation 23 24 Collective Works and Contributions to Collective Works 509.1 What Is a Collective Work? 509.2 The Scope of the Copyright in a Collective Work 510 22 23 508.1 509 20 21 507.1 508 18 18 The Scope of the Copyright in a Work Made for Hire Derivative Works 17 One Registration Per Work 24 25 25 26 510.1 Unpublished Works vs. Published

Works 27 510.2 Naming the Author as the Copyright Claimant 510.3 Adverse Claims 27 28 511 One Work Per Registration 28 512 Multiple Versions of the Same Work 29 512.1 Unpublished Versions of the Same Work 512.2 Published Versions of the Same Work 29 30 512.2(A) Registering Multiple Versions of a Published Work: More Complete Version Published First 30 512.2(B) Registering Multiple Versions of a Published Work: Less Complete Version Published First 31 512.2(C) Registering Multiple Versions of a Published Work: Multiple Versions Published on the Same Date 31 Chapter 500 | ii revised 09/29/2017 compendium: chapter 500 IDENTIFYING THE WORK(S) COVERED BY A REGISTRATION 501 What This Chapter Covers This Chapter provides guidance on how to identify the work that the applicant intends to register with the U.S Copyright Office It explains how to identify the copyrightable authorship that can be submitted for registration, and how to describe the claim to

copyright in that authorship, particularly if the work contains multiple forms of authorship, if it was created by multiple authors, if the authorship is owned by multiple copyright owners, or if the applicant intends to register only a portion of the authorship that appears in the work. In addition, this Chapter assists copyright owners, courts, and the general public in understanding the scope of a registered copyright claim. When applying to register a work of authorship, it is crucial to correctly identify the work in which copyright is claimed, including the type of work, the author(s) who created that work, and the copyright owner who is entitled to claim copyright in that work. This Chapter provides a general overview of certain forms of authorship and ownership that are recognized under the copyright law, including joint works, works made for hire, derivative works, compilations, and collective works. For a discussion of the Office’s practices and procedures for registering a

claim to copyright, see the following chapters: • For a general overview of the registration process, see Chapter 200. • For guidance in determining who may file an application and who may be named as the copyright claimant, see Chapter 400. • For a general overview of the applications that may be used to register a copyright claim, see Chapter 1400. • For information on how to complete an application, see Chapter 600. • For information regarding the options for registering multiple works with one application, see Chapter 1100. • For information concerning the deposit requirements, see Chapter 1500. • For information concerning the Copyright Office’s practices and procedures for evaluating copyrightable authorship, see Chapter 300. For guidance concerning the practices and procedures relating to specific types of works, see the following chapters: • For a discussion of literary works, see Chapter 700. • For a discussion of works of the performing arts, see

Chapter 800. revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration • For a discussion of visual art works, see Chapter 900. • For a discussion of websites and website content, see Chapter 1000. • For a discussion of mask works and vessel designs, see Chapters 1200 and 1300. 502 A Copyright Registration Covers a Claim in a Work of Original Authorship The U.S Copyright Office does not issue copyrights, but instead simply registers claims to copyright See 17 USC § 408(a) (stating that “the owner of copyright or of any exclusive right in the work may obtain registration of the copyright claim” by submitting an appropriate application, filing fee, and deposit to the Copyright Office). The copyright in a work of authorship created or first published after January 1, 1978 is protected from the moment it is created, provided that the work is original and is fixed in a tangible medium of expression.17 USC §§ 102(a), 408(a) In other

words, the copyright in a work of original authorship exists regardless of whether the work has been submitted for registration or whether the Office has issued a certificate of registration for that work. See 17 USC § 408(a) (“registration is not a condition of copyright protection”) A copyright “claim” is an “assertion of copyright [ownership in] . the work” Applications for Registration of Claim to Copyright Under Revised Copyright Act, 42 Fed. Reg 48,944, 48,945 (Sept. 26, 1977) Thus, when an applicant files an application to register a work of authorship, the applicant is asserting a claim of ownership in the copyright in that work. Although registration is optional, there are important benefits for registering a claim to copyright and for doing so in a timely manner. For a discussion of these benefits, see Chapter 200, Section 202. 503 Identifying the Original Authorship That the Applicant Intends to Register A copyright claim is a claim in the original

authorship that an author or authors contributed to the work. The applicant not the US Copyright Office must identify the original authorship that the applicant intends to register In making this determination, the applicant may find it helpful to consider the following questions: • What is the work of authorship? • Who is the author(s) of the work? • What type(s) of authorship did the author or co-authors create? • Who owns the copyright in that authorship? • Does the work contain unclaimable material? Each of these topics is discussed in Sections 503.1 through 5035 below Chapter 500 | 2 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration 503.1 503.1(A) What Is the Work of Authorship? Works of Authorship Distinguished from the Constituent Elements of the Work The U.S Copyright Office registers claims to copyright in works of authorship As a general rule, the Office will issue one registration for each work that is submitted

for registration. The Office may examine the constituent elements or individual components of a work to determine if the work contains a sufficient amount of creative expression to warrant registration. But as a general rule, the Office will not issue separate registrations for the constituent elements or individual components of a work of authorship. Likewise, the Office will not issue separate registrations to each author who contributed copyrightable expression to a work of authorship (except as contributions to a collective work or derivative works). 503.1(B) Copyrightable Subject Matter A work may be registered with the U.S Copyright Office, provided that it falls within one or more of the categories of authorship set forth under Section 102(a) of the Copyright Act. Works that do not fall within one or more of these congressionally-established categories do not constitute copyrightable subject matter, and as such, cannot be registered. Section 102(a) of the Copyright Act states

that works of authorship include the following categories of works: • Literary works. • Musical works, including any accompanying words. • Dramatic works, including any accompanying music. • Pantomimes and choreographic works. • Pictorial, graphic, and sculptural works. • Motion pictures and other audiovisual works. • Sound recordings. • Architectural works. The following chart provides representative examples of works that may be registered and the relevant category of authorship for each work. Chapter 500 | 3 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration Category of Authorship Types of Works Literary Works Fiction, nonfiction, poetry, serial publications (e.g, newspapers, magazines, etc), articles, advertising copy, written communications (e.g, letters, email messages), reference works, directories, catalogs, compilations of information, computer programs, databases, ebooks, audiobooks, online textual works

(e.g, blogs, website text), and similar types of textual works. Pictorial Works Paintings, drawings, photographs, prints, art reproductions, maps, technical drawings, diagrams, applied art (i.e, two-dimensional pictorial artwork applied to a useful article), artistic crafts (e.g, textiles, table service patterns, wall plaques), online or digital artwork (e.g, computer-aided artwork, digital imaging, pixel art), and similar types of pictorial works. Graphic Works Drawings, prints, art reproductions, maps, technical drawings, diagrams, applied art (i.e, two-dimensional graphic artwork applied to a useful article), artistic crafts (e.g, textiles, table service patterns, wall plaques), online or digital artwork (e.g, computer-aided artwork, digital imaging, pixel art), and similar types of graphic works. Sculptural Works Sculptures, globes, models, applied art (i.e, three-dimensional artwork incorporated into a useful article), works of artistic craftsmanship (eg, jewelry, decorative

vases, toys, piggybanks, dolls, stuffed toy animals, models), and similar types of sculptural works. Musical Works Songs, song lyrics, symphonies, concertos, advertising jingles, and similar types of musical works. Dramatic Works Plays, musicals, operas, scripts, screenplays, and similar types of dramatic works. Choreographic Works Ballet, modern dance, and similar types of complex dances. Motion Pictures Films, documentaries, television shows, cartoons, videos, online videos, motion picture soundtracks, and similar types of motion pictures. Audiovisual Works Videogames, slide presentations, online audiovisual works (e.g, smartphone and tablet applications, online courses and tutorials, website content), and similar types of audiovisual works. Sound Recordings A recording of a song, a recording of a vocal performance, a recording of a musical performance, a recording of a literary work (e.g, an audiobook), a digital file of a performance, and similar types of recordings.

Architectural Works Buildings, architectural plans, and architectural drawings. 503.1(C) Compilations and Derivative Works The Copyright Act states that “[t]he subject matter of copyright as specified by section 102 includes compilations and derivative works.” 17 USC § 103(a) Compilations and derivative works constitute copyrightable subject matter, provided that the work falls within one or more of the categories of authorship set forth in Section 102(a) of the Chapter 500 | 4 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration Act (e.g, literary works, sound recordings, pictorial works, etc) In other words, a compilation or derivative work may be copyrightable provided that it qualifies as a literary work, a musical work, a dramatic work, or one of the other congressionally-established categories of authorship. A compilation or derivative work that does not fall within one or more of the Section 102(a) categories is not

registrable, such as a compilation of exercises or a new version of a useful article. Registration of Claims to Copyright, 77 Fed. Reg 37,605, 37,606 (June 22, 2012) For a definition and discussion of compilations and derivative works, see Sections 507 and 508. 503.1(D) Work of Authorship Distinguished from the Medium of Expression A copyright registration covers the copyrightable authorship that the author contributed to the work, but it does not cover the medium in which the work has been fixed. See HR Rep No 941476, at 53 (1976), reprinted in 1976 USCCAN 5659, 5666; S Rep No 94-473, at 52 (1975) (recognizing that there is “a fundamental distinction between the ‘original work’ which is the product of ‘authorship’ and the multitude of material objects in which it can be embodied.”) Thus, when completing an application, the applicant should describe the copyrightable authorship that the author contributed to the work, rather than the medium that the author used to create

that work. The U.S Copyright Office cannot register a claim based solely on the method that the author used to create his or her expression or the medium in which the expression has been fixed. The following chart provides representative examples of various types of works and the authorship they typically contain, as distinguished from the medium in which the authorship may be fixed. In these examples, the Office may register a claim to copyright in “2-D artwork,” “music and lyrics,” “sound recording,” or other forms of original authorship, but not in the “canvas,” “compact disc,” “digital music file,” or other medium that the author used to create the work. Type of Work Medium of Expression Original Authorship Short story Paper, digital file, etc. Text that qualifies as a literary work Acrylic painting Canvas 2-D Artwork Song containing music and lyrics Sheet music, compact disc, digital music file, etc. Music and lyrics Recording of a song

Compact disc, digital music file, etc. Sound recording Home video DVD, digital video file, etc. Motion picture 503.1(E) Copyrightable Authorship When completing an application, the applicant should identify the copyrightable authorship that the author contributed to the work, but should not assert a claim in any aspect of the work that is not protected by copyright. For more information on what constitutes uncopyrightable authorship, see Chapter 300, Section 313. Chapter 500 | 5 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration The following chart provides representative examples of various types of works and the copyrightable authorship they typically contain, as distinguished from the uncopyrightable material that may appear in the work. In these examples, the Office may register a claim to copyright in the “text,” “photographs,” “artwork,” or other forms of copyrightable authorship that the author contributed to the

work, but not the “facts,” “listing of ingredients,” “process,” “method,” “name,” “typeface,” “typographic ornamentation,” or other uncopyrightable material. Type of Work Copyrightable Authorship Uncopyrightable Material Newspaper Text, photographs, illustrations Facts Cookbook Text, artwork, photographs Listings of ingredients; ideas, procedures, processes, or methods for cooking Computer program Source code, screen displays of pictorial or audiovisual authorship Ideas, procedures, processes, systems, methods of operation, concepts, principles, or discoveries Product logo Artwork Name of the product; typeface or typographic ornamentation Comic book Artwork, text Name of characters; idea for characters Website Text, artwork, photographs, audiovisual material Format and layout; domain name 503.2 Who Is the Author of the Work? The applicant should identify the author or co-authors who created the work that the applicant intends to

register. If the work qualifies as a joint work, the applicant should identify each author who contributed copyrightable authorship to that work. For a definition and discussion of joint works, see Section 505 If the work was created as a work made for hire, the employer for hire should be identified as the author. For a definition and discussion of works made for hire, see Section 506 The author or co-authors listed in the application are presumed to be the sole authors or joint authors of the expression claimed therein. Although the US Copyright Office does not investigate the truth of the claims asserted in the application, it does verify that the asserted authorship facts are consistent with the facts contained in the deposit copy(ies) or elsewhere in the registration materials. For guidance in identifying the author of a work, see Chapter 600, Sections 613.1 through 6138 For guidance in completing the name of author field/space of the application, see Chapter 600, Section 613.9

Chapter 500 | 6 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration 503.3 What Type of Authorship Did the Author Create? The applicant should identify the copyrightable authorship that the author or co-authors contributed to the work. The U.S Copyright Office only examines the authorship that is explicitly claimed in the application It does not examine any authorship that is not claimed in the application, and therefore, no prima facie presumption should apply to unclaimed authorship that appears in the work. A copyrightable work may contain one or more types of authorship, but as discussed in Section 503.4, a registration only covers the authorship that is owned by the claimant or co-claimants who are named in the application. In some cases, the applicant may intend and may be entitled to register all of the authorship that appears in the work, while in other cases the applicant may intend or may be entitled to register only certain

aspects of the work. The following chart provides a representative example of a work that contains multiple types of authorship. Work of Authorship Authorship Created by Author A Authorship Created by Author B Newspaper Music Lyrics In this example, the song contains two types of authorship created by two different authors. If the claimant only owns the copyright in the music, the applicant should assert a claim in “music” and should name Author A in the application (but not Author B). If the claimant only owns the copyright in the lyrics, the applicant should assert a claim in “lyrics” and should name Author B in the application (but not Author A). By contrast, if the claimant owns the copyright in the music and lyrics, the applicant should assert a claim in both elements and should name Authors A and B in the application. 503.4 Who Owns the Copyright in the Authorship? The applicant should identify the person or organization that owns the copyrightable authorship

that the author or co-authors contributed to the work. For purposes of copyright registration, this person or organization is known as the “copyright claimant” The copyright in a work of authorship initially belongs to the author or co-authors of that work, unless and until the author assigns the copyright to another party in a signed, written agreement or by operation of law. 17 USC §§ 201(a), 204(a) If the author no longer owns the copyright in the work, the applicant must provide a brief statement that explains “how the claimant obtained ownership of the copyright.” 17 USC § 409(5) For guidance in completing these portions of the application, see Chapter 600, Sections 619 and 620. As discussed in Section 503.3, works of authorship often contain different forms of expression In some cases, the copyright claimant may own all of the authorship that appears in the work, while in other cases the claimant may own or may be entitled to register only certain aspects of Chapter

500 | 7 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration the work. In all cases, the applicant should assert a claim only in the authorship that is owned by the claimant or co-claimants named in the application. The following chart provides a representative example of a work that contains multiple types of authorship that is owned by multiple claimants. Work of Authorship Authorship Owned by Author A Authorship Owned by Author B Authorship Owned by Other Parties Children’s Book Text Illustrations Text, artwork, and photographs on the cover If the claimant owns the copyright in the text of the book (but does not own the illustrations or any of the content that appears on the cover), the applicant should identify the author(s) of the text, the applicant should assert a claim in “text,” and the applicant should name A as the copyright claimant. If the claimant owns the copyright in the illustrations (but does not own the text

of the book or any of the content that appears on the cover), the applicant should identify the author(s) of those illustrations, the applicant should assert a claim in “2-D artwork,” and the applicant should name B as the copyright claimant. 503.5 Does the Work Contain Unclaimable Material? A copyright registration covers the new expression that the author created and contributed to the work, but it does not cover any unclaimable material that the work may contain. For purposes of registration, unclaimable material includes the following: • Previously published material. • Previously registered material (including material that has been submitted for registration but has not been registered yet). • Material that is in the public domain. • Copyrightable material that is owned by a third party (i.e, an individual or legal entity other than the claimant who is named in the application). For a definition and discussion of each type of unclaimable material, see Chapter 600,

Sections 621.4 through 6217 If the work submitted for registration contains unclaimable material, the applicant should exclude that material from the claim by providing a brief description in the Material Excluded field in the online application or in space 6(a) of the paper application. However, the applicant does not need to complete this portion of the application if the work merely contains material that is uncopyrightable, such as words, letters, numbers, common symbols and shapes, and the like. Similarly, brief quotes, short phrases, and other de minimis uses of prior works do not need to be excluded from the claim. Chapter 500 | 8 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration For representative examples of works that contain unclaimable material, see Sections 503.5(A) through 503.5(D) below For guidance in completing the Material Excluded field and space 6(a) of the application, see Chapter 600, Sections 621.4 through 6216,

and Section 6218(B) 503.5(A) Unclaimable Material: Previously Published Material The following chart provides a representative example of a work that contains previously published material. Work of Authorship Excluded Material New Authorship Textbook (second edition) Text, artwork, and photographs published in the first edition of this textbook New text that the author created for the second edition of this textbook In this example, the applicant may register the new text that the author contributed to the second edition of this textbook. The applicant should exclude the text, artwork, and other material that was published in the first edition of this work using the procedure described in Chapter 600, Section 621.8 503.5(B) Unclaimable Material: Previously Registered Material The following chart provides a representative example of a work that contains previously registered material. Work of Authorship Excluded Material New Authorship Feature film based on an unpublished

screenplay Unpublished screenplay (Reg. No PAu 9-999-999) Motion picture In this example, the unpublished screenplay has been previously registered with the U.S Copyright Office, but the feature film has not The applicant may register the new authorship that the author contributed to the motion picture. The previously registered screenplay should be excluded from the claim using the procedure described in Chapter 600, Section 621.8(F) 503.5(C) Unclaimable Material: Public Domain Material The following chart provides a representative example of a work that contains public domain material. Work of Authorship Excluded Material New Authorship Musical based on The Confidence Man by Herman Melville The Confidence Man by Herman Melville Music, lyrics, script Chapter 500 | 9 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration In this example, the musical is based on Herman Melville’s novel The Confidence Man, which is in the public

domain. The applicant may register the music, lyrics, and script that the author contributed to the musical. The applicant should exclude the story, characters, and other expression that the author borrowed from the novel using the procedure described in Chapter 600, Section 621.8 503.5(D) Unclaimable Material: Copyrightable Material That Is Owned by a Third Party The following chart provides a representative example of a work that contains copyrightable material that is owned by a third party. Work of Authorship Excluded Material New Authorship Coffee Table Book Photographs owned by Photographer A, B, & C Text owned by Company X In this example, Company X owns the copyright in the text of the coffee table book, while Photographers A, B, and C own the copyright in the photographs that appear in the book. Company X may register the text that the author contributed to the book. The photographs should be excluded from the claim using the procedure described in Chapter 600,

Section 621.8 504 The Scope of a Registration for a Work of Original Authorship As a general rule, a registration for a work of authorship covers the entire copyrightable content of the authorship that (i) is claimed in the application, (ii) is owned by the claimant, and (iii) is contained in the deposit copy(ies). The applicant should assert a claim in this authorship in the online application by completing the Author Created field, and if appropriate, the New Material Included field. In the paper application, the applicant should assert a claim in this authorship by completing the Nature of Authorship space, and if appropriate, the Material Added to This Work space. Together, these fields and spaces provide important information about the scope of the claim of authorship in a work. Applicants are encouraged to be specific when completing these portions of the application A clear description of the copyrightable expression that the applicant intends to register creates an accurate

record of authorship and ownership for the benefit of the copyright owner, the courts, and the general public. The fact that a work was submitted for registration and was registered by the U.S Copyright Office does not necessarily mean that the registration covers all the authorship that appears in the work as a whole. As discussed in Sections 5033 and 5043, the Office examines and registers only the copyrightable authorship that is expressly claimed in the application and that is included in the deposit copy(ies). The Office does not examine any authorship that is not claimed or any authorship that has been disclaimed in the application, and the Office cannot examine any authorship that does not appear in the deposit copy(ies). Chapter 500 | 10 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration 504.1 Copyrightable Authorship vs. Uncopyrightable Material A registration covers the copyrightable authorship that the author or co-authors

contributed to the work, but it does not cover any uncopyrightable material that appears in the work. If the applicant expressly asserts a claim in uncopyrightable material, the registration specialist may communicate with the applicant. In the alternative, the specialist may remove the uncopyrightable term from the application and register the claim with an annotation indicating that the registration does not cover that material. See Chapter 600, Section 604 The annotation is intended to put the copyright owner, the courts, and the general public on notice concerning the extent of the claim. That said, a registration does not extend to uncopyrightable material that appears in a work of authorship, even if the registration does not contain an annotation or even if it contains ambiguous language that may refer to uncopyrightable material. 504.2 Authorship Contained in the Deposit Copy(ies) Ordinarily, a registration for a work of authorship only covers the material that is included in

the deposit copy(ies). It does not cover authorship that does not appear in the deposit copy(ies), even if the applicant expressly claims that authorship in the application. There are two limited exceptions to this rule: • In some cases, an applicant may register a work of authorship by submitting identifying portions of the work. For example, an applicant may register a computer program by submitting a portion of the source code for that work, rather than a complete copy of the entire program. • In exceptional cases, the U.S Copyright Office may grant special relief from the deposit requirements for a particular work A work of authorship that is registered with identifying material or based on a grant of special relief may cover the entire copyrightable content of the work, notwithstanding the fact that the applicant did not submit a copy of the entire work. For a discussion of special relief and examples of other works that may be registered with identifying material, see

Chapter 1500, Sections 1506 and 1508.8 504.3 Multiple Versions of the Same Work A registration only covers the specific version of the work that is submitted for registration. The U.S Copyright Office does not offer so-called “blanket registrations” that cover prior versions or derivative versions of the same work. For example, a registration for a published website covers the text, photographs, or other copyrightable content that appeared on that website on the date(s) claimed in the application and specified in the deposit copy(ies), but it does not cover any future version of that website. Similarly, a registration for version 130 of a computer program does not cover version 1.20 or any previously published or previously registered content that appears in the later version of that program. For the same reason, a registration for a comic book that depicts or describes a particular character covers the expression set forth in that issue, but it does not cover the character per

se or any other issue or other work that features the same character. For additional guidance in registering multiple versions of the same work, see Section 512. Chapter 500 | 11 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration 505 Joint Works This Section provides the definition and a general discussion concerning joint works. For specific guidance in preparing an application to register a joint work, see Chapter 600, Sections 613.5 and 6205 505.1 What Is a Joint Work? The Copyright Act defines a joint work as a work “prepared by two or more authors with the intention that their contributions be merged into inseparable or interdependent parts of a unitary whole.” 17 USC § 101 A work of authorship is considered a joint work “if the authors collaborated with each other, or if each of the authors prepared his or her contribution with the knowledge and intention that it would be merged with the contributions of other authors as

‘inseparable or interdependent parts of a unitary whole.’” HR Rep No 94-1476, at 120, reprinted in 1976 USCCAN 5659, 5736; S Rep. No94-473, at 103-04 The key requirement “is the intention, at the time the writing is done, that the parts be absorbed or combined into an integrated unit.” HR Rep No 94-1476, at 120, reprinted in 1976 U.SCCAN at 5736 A contribution to a joint work is considered “inseparable” if the work contains a single form of authorship, such as a novel or painting, and it is considered “interdependent” if the work contains multiple forms of authorship, such as motion picture, opera, or the music and lyrics of a song. Id; S Rep No 94-473, at 103-04 505.2 Determining Whether the Work Is a Joint Work The applicant not the U.S Copyright Office must determine whether a work qualifies as a joint work, and as the legislative history explains, this determination should be based on the facts that existed when the work was created. See HR Rep No 94-1476, at

120, reprinted in 1976 U.SCCAN at 5736; S Rep No 94-473, at 103 When examining a joint work, the Office applies U.S copyright law, even if the work was created in a foreign country, created by a citizen, domiciliary, or habitual resident of a foreign country, or first published in a foreign country. The US Copyright Act is the exclusive source of copyright protection in the United States, and all applicants both foreign and domestic must demonstrate that a work satisfies the requirements of U.S copyright law in order to register a work with the Office. Upon request, the Office will provide the applicant with general information about the provisions of the Copyright Act, including the statutory definition for a joint work, and will explain the relevant practices and procedures for registering this type of work. However, the Office cannot provide specific legal advice on the rights of persons, issues involving a particular use of a copyrighted work, cases of alleged foreign or domestic

copyright infringement, contracts between authors and publishers, or other matters of a similar nature. 37 CFR § 2012(a)(3) When completing the application, the applicant should provide the name of each joint author who contributed copyrightable authorship to the joint work. The Office takes the position that each joint author must contribute a sufficient amount of original authorship to the work. An Chapter 500 | 12 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration author who satisfies this requirement may be considered a joint author, even if his or her contribution to the work is smaller or less significant than the contributions made by another author. By contrast, a collaborator who merely contributes a de minimis amount of expression is not considered a joint author. See Chapter 300, Section 3134(B) As a general rule, the registration specialist will accept the applicant’s representation that a work of authorship is a joint

work, unless it is contradicted by information provided elsewhere in the registration materials or in the Office’s records, or by information that is known to the specialist. If the claim appears implausible, the specialist may communicate with the applicant or may refuse registration. Examples of factors that may indicate that a work does not qualify as a joint work include the following: • Evidence that one or more of the authors did not intend to merge their contributions into a unitary whole. • A work containing separate copyright notices for the authors’ respective contributions to the work (e.g, “text Selena Banik, illustrations Kieran Banik”) • A work containing a number of separate and independent works, such as a book of photographs by different authors. • A work containing a major contribution from one author combined with a minor contribution by another author, such as a book containing hundreds of pages of text by one author and an introduction or a

few illustrations by another author. 505.3 The Scope of the Copyright in a Joint Work Determining whether a work of authorship is a joint work has important implications for the ownership of the copyright and the term of the copyright. The authors of a joint work jointly own the copyright in each other’s contributions and each author owns an undivided interest in the copyright for the work as a whole. 17 USC § 201(a) In other words, all the authors are “treated generally as tenants in common, with each co-owner having an independent right to use or license the use of a work, subject to a duty of accounting to the other co-owners for any profits.” HR Rep No 94-1476, at 121, reprinted in 1976 USCCAN at 5736; S. Rep No 94-473, at 104 If the work of authorship was created by two or more individuals, the copyright in the joint work expires seventy years after the death of the last surviving author. 17 USC § 302(b) If the joint work was created by two or more authors as a work made

for hire, an anonymous work, or a pseudonymous work, the copyright expires ninety-five years from the year of publication or 120 years from the year of creation (whichever is shorter). 17 USC § 302(c) The term “for an anonymous or pseudonymous work can be converted to the ordinary life-plus-[seventy] term if ‘the identity of one or more of the [joint] authors . is revealed’ in records maintained for this purpose in the Copyright Office.” HR Rep No 94-1476, at 137, reprinted in 1976 USCCAN at 5753; S. Rep No 94-473, at 120 In this situation, the term of the copyright is “based on the life of the author or co-authors whose identity has been revealed.” 17 USC § 302(c) Chapter 500 | 13 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration 506 Works Made for Hire This Section provides the definition and a general discussion concerning works made for hire. For guidance in preparing an application to register a work made for

hire, see Chapter 600, Sections 613.4, 6141, 6161(A), and 6173 506.1 What Is a Work Made for Hire? The term “work made for hire” is defined in Section 101 of the Copyright Act. This definition applies to works created on or after January 1, 1978. For works created prior to 1978, see Chapter 2100. The statute defines a work made for hire as: 1. A work prepared by an employee within the scope of his or her employment; or 2. A work that is specially ordered or commissioned, provided that the parties expressly agree in a written instrument signed by them that the work shall be considered a “work made for hire,” and provided that the work is specially ordered or commissioned for use as: -- A contribution to a collective work; -- A part of a motion picture or other audiovisual work; -- A translation; -- A compilation; -- A test; -- Answer material for a test; -- An atlas; -- An instructional text, which is defined as a “literary, pictorial, or graphic work prepared for

publication and with the purpose of use in systematic instructional activities;” or -- A supplementary work, which is defined as “a work prepared for publication as a secondary adjunct to a work by another author for the purpose of introducing, concluding, illustrating, explaining, revising, commenting upon, or assisting in the use of the other work, such as forewords, afterwords, pictorial illustrations, maps, charts, tables, editorial notes, musical arrangements, answer material for tests, bibliographies, appendixes, and indexes.” 17 U.SC § 101 (definition of “work made for hire”) Chapter 500 | 14 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration 506.2 Works Created by an Employee Within the Scope of His or Her Employment The Copyright Act does not define the terms “employee,” “employer,” or “scope of employment.” The Supreme Court has held that Congress intended these terms “to be understood in light of

agency law” and that the courts should rely “on the general common law of agency, rather than on the law of any particular State, to give meaning to these terms.” Community for Creative NonViolence v Reid, 490 US 730, 740 (1989) Examples of factors that may be relevant to this inquiry include the following (although none of these factors is determinative): • The skill required to create the work. • The location where the work was created. • The source of the instrumentalities and tools used to create the work. • The duration of the relationship between the parties. • Whether the hiring party has the right to assign additional projects to the hired party. • The method of payment. • The extent of the hired party’s discretion over when and how long to work. • The hired party’s role in hiring and paying assistants. • Whether the hiring party is in business. • Whether the work is part of the regular business of the hiring party. • Whether the hiring party

provided employee benefits to the hired party. • The tax treatment of the hired party. • Whether the work is the type of work the hired party was authorized to perform. • Whether the work occurs substantially within the authorized work hours and space limits of the hired party. • Whether the work is actuated, at least in part, by a purpose to serve the hiring party. See id. at 751-52 (citing Restatement (Second) of Agency § 220(2) (1958)); US Auto Parts Network, Inc. v Parts Geek, LLC, 692 F 3d 1009, 1015 (9th Cir 2012) The following examples illustrate some of the factors that may indicate whether a work does or does not qualify as a work made for hire. Work created by an employee • Dave Muller is a full time chemist for Continental Chemicals. Dave created a computer program that evaluates the company’s products By eliminating the need to perform mathematical calculations by hand, the program improved the efficiency of the company’s operations Chapter 500 | 15

revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration Continental subsequently asked Dave to develop similar programs for its other products. Dave wrote and tested these programs at home using his personal computer. He did not receive overtime or any additional pay for creating these programs. Each program is considered a work made for hire Although Dave was not hired as a computer programmer, he was employed by Continental when he wrote these programs and he wrote the programs, at least in part, to further the company’s interests. Developing these programs was incidental to his responsibilities because they improved the quality control of the company’s operations. Dave specifically created the programs for the company’s products and it is unlikely that he would do this type of work on his own. In the application to register the program, Continental Chemicals should be named as the author and the work made for hire box should be checked

“yes.” Work created by an employee acting within the scope of his or her employment • Lois Lang has worked part time for the Georgetown Gazette for five years. She is expected to write at least five articles per week and she does most of her work at the paper’s office. She is paid on a monthly basis and income taxes, social security, and medicare are withheld from her paycheck. The Gazette reimburses Lois for her driving expenses, but she receives no direct employee benefits Lois’s contributions to the paper are considered works made for hire In the application to register Lois’s contributions, the publisher of the Georgetown Gazette should be named as the author and the work made for hire box should be checked “yes.” • Kir Royale Records is in the business of producing classical music recordings. Stefan Brooks is a sound engineer who works for Kir Royale from time to time. Stefan performs all of his work at the company’s studio using the company’s sound mixing

equipment. His supervisor closely monitors his job performance and evaluates the quality of his work. Stefan is paid an hourly wage and he receives no employee benefits. The recordings that he produces for Kir Royale Records are considered works made for hire. In the application to register these sound recordings, Kir Royale Records should be named as the author of the recordings and the work made for hire box should be checked “yes.” • Jack Thomas is a full time programmer for Creative Computer Corporation. His job responsibilities include writing source code, designing user interfaces, and preparing program documentation. Jack creates a subroutine for a new program called Utopolis The routine is considered a work made for hire, because Jack created this work while acting within the scope of his duties as an employee of Creative Computer Corporation. In the application to register Utopolis, Creative Computer Corporation should be named as the author and the work made for hire

box should be checked “yes.” Work created by an individual who was not acting within the scope of his or her employment • John Bellevue is a staff composer for SoundTrax, Inc., a company that produces music for motion picture studios. While on a leave of absence, John wrote a song called “Saturdays Are the Best” to celebrate his son’s birthday. Although John is a fulltime employee of SoundTrax, he did not create this song as part of his regular duties. Therefore, the song is not a work made for hire. In the application to register “Saturdays Are the Best,” John should be named as the author of the song and the work made for hire box should be checked “no.” • Ryan Jennings created a compilation of pharmaceutical statistics while in graduate school. When he graduated, Ryan formed Prescription Financial LLP, assigned the copyright in this compilation to the company, and appointed himself President and CEO. The compilation is Chapter 500 | 16 revised 09/29/2017

c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration not a work made for hire, because Ryan was not an employee of Prescription Financial when he created this work. In the application to register the index, Ryan should be named as the author and the work made for hire box should be checked “no.” Work created by an individual who is not an employee • WMFH-FM asked Aaron Washington to create a jingle for the station. The station told Aaron that the jingle should be thirty seconds long and that it should include the sound of a helicopter. Aaron wrote the jingle at home using his own equipment and he did most of his work in the middle of the night. Aaron was paid a flat fee for this assignment The jingle is not a work made for hire because Aaron was not an employee of WMFH. In the application to register this jingle, Aaron should be named as the author and the work made for hire box should be checked “no.” • Julianne Ziegler prepared the first draft for

a screenplay titled “Princesses vs. Zombies” After completing the first draft, Zombieflix LLC asked Julianne to prepare a shooting script based on her screenplay. The first draft of this screenplay is not a work made for hire, because Julianne completed the draft before she was hired by Zombieflix LLC. In the application to register the first draft, Julianne should be named as the author and the work made for hire box should be checked “no.” • Marilyn Chariott works for an accounting firm. She wrote a song titled “Buy the Numbers” in her spare time and someday she hopes to be hired as a singer/songwriter. Marilyn’s song is not a work made for hire, because she did not write this song for her current employer. In the application to register “Buy the Numbers,” Marilyn should be named as the author and the work made for hire box should be checked “no.” 506.3 Works Specially Ordered or Commissioned as a Work Made for Hire A specially ordered or commissioned work

is considered a work made for hire if it satisfies the following criteria: • The work must fall within one or more of the nine categories of works listed in the statutory definition. • There must be an express written agreement between the party that ordered or commissioned the work and the individual(s) that actually created the work. • The agreement must state that the work shall be considered a work made for hire. • The agreement must be signed by both parties. If a work fails to satisfy all of these requirements, it does not qualify as a work made for hire. The following examples illustrate some of the factors that may indicate whether a work does or does not qualify as a work made for hire under the second part of the statutory definition. Works specially ordered or commissioned pursuant to a written agreement specifying that the work will be created as a work made for hire Chapter 500 | 17 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered

by a Registration • Lighthouse Books Inc. is the author of a textbook The company hired Nous Traduisons Inc. to translate this work from English into French Before Nous Traduisons began working on this project, the parties signed a written agreement stating that Nous Traduisons would translate the textbook for Lighthouse Books as a work made for hire. The work satisfies the second part of the statutory definition, because a translation is one of the nine categories of works that may be specially ordered or commissioned and because the parties signed a written agreement specifying that the work would be created for Lighthouse Books as a work made for hire. In the application to register this work, Lighthouse Books, Inc should be named as the author of the translation and the work made for hire box should be checked “yes.” No written agreement between the parties specifying that the work will be created as a work made for hire • Judy Smith works for a car dealership. During her

lunch break, she created an atlas that depicts the cities and territories in an imaginary country She hopes to sell her work to a company that publishes fantasy books Judy’s atlas fails the first part of the statutory definition because she did not create this work for her employer while acting within the scope of her employment. Although an atlas is one of the nine categories of works that may be created as a work made for hire, Judy’s atlas does not satisfy the second part of the statutory definition because she has not signed a written agreement specifying that she would create this atlas for another party as a work made for hire. In the application to register this atlas, Judy should be named as the author and the work made for hire box should be checked “no.” Work does not fall within the nine categories of works listed in the statutory definition that may be specially ordered or commissioned as a work made for hire • Monkey Business Inc. hired Heath Liszewski to create

the design for a new line of wallpaper The work does not satisfy the first part of the statutory definition because Heath is an independent contractor and he was paid a flat fee for his work on this assignment. Therefore, he is not an employee of Monkey Business. Although the parties signed a written agreement specifying that Heath would create this work for Monkey Business, it does not satisfy the second part of the definition because two-dimensional artwork is not one of the nine categories of works that may be specially ordered or commissioned as a work made for hire. In the application to register this work, Heath should be named as the author and the work made for hire box should be checked “no.” 506.4 506.4(A) Determining whether the Work is a Work Made for Hire Applicant Makes the Determination The applicantnot the U.S Copyright Officemust determine whether the work is a work is made for hire, and this determination should be based on the facts that exist at the time when

the work was created. When examining a work made for hire the Office applies U.S copyright law, even if the work was created in a foreign country, created by a citizen, domiciliary, or habitual resident of a foreign country, or first published in a foreign country. The US Copyright Act is the exclusive source of copyright protection in the United States, and all applicantsboth foreign and domesticmust Chapter 500 | 18 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration demonstrate that a work satisfies the requirements of U.S copyright law in order to register a work with the Office. As a general rule, the registration specialist will accept the applicant’s representation that a work is a work made for hire, unless it is contradicted by information provided elsewhere in the registration materials or in the Office’s records or by information that is known to the specialist. If the claim appears unusual or implausible, the specialist may

communicate with the applicant or may refuse registration. 506.4(B) Work Made for Hire Questionnaire Upon request, the U.S Copyright Office will provide the applicant with general information about the provisions of the Copyright Act, including the statutory definition of a work made for hire, and will explain the relevant practices and procedures for registering the work. The Office cannot provide specific legal advice on the rights of persons, issues involving a particular use of a copyrighted work, cases of alleged foreign or domestic copyright infringement, contracts between authors and publishers, or other matters of a similar nature. 37 CFR § 201.2(a)(3) However, the Office has developed a questionnaire that may be useful to applicants in determining whether a particular work fits within the statutory definition of a work made for hire. note: This questionnaire is only intended for use in connection with works created on or after January 1, 1978. Question 1: Was the work

created by an employee? note: The fact that someone was hired or paid to create a work does not necessarily mean that that person is an employee. For guidance on whether a person may be considered an employee, see Section 506.2 If the answer to Question 1 is “yes,” proceed to Question 2. If the answer is “no,” proceed to Question 3. Question 2: Did the employee create the work while acting within the scope of his or her employment? If the answer to Question 2 is “yes,” the work is a work made for hire. For guidance in completing an application to register a work made for hire, see Chapter 600, Section 6141 If the answer is “no,” proceed to Question 3. Question 3: Is there a written agreement between the party that ordered or commissioned the work and the party who created the work? If the answer is “no,” the work is not a work made for hire. If the answer is “yes,” proceed to Question 4. Chapter 500 | 19 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m :

Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration Question 4: Was the written agreement signed by the party that ordered or commissioned the work and the party who created the work? If the answer is “no,” the work is not a work made for hire. If the answer is “yes,” proceed to Question 5. Question 5: Did the parties expressly agree in the written agreement that the work shall be considered a work made for hire? If the answer is “no,” the work is not a work made for hire. If the answer is “yes,” proceed to Question 6. Question 6: Was the work specially ordered or commissioned for use in one or more of the following types of works? -- An atlas. -- A test. -- Answer material for a test. -- A translation. -- As part of a motion picture or other audiovisual work. -- A compilation. -- A contribution to a collective work. -- A supplementary work. -- An instructional text. If the answer is “no,” the work is not a work made for hire. If the answer is “yes,” the work is

a work made for hire. For guidance in completing an application to register a work made for hire, see Chapter 600, Section 6141 506.5 The Scope of the Copyright in a Work Made for Hire Determining whether a work is a work made for hire has important implications for the term of the copyright, the ownership of the copyright, and the ability to terminate a transfer or license involving the copyright. See Community for Creative Non-Violence v Reid, 490 US 730, 737 (1989) (“Classifying a work as ‘made for hire’ determines not only the initial ownership of its copyright, but also the copyright’s duration . [and] termination rights”) Therefore, the US Copyright Office encourages applicants to exercise judgment when answering the work made for hire portion of the application. Chapter 500 | 20 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration • Copyright Term. The copyright in a work made for hire expires ninety-five years from

the year of publication or one hundred twenty years from the year of creation (whichever is shorter). 17 U.SC § 302(c) • Copyright Ownership. The copyright in a work made for hire initially belongs to the employer or the party that ordered or commissioned the work (rather than the individual who actually created the work). In other words, if the work was created by an employee acting within the scope of his or her employment, the employer owns the copyright in that work (not the employee). If the work was specially ordered or commissioned as a work made for hire, the person or organization that ordered or commissioned owns the copyright in that work (rather than the individual who actually created the work). 17 USC § 201(b) • Termination. Under certain circumstances, an author or his or her heirs may terminate an exclusive or nonexclusive transfer or license of the copyright in the author’s work by exercising the author’s right to terminate a grant under Sections 203,

304(c), and 304(d) of the Copyright Act. However, these termination provisions do not apply to grants involving the copyright in a work made for hire. For a general discussion of termination, see Chapter 2300, Section 2310. 507 Derivative Works This Section provides the definition and a general discussion concerning derivative works. For information concerning the Office’s practices and procedures for evaluating the copyrightability of derivative works, see Chapter 300, Section 311. For guidance in completing an application to register a derivative work, see Chapter 600, Sections 613.6, 6175, 6185, 6207, and 621 507.1 What Is a Derivative Work? The Copyright Act defines a derivative work as “a work based upon one or more preexisting works, such as a translation, musical arrangement, dramatization, fictionalization, motion picture version, sound recording, art reproduction, abridgement, condensation, or any other form in which a work may be recast, transformed, or adapted.”

The statute also states that “[a] work consisting of editorial revisions, annotations, elaborations, or other modifications, which, as a whole, represent an original work of authorship, is a ‘derivative work.’” 17 USC § 101 Creating a derivative work requires “a process of recasting, transforming, or adapting ‘one or more preexisting works.’” HR Rep No 94-1476 at 57, reprinted in 1976 USCCAN 5659, 5670; S. Rep No 94-473 at 55 Thus, derivative works contain two distinct forms of authorship: • The authorship in the preexisting work(s) that has been recast, transformed, or adapted within the derivative work, and • The new authorship involved in recasting, transforming, or adapting the preexisting work(s). The new authorship that the author contributed to the derivative work may be registered, provided that it contains a sufficient amount of original authorship. As the legislative history explains, derivative works include “every copyrightable work that employs

preexisting material . of any kind,” regardless of whether the preexisting material is Chapter 500 | 21 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration protected by copyright or whether the copyright in that material has expired. HR Rep No 94-1476 at 57, reprinted in 1976 U.SCCAN at 5670; S Rep No 94-473 at 55 Typically, a derivative work is a new version of a preexisting work or a work that is based on or derived from a preexisting work. Examples: • A motion picture based on a novel or a play. • An English translation of a novel written in Spanish. • A sculpture based on a drawing. • A drawing based on a photograph. • A lithograph based on a painting. • A musical arrangement of a preexisting musical work. • A drama based on the letters and sermons of Cotton Mather. A new edition of a preexisting work may also qualify as a derivative work, provided that the revisions or other modifications, taken as a whole,

constitute a new work of authorship. Examples: • A revision of a previously published book. • A revision of the artwork and text on a website. • A new version of an existing computer program. • A new version of a doll or stuffed animal. 507.2 The Scope of the Copyright in a Derivative Work The copyright for a derivative work only covers the new material that the author contributed to that work. It does not cover any of the preexisting material that appears in the derivative work. See HR 94-1476, at 57, reprinted in 1976 USCCAN at 5670; S Rep No 94-473, at 55 (“[C]opyright in a ‘new version’ covers only the material added by the later author, and has no effect one way or the other on the copyright or public domain status of the preexisting material.”) Likewise, a registration for a derivative work does not cover any previously published material, previously registered material, public domain material, or third party material that appears in the work. In other words,

the copyright in a derivative work is “independent of, and does not affect or enlarge the scope, duration, ownership, or subsistence of, any copyright protection in the preexisting material.” 17 USC § 103(b) Derivative works often contain previously published material, previously registered material, public domain material, or material owned by a third party because by definition they are based upon one or more preexisting works. If a derivative work contains an appreciable amount of unclaimable material, the applicant generally should limit the claim to the new material that the author contributed to the work, and the unclaimable material should be excluded from Chapter 500 | 22 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration the claim. For guidance on this procedure, see Chapter 600, Section 6218 By contrast, there is generally no need to limit the claim if the derivative work is solely based on or derived from unpublished

material, unregistered material, or copyrightable material that is owned by the claimant named in the application. The author of a derivative work may claim copyright in a work that recasts, transforms, or adapts a preexisting work, provided that the preexisting material has been used in a lawful manner. Section 103(a) of the Copyright Act states that the copyright in a derivative work “does not extend to any part of the work” that “unlawfully” uses preexisting material. 17 USC § 103(a) As discussed in Chapter 300, Section 313.6(B), this provision is intended to prevent “an infringer from benefiting, through copyright protection, from committing an unlawful act.” HR Rep No 94‑1476, at 57, reprinted in 1976 U.SCCAN at 5671 The unlawful use of preexisting material may also infringe the right of reproduction and/or the right to prepare derivative works based upon that material. 508 Compilations This Section provides the definition and a general discussion concerning

compilations. For information concerning the Office’s practices and procedures for evaluating the copyrightability of compilations, see Chapter 300, Section 312. For guidance in preparing an application to register a compilation see Chapter 600, Sections 613.7, 6175, 6186, 6207, and 6218(C) 508.1 What Is a Compilation? The Copyright Act defines a compilation as “a work formed by the collection and assembling of preexisting materials or of data that are selected, coordinated or arranged in such a way that the resulting work as a whole constitutes an original work of authorship.” 17 USC § 101 As the legislative history explains, “[a] ‘compilation’ results from a process of selecting, bringing together, organizing, and arranging previously existing material of all kinds, regardless of whether the individual items in the material have been or ever could have been subject to copyright.” H.R Rep No 94-1476, at 57, reprinted in 1976 USCCAN at 5670; S Rep No 94-473, at 55

Examples: • A directory of services for a particular region. • A list of the best short stories of 2014. • A collection of the best sound recordings of 1985. The statute states that “[t]he term ‘compilation’ includes collective works,” which are discussed in more detail in Section 509 below. 17 USC § 101 Creating a collective work also “involve[s] the selection, assembly, and arrangement of ‘a number of contributions,” because this type of work “is a species of ‘compilation.’” HR Rep No 94-1476, at 122, reprinted in 1976 USCCAN at 5737; S. Rep No 94-473, at 105 Examples: • A book of news photos. Chapter 500 | 23 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration • An academic journal containing articles on a particular topic. • A newspaper comprised of articles by different journalists. 508.2 The Scope of the Copyright in a Compilation The fact that a compilation has been registered with the U.S

Copyright Office does not necessarily mean that every element of the work is protected by copyright A claim to copyright in a compilation “extends only to the material contributed by the author of such work” and does not “imply any exclusive right in the preexisting material.” 17 USC § 103(b) The data, facts, or other uncopyrightable material that appears in a compilation is not protected by the copyright in that work. See Feist Publications, Inc v Rural Telephone Service Co, 499 US 340, 360 (1991) (stating that “the copyright in a compilation does not extend to the facts it contains”). A registration for a compilation does not cover any of the preexisting material or data that appears in the compilation unless that material or data is expressly claimed in the registration. Likewise, a registration for a compilation does not cover any previously published material, previously registered material, public domain material, or third party material that appears in the

compilation. “This inevitably means that the copyright in a factual compilation is thin. Notwithstanding a valid copyright, a subsequent compiler remains free to use the facts contained in another’s publication to aid in preparing a competing work, so long as the competing work does not feature the same selection and arrangement.” Id 499 US at 349 When registering a compilation, the applicant should identify the preexisting material or data that the author selected, coordinated, and/or arranged. If the compilation contains an appreciable amount of previously published material, previously registered material, public domain material, or material owned by a third party, the applicant generally should limit the claim to the new material that the author contributed to the work and the unclaimable material should be excluded from the claim. For guidance on this procedure, see Chapter 600, Section 6218(E) The author of a compilation may claim copyright in an original selection,

coordination, and/ or arrangement of preexisting material, provided that the material has been used in a lawful manner. Section 103(a) of the Copyright Act states that the copyright in a compilation “does not extend to any part of the work” that “unlawfully” uses preexisting material. As discussed in Chapter 300, Section 313.6(B), this provision is intended to prevent “an infringer from benefiting, through copyright protection, from committing an unlawful act.” HR Rep No 94‑1476, at 57, reprinted in 1976 U.SCCAN at 5671 509 Collective Works and Contributions to Collective Works This Section provides the definition and a general discussion of collective works and contributions to collective works. For information concerning the Office’s practices and procedures for evaluating the copyrightability of collective works, see Chapter 300, Section 312. For guidance in preparing an application to register a collective work or a contribution to a collective work, see Chapter

600, Sections 610.4, 6138, 6187, 6208, and 6218(D) Chapter 500 | 24 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration 509.1 What Is a Collective Work? A collective work is a type of compilation. The Copyright Act defines a collective work as “a work, such as a periodical issue, anthology, or encyclopedia, in which a number of contributions, constituting separate and independent works in themselves, are assembled into a collective whole.” 17 USC § 101 The statute also states that “[t]he term ‘compilation’ includes collective works.” Id (definition of “compilation”) Thus, collective works are subject to the statutory requirements for compilations: There must be a sufficiently creative selection, coordination, or arrangement of the component works to establish a collective work. Creating a collective work requires the “assemblage or gathering of ‘separate and independent works . into a collective whole’” HR Rep

No 94-1476, at 120, reprinted in 1976 USCCAN 5659, 5736; S. Rep No 94-473, at 104 (omission in original) In other words, collective works contain two distinct forms of authorship: • The compilation authorship in creating the collective work, which involves selecting, coordinating, and/or arranging a number of separate and independent works and assembling them into a collective whole; and • The authorship in the separate and independent works included within the collective work, such as an article that appears in a periodical issue or a poem that appears in an anthology. An applicant may register a collective work together with the separate and independent works contained therein (i) if the copyright in the collective work and the component works are owned by the same claimant, and (ii) if the component works have not been previously published, previously registered, and are not in the public domain. By definition, a collective work must contain “a number of contributions.” A

work that contains “relatively few separate elements” does not satisfy this requirement, such as a work containing a single contribution, a composition that merely consists of words and music, a publication that merely combines a single work with illustrations or front matter, or a publication that merely contains three one-act plays. HR Rep No 94-1476, at 122, reprinted in 1976 USCCAN at 5737; S. Rep No 94-473, at 105 As a general rule, a contribution that is “incorporated in a ‘collective work’ must itself constitute a ‘separate and independent’ work.” HR Rep No 94-1476, at 122, reprinted in 1976 USCCAN at 5737; S. Rep No 94-473, at 105 In other words, a contribution must be an original work of authorship that is eligible for copyright protection under Section 102(a) of the Copyright Act, regardless of whether that contribution is currently protected or whether the copyright in that contribution has expired. 509.2 The Scope of the Copyright in a Collective Work The

“[c]opyright in each separate contribution to a collective work is distinct from copyright in the collective work as a whole.” 17 USC § 201(c) The “[c]opyright in the separate contribution ‘vests initially in the author of the contribution.’” New York Times Co. v Tasini, 533 US 483, 494 (2001) (quoting 17 USC § 201(c)) The “[c]opyright in the collective work vests in the collective author” and it “extends only to the creative material contributed by that author, not to ‘the preexisting material employed in the work.’” Id Chapter 500 | 25 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration at 494 (quoting 17 U.SC § 103(b)) Specifically, the copyright in the collective work “extend[s] to the elements of compilation and editing that went into [creating] the collective work as a whole.” H.R Rep No 94-1476, at 122, reprinted in 1976 USCCAN at 5738; S Rep No 94-473, at 106 In addition, it extends to “the

contributions that were written for hire by employees of the owner of the collective work, and those copyrighted contributions that have been transferred in writing to the owner by their authors.” HR Rep No 94-1476, at 122 reprinted in 1976 USCCAN at 5738; S. Rep No 94-473, at 106 An applicant may register a collective work together with the contributions contained therein (i) if the contributions and the collective work were created by the same author, or (ii) if the copyright in the contributions and the collective work are owned by the same claimant, (iii) provided that the contributions and the collective work have not been previously published or previously registered, and provided that they are not in the public domain. If the owner of the collective work does not own all rights in the copyright for a particular contribution, that party cannot register a claim to copyright in that contribution. Instead, the contribution must be registered individually by or on behalf of the

author of the contribution or the party that owns the copyright in that work. See Morris v Business Concepts, Inc, 259 F3d 65, 71 (2d Cir 2001) (“Unless the copyright owner of a collective work also owns all the rights in a constituent part, a collective work registration will not extend to the constituent part.”), abrogated on other grounds by Reed Elsevier, Inc. v Muchnick, 559 US 154, 160 (2010) Collective works often contain previously published material, previously registered material, public domain material, or material owned by a third party. If a collective work contains an appreciable amount of unclaimable material, the applicant generally should limit the claim to the new material that the author contributed to the work and the unclaimable material should be excluded from the claim. For guidance on this procedure, see Chapter 600, Section 6218(D) The author of a collective work may claim copyright in an original selection, coordination, and/ or arrangement of preexisting

material, provided that the material has been used in a lawful manner. Section 103(a) of the Copyright Act states that the copyright in a compilation “does not extend to any part of the work” that “unlawfully” uses preexisting material, and as discussed above, the term “compilation” includes collective works. As discussed in Chapter 300, Section 313.6(B), this provision is intended to prevent “an infringer from benefiting, through copyright protection, from committing an unlawful act.” HR Rep No 94‑1476, at 57, reprinted in 1976 U.SCCAN at 5671 510 One Registration Per Work As a general rule, the U.S Copyright Office will issue only one basic registration for each work 37 C.FR § 2023(b)(11); HR Rep No 94-1476, at 155, reprinted in 1976 USCCAN at 5771; S Rep. No 94-473, at 138 (recognizing that there is a “general rule against allowing more than one registration (i.e, basic registration) for the same work”) Allowing multiple registrations for the same work

confuses the public record. Therefore, the Office will not knowingly issue multiple registrations for the same version of a particular work, and the Office generally will decline to issue additional registrations once a basic registration has been made. See Part 202-Registration of Claims to Copyright, 43 Fed Reg 965, 965-66 (Jan 5, 1978); Applications for Registration of Claim to Copyright Under Revised Copyright Act, 42 Fed. Reg 48,944, 48,945 (Sept 26, 1977) Chapter 500 | 26 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration There are three limited exceptions to this rule, which are discussed in Sections 510.1 through 5103 510.1 Unpublished Works vs. Published Works If the U.S Copyright Office issued a registration for an unpublished work and if that work was published sometime thereafter, the Office will accept another application to register the first published edition of the work (even if the unpublished version and the published

version are substantially the same). 17 USC § 408(e); 37 CFR § 2023(b)(11)(i) When completing the application for the first published edition, the applicant should provide the registration number of the unpublished version using the procedure described in Chapter 600, Section 621.8(F) If the application for the first published edition is approved, the registration for that edition will exist alongside the registration for the unpublished version. 510.2 Naming the Author as the Copyright Claimant An author may seek a registration naming himself or herself as the copyright claimant, even if the Office previously issued a registration that named a different individual or legal entity as the claimant for that work. See 37 CFR § 2023(b)(11)(ii) Likewise, a joint author may seek a registration naming himself or herself as the claimant, even if the joint work was previously registered by or on behalf of the other authors. See id n4 When completing the application, the applicant should

provide the registration number for the previous registration using the procedure described in Chapter 600, Section 621.8(F) In some cases, the author of a collective work may register that work without identifying the authors of the component works contained therein. The author of a component work may register that work in his or her own name in this situation, even if the Office previously registered the component work together with the collective work as a whole. Allowing an author to register a work in his or her own name is consistent “with the fundamental thrust of the [Copyright Act of 1976] in identifying copyright, and the origin of all rights comprised in a copyright, with the author.” Applications for Registration of Claim to Copyright Under Revised Copyright Act, 42 Fed. Reg 48,944, 48,946 (Sept 26, 1977) This may be useful where the author retains a reversionary interest in a contribution to a collective work and wants “to reflect his or her retained or continued

legal or beneficial ownership of certain rights” in the copyright after it has been transferred to another party. Id at 48,945 This exception does not apply in cases where a third party previously registered the work and named the author as the copyright claimant. This exception does not apply in cases involving a work made for hire. If the Office issued a registration that named the employer or other hiring party as the copyright claimant, the individual who actually created the work cannot obtain another registration in his or her own name unless the applicant is asserting an adverse claim. 37 CFR § 2023(b)(11)(ii) n4 For information concerning adverse claims, see Section 510.3 Likewise, this exception does not apply if the work was registered before January 1, 1978. If the work was registered before that date and if another party was named as the copyright claim- Chapter 500 | 27 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration

ant, the Office will not issue another registration naming the author as the claimant. For more information on this issue, see Chapter 2100, Section 2130, 2131, and 2134. 510.3 Adverse Claims If the Office issued a registration for a work of authorship and another applicant subsequently alleges that the registration is unauthorized or legally invalid, the applicant may seek another registration for that same work. 37 CFR § 2023(b)(11)(iii) In this situation, the applicant should prepare a new application using the procedure described in Chapter 1800, Section 1808. 511 One Work Per Registration As a general rule, a registration covers one individual work, and an applicant should prepare a separate application, filing fee, and deposit for each work that is submitted for registration. See 17 U.SC §§ 408(a), 409 (authorizing the US Copyright Office to register a single “work”) Although the Office generally allows only one work per application, there are some limited exceptions

to this rule. In the following cases, it may be possible to register multiple works with one application, one filing fee, and one set of deposit copy(ies): • Registering a collective work together with the separate and independent works contained therein (i) if the copyright in the collective work and the component works are owned by the same claimant, and (ii) if the component works have not been previously published, previously registered, and are not in the public domain. This option is discussed in Section 5091 and Chapter 600, Sections 610.4, 6138, 6187, 6208, and 6218(D) • Registering a number of unpublished works using the unpublished collection option, which is discussed in Chapter 1100, Section 1106. • Registering a number of published works using the unit of publication option, which is discussed in Chapter 1100, Section 1107. • Registering a group of related works using one of the group registration options. The Office currently offers group registration options

for serials, daily newspapers, daily newsletters, contributions to periodicals, published photographs, and databases. For a discussion of these options, see Chapter 1100, Sections 1109 through 1117. • A sound recording may be registered together with a literary work, musical work, or dramatic work, provided that (i) the sound recording and the recorded literary work, musical work, or dramatic work are embodied in the same phonorecord, (ii) the claimant for both works is the same person or organization, (iii) the applicant selects Sound Recording from the Type of Work field when completing an online application or uses Form SR when completing a paper application, and (iv) the applicant submits a phonorecord that contains both the sound recording and the recorded literary work, musical work, or dramatic work. Chapter 500 | 28 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration 512 Multiple Versions of the Same Work The Copyright Act

states that “a work is ‘created’ when it is fixed in a copy or phonorecord for the first time.” 17 USC § 101 (definition of “created”) The statute states that “where a work is prepared over a period of time, the portion of [the work] that has been fixed at any particular time constitutes the work as of that time.” Id It also states that “where the work has been prepared in different versions, each version constitutes a separate work” Id The copyright law protects each version of a work from the moment it is fixed in a copy or phonorecord, provided that the author contributed a sufficient amount of original expression to that version. 17 USC § 102(a) For example, copyright protects each draft of a literary work from the moment it is written on paper, saved in a data file, or inscribed in any other medium of expression. Likewise, it protects each take of a motion picture from the moment it is captured on film, videotape, or any other audiovisual medium. Although the

copyright law generally protects each version of a work, it may not be necessary to register each version with the U.S Copyright Office, depending on whether the work is published or unpublished. These issues are discussed in Sections 5121 and 5122 below 512.1 Unpublished Versions of the Same Work If the work is unpublished, there is generally no need to register each version of that work. In most cases, the applicant may submit the most recent or the most complete version.1 For example, if the author prepared multiple drafts for an unpublished screenplay, a registration for the most recent version will cover all of the copyrightable material that appears in the deposit copy, including any unpublished expression that has been incorporated from prior versions of the same work. Likewise, if the applicant intends to register an unpublished website that has been updated, modified, or revised from time to time, the registration will cover all of the copyrightable material that is

submitted for registration, including any unpublished text, photographs, or other content that has been incorporated from prior iterations of the same website. If the deposit copy contains copyrightable material that appeared in previous versions of the same work there is generally no need to exclude that preexisting material from the application unless that material has been previously published or previously registered or unless that material is in the public domain or is owned by a third party. 1 In the alternative, the applicant may be able to register all of the versions with one application, one filing fee, and one set of deposit copy(ies) by using the unpublished collection option. For information concerning this option, see Chapter 1100, Section 1106 Chapter 500 | 29 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration 512.2 Published Versions of the Same Work If the versions have been published, the applicant generally should

submit a separate application, a separate filing fee, and a separate set of deposit copies for each version.2 For example, if the author published multiple editions of a textbook, the applicant should submit a separate application for each edition. In each case, the registration will cover the new material that the author contributed to each edition, including any copyrightable changes, revisions, additions, or other modifications that appear in the deposit copies for that edition. Likewise, if the applicant intends to register a published website that has been updated, modified, or revised from time to time, the applicant should prepare a separate application for each version of that site. In each case, the registration will cover the text, photographs, or other copyrightable content that appeared on the website on the date specified in the application and the deposit copies The Office will register multiple versions of a published work, provided that each version contains a

sufficient amount of copyrightable authorship that does not appear in the other versions. When submitting multiple versions of a published work for registration, the applicant should notify the Office by providing the title for each version, and if possible, the case number / service request number that has been assigned to each claim. In addition, the applicant should confirm in writing that the version specified in the application contains copyrightable authorship that does not appear in other versions. When filing an online application this information should be provided in the Note to Copyright Office field. When filing a paper application this information should be provided in a cover letter. This improves the efficiency of the examination process and produces more consistent registration decisions. The applicantnot the U.S Copyright Officeshould identify the specific version or versions that the applicant intends to register. In making this determination, it may be helpful to

consider the following questions: • Does one version contain all of the copyrightable material that appears in the other versions of the same work? • Were the versions published on the same date or on different dates? These topics are discussed in Sections 512.2(A) through 5122(C) below 512.2(A) Registering Multiple Versions of a Published Work: More Complete Version Published First If one version contains all the copyrightable material that appears in other versions of the same work and if that version was published first, the applicant should submit the most complete version. In this situation, the applicant should not submit an application to register other versions of the same work 2 In some cases, it may be possible to register separately published versions of the same work using a group registration option, such as the option for published photographs or contributions to periodicals. For information concerning these options, see Chapter 1100, Sections 1115 and 1116.

Chapter 500 | 30 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration Example: • The Elmwood Avenue Press published two versions of an elementary school textbook. The teacher’s edition contains all the text and artwork that appears in the student’s edition, plus additional instructions, questions, answers, and commentary. The teacher’s edition was published on January 22, 2010 and the student’s edition was published on February 1, 2010. The publisher may register the teacher’s edition, but should not submit an application for the student’s edition. 512.2(B) Registering Multiple Versions of a Published Work: Less Complete Version Published First If one version contains somebut not allof the copyrightable material that appears in other versions of the same work and if that version was published first, the applicant may register any or all of those versions. When completing the application for the more complete version(s) the

applicant should exclude any material that appeared in the previously published versions of the same work using the procedure described in Chapter 600, Section 621.8 Example: • The Block Island Press published a calendar on June 1, 2011 that contains a number of photographs. On June 15, 2011, the company published a coffee table book containing the same photographs and some additional sketches. The publisher may submit a separate application for the calendar and the book. When completing the application for the calendar, the publisher should assert a claim in the photographs. When completing an application for the book, the publisher should assert a claim in the artwork, and should exclude the previously published photographs from the claim. 512.2(C) Registering Multiple Versions of a Published Work: Multiple Versions Published on the Same Date If one version contains all the copyrightable material that appears in other versions of the same work and if all the versions were

published on the same date, the applicant should submit the most complete version. Example: • Dice Drugs published two versions of a user manual on August 15, 2012. One version is written in English; the other version contains the same text written in English and Spanish. The publisher should submit an application to register the English/Spanish version. If each version contains copyrightable material that does not appear in other versions of the same work and if all the versions were published on the same date, the applicant may submit a separate application for each version. Example: • On September 15, 2013 Coffee Cabinet LLC submits two applications for two versions of a novel which were published on September 1, 2013. One version is intended for British readers, while the other is an Americanized version Chapter 500 | 31 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration that is intended for readers in the United States. In both

cases, the applicant asserts a claim in text. The registration specialist will register both claims note: When all of the versions are published on the same date there is no need to exclude any overlapping material that appears in each version because simultaneously published material is not considered previously published material for purposes of registration. Chapter 500 | 32 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Identifying the Work(s) Covered by a Registration Chapter 500 | 33 revised 09/29/2017 compendium: chapter 600 EXAMINATION PRACTICES Contents 601 What This Chapter Covers 1 602 General U.S Copyright Office Examination Practices 1 602.1 Completion of the Application 2 602.2 Statutorily Required Information in the Application 602.3 Requirements for Registration of a Basic Claim 602.4 General Standards for Examination of an Application 2 2 602.4(A) The Examination Process 3 602.4(B) Scope of the Examination 3 602.4(C) Factual

Determinations and Administrative Notice 602.4(D) No Searches or Comparison of Works 602.4(E) Duplicate Claims 3 4 4 4 602.5 General Practices for Processing Information Provided in a Paper Application 602.6 General Policy Regarding Location of Information 5 602.7 General Practices Regarding Missing Information 5 602.8 General Policy Regarding Extraneous Information 6 602.9 General Policy Regarding Social Security Numbers, Driver’s License Numbers, Credit Card Numbers, and Bank Account Numbers 6 602.10 603 General Practices Regarding Cataloging Information Variances 4 6 7 603.1 Immaterial Variances 7 603.2 Material Variances Resolvable on Review of the Registration Materials as a Whole 8 603.2(A) Material Variances That May Be Resolved by Amending the Registration Record without Annotating or Communicating with the Applicant 8 603.2(B) Material Variances That May Be Resolved by Amending and Annotating the Registration Record without Communicating

with the Applicant 9 603.2(C) Material Variances Requiring Communication with the Applicant 604 604.1 Annotations 9 10 Addressing Variances in the Registration Materials 10 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 604.2 Adding Comments to the Registration Record 604.3 Adding Missing Information to the Registration Record 604.4 Documenting Communications with the Applicant 604.5 Placement of the Annotation 604.6 Annotations Are Part of the Registration Record 605 10 11 11 12 Communications Between the Applicant and the Registration Specialist 605.1 General Policies 605.2 Communicating with the U.S Copyright Office 12 12 605.2(A) Note to Copyright Office 605.2(B) Cover Letters 605.2(C) Calling or Emailing the U.S Copyright Office 605.3 11 13 13 13 14 Communications from the U.S Copyright Office 14 605.3(A) The U.S Copyright Office’s Email Addresses 605.3(B) When the U.S Copyright Office Will Communicate with the

Applicant 605.3(C) Records Concerning U.S Copyright Office Communications 605.3(D) Communication from the U.S Copyright Office May Address Multiple Issues 605.3(E) Oral Communications 605.3(F) Written Communications 15 15 15 16 16 605.4 Case Numbers, Service Request Numbers, THREAD-ID Numbers, and Correspondence Identification Numbers 17 605.5 Applicant’s Internal Tracking Number 605.6 Deadlines for Responding to Communications from the U.S Copyright Office 605.6(A) Oral Communications 605.6(B) Email 605.6(C) Email Requests for Deposit Copy(ies) 605.6(D) Letters 18 18 18 18 18 19 605.7 File Closed Following a Failure to Respond to a Written Communication from the U.S Copyright Office 19 605.8 Procedure for Reopening a Closed Application 605.9 Withdrawing an Application 20 20 606 Warnings 607 Registration Made Under the Rule of Doubt 608 Refusal to Register 609 Identifying the Work That the Applicant Intends to Register 609.1 Chapter 600

14 | ii 20 21 21 Registration Process Overview 23 23 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 609.1(A) Question 1: Are You Registering One Work? 609.1(B) Question 2: Are You the Only Author and Owner of the Work? 609.1(C) Question 3: Does the Work You Are Sending Contain Material Created Only by This Author? 28 609.2 Type of Work 24 30 609.2(A) Online Application 30 609.2(B) Paper Applications 32 609.2(C) Works Containing Multiple Forms of Authorship 610 26 Title of the Work 33 33 610.1 Title Types 33 610.2 Title of Work Being Registered / Title of this Work 610.3 Previous or Alternative Title 610.4 Works Containing Separate and Independent Works: Unpublished Collections, Units of Publication, Collective Works, and Contributions to Collective Works 36 34 35 610.4(A) Contents Title: Titles of Separate and Independent Works Included in a Larger Work 36 610.4(B) Title of Larger Work 37 610.5 Series Title 39 610.6

Examination Guidelines: Title of Work 40 610.6(A) Untitled Works 40 610.6(B) Descriptive Titles That Appear to Be Incorrect 610.6(C) Titles Consisting of Roman Letters and Arabic Numerals 610.6(D) Title of the Work: Variances 41 41 41 610.6(D)(1) Variances between the Title Provided in the Application and the Title That Appears on the Deposit Copy(ies) 41 610.6(D)(2) Title That Appears on the Deposit Copy(ies) is More Complete Than the Title Provided in the Application 42 610.6(D)(3) Edition Number, Version Number, or Other Identifying Information Not Provided 42 610.6(D)(4) Substantial Variances Between the Title Provided in the Application and the Title That Appears on the Deposit Copy(ies) 42 611 611.1 Year of Completion / Year in Which Creation of This Work Was Completed Completing the Application: Year of Completion / Year in Which Creation of this Work Was Completed 43 611.1(A) Year of Completion for an Unpublished Work Created Over a Period of Time

611.1(B) Year of Completion for Multiple Versions of the Same Work Chapter 600 | iii 43 43 44 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 611.2 Examination Guidelines: Year of Completion / Year in Which Creation of this Work Was Completed 44 611.2(A) Year of Completion Apparently Incorrect 611.2(B) Year of Completion Omitted 611.2(C) Year of Completion Unknown 612 Date of Publication 44 45 45 46 612.1 General Policy 46 612.2 What Constitutes Publication? 612.3 Determining whether the Work Is Published or Unpublished 612.4 What Is the Date of First Publication? 612.5 What Is the Nation of First Publication? 612.6 Completing the Application: Date and Nation of First Publication 612.6(A) Date of First Publication 612.6(B) Nation of First Publication 612.6(C) ISBN, ISRC, and ISSN Numbers 612.7 46 46 47 47 47 47 48 48 Examination Guidelines: Date and Nation of First Publication 48 612.7(A) Claim in a Published Work

Contradicted by Information Provided Elsewhere in the Registration Materials 49 612.7(B) Claim in an Unpublished Work Contradicted by Information Provided Elsewhere in the Registration Materials 49 612.7(C) Nation of Publication Given in a Paper Application without a Date of Publication 50 612.7(D) Extraneous Statements Concerning Publication 612.7(E) Month, Day, and Year Required for the Date of First Publication 612.7(F) Exact Date of Publication Unknown 612.7(G) Multiple Dates of Publication 612.7(H) Future Date of Publication 50 51 51 51 52 612.7(I) Impossible or Impractical Date of Publication 612.7(J) Nation of First Publication: Works Published in Multiple Countries 612.7(K) Nation of First Publication Unclear 612.7(L) Nation of First Publication Unknown Chapter 600 52 53 53 613 Name of Author(s) 54 613.1 Who Is the Author? 54 613.2 When Authorship Is Determined 613.3 Identifying the Authors Who Should Be Named in the Application | iv 52

54 55 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 613.4 Identifying the Authors of a Work Made for Hire 613.5 Identifying the Authors of a Joint Work 613.6 Identifying the Author of a Derivative Work 613.7 Identifying the Author of a Compilation 613.8 Identifying the Author of a Collective Work or a Contribution to a Collective Work 58 613.9 Completing the Application: Name of Author 613.10 Name of Author Unclear 613.10(B) Name of Author: Variances 613.10(B)(1) 613.10(B)(1)(a) 613.10(B)(1)(b) 613.10(B)(2) 55 56 57 Examination Guidelines: Name of Author 613.10(A) 55 60 60 61 61 Variances Between the Name Provided in the Application and the Name Provided in the Deposit Copy(ies) 61 Minor Variances 61 Significant Variances 62 Variance Between the Number of Authors Named in the Application and the Number of Authors Named in the Deposit Copy(ies) 63 613.10(C) Name of Author Not Required 613.10(D) Name of Author Unknown 613.10(E)

Name of the Author Omitted: Works Created by a Single Author 613.10(F) Name of an Author Omitted: Works Created by Large Numbers of Authors 614 614.1 Works Made for Hire 65 66 66 67 Completing the Application: Works Made for Hire 67 614.1(A) Year of Completion and Date of Publication 614.1(B) Identifying the Author of a Work Made for Hire 614.1(C) Identifying the Citizenship and / or Domicile of the Author 614.1(D) Year of Birth and Death Not Required for Works Made for Hire 614.1(E) Registering a Work Made for Hire as an Anonymous or Pseudonymous Work 614.1(F) Identifying the Claimant for a Work Made for Hire 614.2 66 67 Examination Guidelines: Works Made for Hire 614.2(A) Identifying the Work as a Work Made for Hire 614.2(B) Identifying the Author of a Work Made for Hire 67 68 68 69 70 70 70 70 614.2(B)(1) Was the Work Created by an Employee Acting within the Scope of His or Her Duties? 70 614.2(B)(2) Was the Work Specially Ordered or Commissioned

as a Work Made for Hire? 614.2(B)(3) Naming the Employee or the Individual Who Actually Created the Work as the Author of a Work Made for Hire 72 Chapter 600 | v 71 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 614.2(B)(4) Volunteer Created Work Made for Hire 614.2(B)(5) Organization Named as the Author of a Work Made for Hire 614.2(B)(6) Individual Named as Author of a Work Made for Hire 614.2(B)(7) Individual and Incorporated Organization Named Together as the Authors of a Work Made for Hire 75 614.2(B)(8) Individual and Unincorporated Organization Named Together as the Authors of a Work Made for Hire 76 615 615.1 Anonymous and Pseudonymous Works Anonymous Works 73 77 What Is an Anonymous Work? 615.1(B) Completing the Application: Anonymous Works Pseudonymous Works 77 78 79 615.2(A) What Is a Pseudonymous Work? 615.2(B) Completing the Application: Pseudonymous Works 615.2(C) Name of the Author Omitted 615.3 616 616.1 Privacy

Concerns 79 80 81 81 Year of Author’s Birth and Death The Author’s Year of Birth 82 82 616.1(A) Year of Birth Not Required for Works Made for Hire 616.1(B) Privacy Concerns 82 82 616.2 The Author’s Year of Death 616.3 Completing the Application: Author’s Year of Birth and Death 617 82 Citizenship and Domicile of the Author 83 84 617.1 What Is the Author’s Citizenship and Domicile? 617.2 Determining the Author’s Citizenship or Domicile for a Published Work 617.3 Determining the Author’s Citizenship or Domicile for a Work Made for Hire 617.4 Determining the Author’s Citizenship or Domicile for Anonymous and Pseudonymous Works 85 617.5 Determining the Author’s Citizenship or Domicile for Compilations and Derivative Works 85 617.6 Completing the Application: Citizenship and Domicile 617.7 Examination Guidelines: Citizenship and Domicile 617.7(A) Citizenship and Domicile Unclear 617.7(B) Citizenship and Domicile in Multiple Countries

617.7(C) Stateless Persons Chapter 600 74 77 615.1(A) 615.2 73 | vi 84 84 85 86 86 86 87 87 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 617.7(D) 618 Citizenship and Domicile Unknown Author Created / Nature of Authorship 87 88 618.1 Asserting a Claim to Copyright 88 618.2 Limiting the Claim to Copyright 618.3 The Relationship Between the Author Created / Limitation of Claim Fields in the Online Application and the Relationship Between Spaces 2, 5, 6(a), and 6(b) in the Paper Application 90 618.4 Completing the Application: Author Created / Nature of Authorship 89 618.4(A) The Online Application: Author Created Field 618.4(B) Paper Applications: Nature of Authorship Space 618.4(C) Recommended Terminology for Asserting a Claim to Copyright 618.4(D) Examples for Completing the Author Created Field and the Nature of Authorship Space 98 618.5 Derivative Works 618.6 Compilations 618.7 Collective Works 90 90 93 95 99 100 103

618.7(A) Asserting a Claim to Copyright in a Collective Work 103 618.7(B) Asserting a Claim to Copyright in a Contribution to a Collective Work 618.7(B)(1) Registering a Contribution without Registering the Collective Work as a Whole 104 618.7(B)(2) Registering a Collective Work and a Contribution to a Collective Work 104 105 618.7(C) Asserting a Claim to Copyright in a Serial Publication 618.7(D) Examples for Asserting a Claim to Copyright in a Collective Work and / or a Contribution to a Collective Work 107 618.8 618.8(A) 106 Examination Guidelines: Author Created / Nature of Authorship Authorship Unclear 110 110 618.8(A)(1) Design 618.8(A)(2) Game 618.8(A)(3) Packaging 618.8(A)(4) Author, Artist, Writer, Songwriter, Editor, and Other Professional Designations 618.8(A)(5) Story, Story Idea, Story Concept, Story Line 618.8(A)(6) Conceived, Conception 618.8(A)(7) Plot 618.8(A)(8) Character(s) 618.8(A)(9) Research 618.8(A)(10) Chapter 600 | vii

110 112 113 114 115 116 117 118 119 Unclear Terms for Musical Works and Sound Recordings 120 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 618.8(A)(11) Entire Work and Other Unspecific Terms 121 618.8(B) Percentage of Authorship 123 618.8(C) Uncopyrightable Material Claimed in the Author Created Field or the Nature of Authorship Space 123 618.8(C)(1) Deposit Copy(ies) Containing Copyrightable Authorship and Uncopyrightable Material 123 618.8(C)(2) Claim in Copyrightable Authorship and Uncopyrightable Material 618.8(C)(3) Claim in Uncopyrightable Material: Deposit Copy(ies) Contain Copyrightable Authorship 124 618.8(C)(4) Claim in Uncopyrightable Material: Acceptable Authorship Statement Used to Describe Uncopyrightable Material 125 618.8(C)(5) Claim in Uncopyrightable Material: Works Created by Two or More Authors 618.8(C)(6) Claim in Uncopyrightable Material: Registration Refused 618.8(D) 124 126 126 De Minimis Material Claimed in

the Author Created Field or the Nature of Authorship Space 127 618.8(D)(1) Deposit Copy(ies) Contain Copyrightable Authorship and De Minimis Material 618.8(D)(2) Claim in Copyrightable Authorship and De Minimis Material 618.8(D)(3) Claim in De Minimis Material: Works Created by Two or More Authors 618.8(D)(4) Claim in De Minimis Material: Registration Refused 127 127 128 129 618.8(E) Variances Between the Information Provided in the Application and Elsewhere in the Registration Materials 129 618.8(F) Material Claimed in the Author Created Field or Nature of Authorship Space Not Found in the Deposit Copy(ies) 130 618.8(G) Copyrightable Material in the Deposit Copy(ies) That Has Not Been Claimed in the Application 131 618.8(H) Nature of Authorship Statement Omitted from a Paper Application 618.8(I) 619 Chapter 600 Nature of This Work Name of Claimant 132 132 132 619.1 Who Is Eligible to Be a Copyright Claimant? 619.2 The Claimant Must Be an Individual or a

Legal Entity 619.3 When Is an Individual or Legal Entity Eligible to Be a Copyright Claimant? 619.4 Claimants Distinguished from the Owner of a Copy or Phonorecord of the Work 133 619.5 Claimants Distinguished from the Applicant and the Correspondent 619.6 Naming the Author as Claimant 619.7 The Author May Be Named as Claimant Even if the Author Has Transferred the Copyright to Another Party 134 | viii 133 133 133 133 134 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 619.8 Naming a Transferee as Claimant 135 619.9 A Party That Owns One or More but Less than All of the Exclusive Rights May File an Application to Register a Copyright Claim, but Cannot Be Named as the Copyright Claimant 135 619.10 A Nonexclusive Licensee Cannot Be a Claimant 619.11 One Registration Per Work 619.12 Completing the Application: Name of Claimant 619.13 Examination Guidelines: Name of Claimant 135 136 136 137 619.13(A) Nicknames, First Names, Last Names,

and Abbreviated Versions of the Claimant’s Name 137 619.13(B) Initials 619.13(C) Identifying the Author of a Pseudonymous Work as the Copyright Claimant 619.13(D) Identifying the Author of an Anonymous Work as the Copyright Claimant 619.13(E) Two or More Names Provided in the Name of Claimant Field / Space 138 619.13(E)(1) Applications Submitted on Behalf of the Copyright Claimant 619.13(E)(2) Two or More Names Separated by Conjunctions or Punctuations Marks in a Paper Application 140 619.13(E)(3) Individual Name Listed Above or Below the Name of a Legal Entity in a Paper Application 141 Group of Individuals Provided in the Name of Claimant Field / Space 619.13(G) Individual and Unincorporated Business Organization Provided in the Name of Claimant Field / Space 143 619.13(H) Individual and Incorporated Organization Provided in the Name of Claimant Field / Space 144 Partnership Named as Claimant 619.13(J) Trust or Estate Named as Claimant 139 142 145 146

619.13(K) Variances Between the Name Provided in the Name of Claimant Field / Space and Elsewhere in the Registration Materials 147 619.13(L) Variance Between the Name Provided in the Name of Claimant Field / Space and the Copyright Notice 147 619.13(M) Statements Concerning the Claim to Copyright in the Name of Claimant Field / Space 148 619.13(N) Percentage of Copyright Ownership in the Name of Claimant Field / Space 619.13(O) Owner of Copyright for a Limited Term 619.13(P) Future and Contingent Interests 619.13(Q) Deceased Individual or Defunct Entity Named as a Claimant 619.13(R) Identifying the Claimant by Referring to Other Records Chapter 600 | ix 139 140 619.13(F) 619.13(I) 138 148 148 149 149 149 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 619.13(S) Name of Claimant Unknown 619.13(T) Name of Claimant Omitted 620 Transfer Statement 150 150 150 620.1 What Is a Transfer of Copyright Ownership? 150 620.2 What Is a

Transfer Statement? 620.3 Transfer Statement Distinguished from an Instrument or Conveyance That Transfers the Copyright from One Party to Another 151 620.4 When Is a Transfer Statement Required? 151 151 620.4(A) The Author and the Copyright Claimant Are the Same 151 620.4(B) The Author and the Copyright Claimant Are Different 151 620.5 Joint Works 152 620.6 Works by Two or More Authors That Do Not Meet the Statutory Definition of a Joint Work 153 620.7 Derivative Works and Compilations 620.8 Collective Works 620.9 Completing the Application: Transfer Statement 153 154 620.9(A) Minimum Requirements for a Transfer Statement 620.9(B) Acceptable Transfer Statements 155 620.9(B)(1) Transfer by Written Agreement 156 620.9(B)(2) Transfer by Written Instrument from a Third Party 620.9(B)(3) Transfer by Inheritance 620.9(B)(4) Transfer by Operation of Law 620.10 154 155 157 157 157 Examination Guidelines: Transfer Statement 158 620.10(A) Transfer

of Copyright Ownership or Other Documents Pertaining to Copyright Submitted with the Application 158 620.10(B) Chain of Title 620.10(C) Unacceptable Transfer Statements 159 160 620.10(C)(1) Transfer by Oral Agreement 620.10(C)(2) Transfer of One or Morebut Less than Allof the Rights under Copyright 620.10(C)(3) Transfer Statements That Merely Describe the Relationship between the Author and the Copyright Claimant 161 620.10(C)(4) Transfer or Possession of Material Object 620.10(D) 620.10(D)(1) 620.10(D)(1)(a) Chapter 600 | x No Transfer Statement Given 160 162 163 Copyright Transferred by Inheritance or by Operation of Law Inheritance 160 163 163 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 620.10(D)(1)(b) Partnerships 620.10(D)(1)(c) Community Property States 620.10(D)(2) 163 164 Same Person Is Named as Author and Claimant 164 620.10(D)(2)(a) Anonymous and Pseudonymous Works 620.10(D)(2)(b) Individual Named as Author and

Unincorporated Organization Named as Claimant 165 620.11 621 164 Extraneous Information Provided in the Transfer Statement Field / Space Limitation of Claim 166 166 621.1 What Is Unclaimable Material? 167 621.2 Unclaimable Material That Need Not Be Excluded from the Application 621.3 The Relationship Between the Author Created / Limitation of Claim Fields in the Online Application and the Relationship Between Spaces 2, 6(a), and 6(b) of the Paper Application 169 621.4 Previously Published Material 170 621.5 Previously Registered Material 171 621.6 Public Domain Material 621.7 Copyrightable Material That Is Owned by an Individual or Entity Other Than the Claimant 173 621.8 Completing the Application: Limitation of Claim 621.8(A) Identifying the Material That the Author Created 621.8(B) Identifying Unclaimable Material That Should Be Excluded from the Claim 621.8(C) Identifying the New Material That the Applicant Intends to Register 169 172 174 174

621.8(C)(1) The Online Application: New Material Included Field 621.8(C)(2) Paper Applications: Space 6(b) 174 176 176 180 621.8(D) Completing an Application to Register a Compilation, a Collective Work, and/or a Contribution to a Collective Work 181 621.8(E) Examples for Identifying Unclaimable Material and the New Material That the Applicant Intends to Register 183 621.8(F) Identifying Previously Registered Material That Should Be Excluded from the Claim 185 621.8(G) Identifying Preregistered Material 621.9 621.9(A) 186 Examination Guidelines: Limitation of Claim Limitation of Claim Not Required 186 186 621.9(A)(1) Works Containing Uncopyrightable Material or a Minimal Amount of Unclaimable Material 186 621.9(A)(2) Applicant Has Not Asserted a Claim in Unclaimable Material 621.9(A)(3) Unclaimable Material Described in the Application but Not Included Chapter 600 | xi 187 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices in the Deposit

Copy(ies) 188 621.9(B) Identifying the Author of a Work That Contains an Appreciable Amount of Unclaimable Material 188 621.9(C) Authorship Unclear 621.9(D) Claim Clarified by Information Provided Elsewhere in the Registration Materials 189 188 621.9(D)(1) Claim Clearly Defined by the Title of the Work 621.9(D)(2) Claim Clarified by Information Provided in the Author Created Field or Nature of Authorship Space 190 621.9(D)(3) Claim Clarified by Information Provided in the Limitation of Claim Screen or Spaces 6(a) and / or 6(b) of the Paper Application 190 621.9(D)(4) Claim Clarified by Information Provided in Space 5 of the Paper Application 621.9(D)(5) Claim Clarified by Information Provided in the Deposit Copy(ies) 621.9(E) 189 191 191 Uncopyrightable Material Claimed in the New Material Included Field or Space 6(b) 192 621.9(E)(1) Deposit Copy(ies) Contain Copyrightable Authorship and Uncopyrightable Material 192 621.9(E)(2) Claim in Copyrightable

Authorship and Uncopyrightable Material 621.9(E)(3) Claim in Uncopyrightable Material: Deposit Copy(ies) Contain Copyrightable Authorship 193 621.9(E)(4) Claim in Uncopyrightable Material: Acceptable Authorship Statement Used to Describe Uncopyrightable Material 193 621.9(E)(5) Claim in Uncopyrightable Material: Works Created by Two or More Authors 621.9(E)(6) Claim in Uncopyrightable Material: Registration Refused 192 193 193 621.9(F) De Minimis Material Claimed in the New Material Included Field or Space 6(b) 621.9(F)(1) Deposit Copy(ies) Contain Copyrightable Authorship and De Minimis Material 621.9(F)(2) Claim in Copyrightable Authorship and De Minimis Material 621.9(F)(3) Claim in De Minimis Material: Works Created by Two or More Authors 621.9(F)(4) Claim in De Minimis Authorship: Registration Refused 194 194 Discrepancies Between the Limitation of Claim Fields and the Deposit Copy(ies) 621.9(H) Discrepancies Involving the Copyright Notice Published Works

621.9(H)(2) Unpublished Works 195 195 Discrepancies Involving the Registration Number or Year of Registration in a Paper Application 195 621.9(J) Reference to Previous Registration Clearly Erroneous Chapter 600 | xii 194 195 621.9(I) 621.9(K) 193 193 621.9(G) 621.9(H)(1) 193 196 Reference to a Preregistration in the Previous Registration Field/Space 196 revised 09/29/2017 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 622 Rights and Permissions Information / Correspondent / Mail Certificate 622.1 Rights and Permissions Information 622.2 Correspondent 622.3 Applicant’s Internal Tracking Number 622.4 Mailing Address for the Certificate of Registration 623 197 197 197 Special Handling 198 198 199 623.1 What Is Special Handling? 199 623.2 Justification for Special Handling 623.3 Examination Guidelines: Special Handling 623.4 Timeline for Special Handling Requests 623.5 Procedure for Requesting Special Handling 199 200

200 201 623.5(A) Online Requests for an Expedited Certificate of Registration 202 623.5(B) In Person Requests 623.5(C) Requests Delivered by Courier or by Mail 623.5(D) Procedure for Requesting Special Handling for a Pending Application or a Pending Recordation 204 202 203 623.6 Special Handling Fee 623.7 Special Handling for Multiple Applications That Share the Same Deposit Copy 624 Certification 205 205 206 624.1 The Significance of the Certification 624.2 Who May Certify the Application? 206 206 624.2(A) Application Certified by the Author or the Author’s Duly Authorized Agent 624.2(B) Application Certified by a Party That Owns All the Rights under Copyright That Initially Belonged to the Author or That Party’s Duly Authorized Agent 207 624.2(C) Application Certified by an Owner of One or More but Less than All of the Exclusive Rights or That Party’s Duly Authorized Agent 207 624.3 Completing the Application: Certification 624.3(A) Online

Applications 624.3(B) Paper Applications 624.4 208 Examination Guidelines: Certification 209 Signature Requirements 624.4(B) Date of Certification in a Paper Application Chapter 600 208 208 624.4(A) 625 209 Effective Date of Registration 210 211 625.1 Minimum Requirements for an Acceptable Application 625.2 Minimum Requirements for Acceptable Deposit Copy(ies) | xiii 207 211 212 revised 09/29/2017 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 625.2(A) Acceptable File Formats for the Deposit Copy(ies) Accompanying an Online Application 213 625.2(B) Unacceptable File Formats for the Deposit Copy(ies) Accompanying an Online Application 213 625.2(C) Corrupted Deposit Copy(ies) Files Accompanying an Online Application 625.2(D) Shipping Slips for Mailing Physical Deposit Copy(ies) to Accompany an Online Application 213 625.3 Minimum Requirements for an Acceptable Filing Fee 625.3(A) Forms of Payments 625.3(B) Insufficient Funds

625.3(C) Special Handling Fee 625.4 625.5 Chapter 600 | xiv 213 214 214 214 215 Minimum Requirements for Establishing an Effective Date of Registration Distinguished from the Requirements for Issuing a Certificate of Registration Differences Between an Application and a Certificate of Registration 215 215 revised 09/29/2017 compendium: chapter 600 EXAMINATION PRACTICES 601 What This Chapter Covers This Chapter sets forth the U.S Copyright Office’s practices and procedures for examining applications for registration of basic claims It does not cover (i) applications for registering a group of related works under the group registration regulations; (ii) renewal registrations; (iii) supplementary registrations; (iv) GATT registration for certain foreign works; or (v) preregistrations. For examining practices specific to the following types of works or registrations, see the following chapters: • For literary works, see Chapter 700. • For works of the performing

arts, see Chapter 800. • For visual arts works, see Chapter 900. • For websites and website content, see Chapter 1000. • For the group registration options for certain related works, see Chapter 1100. • For mask works and vessel designs, see Chapter 1200 and Chapter 1300. • For supplementary registrations, adverse claims, and other post-registration procedures, see Chapter 1800. • For registration of certain foreign works that may be registered as “GATT” works (i.e, works that did not comply with certain formalities in U.S law prior to March 1, 1989 or sound recordings fixed prior to February 15, 1972), see Chapter 2000, Section 2007. • For renewal registrations, see Chapter 2100. 602 General U.S Copyright Office Examination Practices When the U.S Copyright Office determines that the material deposited constitutes copyrightable subject matter and that the other legal and formal requirements of US copyright law have been met, it will register the claim and send the

applicant a certificate of registration under the seal of the U.S Copyright Office 17 USC § 410(a) The Office has certain general policies it employs when an application is unclear on its face, when there are ambiguities in the application, and/or contradictions between the statements provided in the application and the information contained in the deposit copy(ies), when required information is missing, or when the deposit copy(ies) are incomplete or otherwise fail to meet the applicable requirements. Each of these topics is discussed below. revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 602.1 Completion of the Application Applicants are encouraged to complete applications accurately and completely. Establishing a full, accurate record has a number of benefits: it serves the public interest by creating a more useful public record, it provides potential licensees with more accurate information, and it decreases the cost of copyright litigation by minimizing

potential disputes about the work(s) that the registration covers. Where an applicant seeks assistance from the US Copyright Office in preparing an application, the Office will instruct the applicant to complete the application in a clear and accurate manner. 602.2 Statutorily Required Information in the Application Section 409 of the Copyright Act sets forth the required information for an application for copyright registration: • The name and address of the copyright claimant. • In the case of a work other than an anonymous or pseudonymous work, the name and nationality or domicile of the author or authors, and, if one or more of the authors is dead, the dates of their deaths. • If the work is anonymous or pseudonymous, the nationality or domicile of the author or authors. • In the case of a work made for hire, a statement to this effect (i.e, a “work made for hire statement”). • If the copyright claimant is not the author, a brief statement of how the claimant

obtained ownership of the copyright (i.e, a “transfer statement”) • The title of the work, together with any previous or alternative titles under which the work can be identified. • The year in which creation of the work was completed. • If the work has been published, the date and nation of its first publication. • In the case of a compilation, or derivative work, an identification of any preexisting work or works that it is based on or incorporates, and a brief, general statement of the additional material covered by the copyright claim being registered. 17 U.SC § 409 602.3 Requirements for Registration of a Basic Claim The essential issues that should be resolved before the U.S Copyright Office may complete a registration include the following: Chapter 600 | 2 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices • Is the subject matter of the work protected by copyright, i.e, does it fall under one or more of the categories of authorship set

forth in Section 102(a) of the Copyright Act? • Is the work original, and is the authorship being claimed sufficiently creative to be copyrightable? • Is the work eligible for copyright protection in the United States, i.e, does it satisfy one or more of the requirements set forth in Chapter 2000, Section 2003. • Has the correct author been named (assuming the work is not anonymous)? • Does the claimant appear to have the right to claim copyright in the work? • Have the relevant deposit requirements been met? • Has the required filing fee been paid? • In the case of a work published prior to March 1, 1989, have the notice requirements been met? • Is the extent of the claim clear? • Has the basic information required by Section 409 of the law been provided? • Has the application been certified? The Office will issue a registration if all of these questions are answered in the affirmative, if there are no other issues in the registration materials that might raise

questions concerning the claim, and if all of the other legal and formal requirements have been met. 602.4 602.4(A) General Standards for Examination of an Application The Examination Process The examination process involves the examination of the application, the deposit copy(ies), the filing fee, all other material that has been submitted to the U.S Copyright Office, and all communications between the applicant and the Office relating to the registration of the claim Together, these materials are collectively known as the “registration materials.” 602.4(B) Scope of the Examination The U.S Copyright Office examines the registration materials to determine: • Whether the work constitutes copyrightable subject matter; and • Whether the other legal and formal requirements have been met, including those set forth in the Copyright Act, the U.S Copyright Office’s regulations, and the Compendium of US Copyright Office Practices, Third Edition. Chapter 600 | 3 revised

09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices As a general rule, the Office will register a claim to copyright where the work contains copyrightable subject matter, where the application is acceptable on its face, and where the facts stated therein are not contradicted by each other or by information in the deposit copy(ies) or elsewhere in the registration materials. 602.4(C) Factual Determinations and Administrative Notice As a general rule, the U.S Copyright Office accepts the facts stated in the registration materials, unless they are contradicted by information provided elsewhere in the registration materials or in the Office’s records. Knowingly making a false representation of a material fact in an application for copyright registration, or in any written statement filed in connection with an application, is a crime that is punishable under 17 USC § 506(e) Ordinarily, the Office does not conduct investigations or make findings of fact to confirm the truth of

any statement made in an application, such as whether a work has been published or not. However, the Office may take administrative notice of facts or matters that are known by the Office or the general public, and may use that knowledge to question an application that appears to contain or be based upon inaccurate or erroneous information. 602.4(D) No Searches or Comparison of Works When examining a claim to copyright, the U.S Copyright Office generally does not compare deposit copy(ies) to determine whether the work for which registration is sought is substantially similar to another work. Likewise, the Office generally does not conduct searches to determine whether the work has been previously registered. 602.4(E) Duplicate Claims As a general rule, the U.S Copyright Office will not knowingly issue multiple registrations for the same claim, because this would confuse the public record. If the Office discovers that an applicant submitted a claim that is an exact duplicate of

another claim, the registration specialist may communicate with the applicant or may refuse to register the duplicate claim. The status of the prior claim is irrelevant to this determination The Office will not knowingly register a duplicate claim, regardless of whether the prior claim is pending or whether it has been registered or refused. Likewise, if the Office refused registration and if the applicant submitted a request for reconsideration, the Office will not knowingly register a duplicate claim, regardless of whether the request is pending or whether the refusal has been upheld on substantive or procedural grounds. note: There are three limited exceptions to this rule, which are discussed in Chapter 500, Sections 510.1 through 5103 602.5 General Practices for Processing Information Provided in a Paper Application To the extent possible, the information provided in a paper application will be scanned and uploaded into the U.S Copyright Office’s electronic registration

system In some cases, it may not Chapter 600 | 4 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices be possible or practical to enter all of the information into the registration record. In all cases, the Office will retain a physical copy or an electronic copy of the paper form. 602.6 General Policy Regarding Location of Information The information that the applicant provides to the U.S Copyright Office should be provided in the appropriate field of the online application or space of the paper application. If the applicant provides the required information in the application, but the information does not appear in the correct field or space, the registration specialist may register the claim, provided that the claim is clear. In the alternative, the specialist may correct the application by placing the information in the appropriate field or space, provided it is clear what information belongs in what field or space. As a general rule, the specialist will not

annotate the registration record if information appears in the wrong field or space of the application, but may do so if the required information appears elsewhere in the registration materials (i.e, in the deposit copy(ies) but not in the application) For a discussion regarding annotations, see Section 604 below. Examples: • Denero Poe submits an online application for a t-shirt design, which is based on a previous design that was registered in 2004. The registration number for the previous design should be provided in the Previous Registration field, but the applicant provided that information in the New Material Included field. The registration specialist may move the previous registration number to the correct field without communicating with the applicant. • A paper application is submitted for a work titled Without a Doubt – The Worst Day of My Life. In a cover letter the applicant states that the work was published on January 26, 2012. The Date of First Publication field

has been left blank. If there is no evidence to suggest that the date provided in the cover letter is incorrect, the registration specialist will add that information to the Date of Publication field and will insert an annotation, such as: “Regarding publication: publication date added from cover letter.” 602.7 General Practices Regarding Missing Information Where any required information is missing from the application but is clearly provided in other registration materials, including the deposit copy(ies), an email, cover letter, Note to Copyright Office, a continuation sheet, in an application for a related work which was submitted at the same time, or in other written or oral communications with the applicant, the registration specialist may include that information in the appropriate field or space of the registration record and may annotate the registration record to indicate the source of the added information. (For a discussion of annotations, see Section 604.) If the

required information is not clearly provided elsewhere in the registration materials, the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant. Examples: • Laura Langley submits a paper application for a short story, but does not provide a Year of Completion. In a cover letter Laura explains that she has been Chapter 600 | 5 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices working on the story for 15 years and that she finished it in 2011. The registration specialist will add 2011 to the Year of Completion field and register the claim with an annotation, such as: “Regarding year of completion: added by C.O from cover letter provided by applicant” • The Hodge Podge Press submits an online application for a 2009 trade paperback, along with two copies of the work. The application states that the work is unpublished. The registration specialist knows that the work has been distributed to the public, because she has seen the work sold in bookstores.

The registration specialist will ask the applicant to provide the date and nation of first authorized publication. 602.8 General Policy Regarding Extraneous Information If the information provided in a field or space is clearly extraneous and in no way affects the claim, the registration specialist may remove that information or may allow it to remain in the registration record. Ordinarily, the specialist will not make an annotation in the registration record when extraneous information has been removed. 602.9 General Policy Regarding Social Security Numbers, Driver’s License Numbers, Credit Card Numbers, and Bank Account Numbers The applicant should not provide any private or confidential information in the application that is not required for registration. The information that is provided in the application may be included in the certificate of registration and the online public record. When submitting an online application through the electronic registration system, the

applicant may pay the filing fee by providing a credit card number or bank account number on the Online Payment screen. The applicant should not provide this type of information in any other portion of the application. If the registration specialist discovers a social security number, driver’s license number, credit card number, or bank account number in the application, he or she will remove that information from the record. If the number is not discovered during the examination process and subsequently appears in the certificate of registration or the online public record, the author, the claimant, or their respective representatives may submit a written request to the Office to remove this information from the registration record. See 37 CFR § 2012(f) For information concerning this procedure and a general discussion of privacy issues, see Chapter 200, Section 205. 602.10 General Practices Regarding Cataloging Information If information is missing from the application but is

clearly provided elsewhere in the registration materials, the registration specialist may add that information to the online public record if it is likely that a person searching the U.S Copyright Office’s records may use that information to locate the work. Chapter 600 | 6 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices Example: • The Office receives an application to register a claim in “spoken text,” along with a compact disc containing a sound recording. The application names “Florence Markic” as the author of the work, but the cover of the CD identifies the author as “Irene Gregor.” The liner notes explain that Florence Markic is professionally known as Irene Gregor. The registration specialist will register the claim without communicating with the applicant, and the specialist may add the author’s professional name to the online public record as a searchable term. 603 Variances The U.S Copyright Office uses the term “variance” to

refer to any instance where conflicting information is present in or among the registration materials submitted by the applicant. The Office has certain practices for addressing variances, depending on the nature of the conflicting information. There are three general categories of variances: (i) immaterial; (ii) material but resolvable on review of the registration materials as a whole; and (iii) material and requiring communication with the applicant These categories are described in Sections 6031 and 6032 below If the registration specialist discovers a variance in the registration materials, the actions that he or she may take include: (i) adding a note to the online public record; (ii) adding an annotation to the certificate of registration and the online public record to identify a correction made by the specialist or to clarify information provided elsewhere in the registration materials; (iii) corresponding with the applicant to obtain the correct information; or (iv)

disregarding the variance if it is immaterial. These actions and the circumstances when they may be taken are discussed in Sections 603.1 and 6032 below For a discussion of the Office’s general policies regarding annotations, see Section 604 603.1 Immaterial Variances An immaterial variance is a variance that does not affect the required information that should be included in an application, or any of the essential issues that should be resolved before the U.S Copyright Office may complete a registration, or where an ordinary person would be able to discern the correct information from the application and would recognize the variance as a mere discrepancy, such as a misspelling or typographical error. As a general rule, the registration specialist will disregard immaterial variances and will register the claim without annotating or communicating with the applicant, but may note the variance in the online public record. Examples: • John Thomas submits an online application for a

musical work. The title provided in the application is Born in the Phillipines, but the phonorecords submitted with the application give the title as Born in the Philippines. If the application is otherwise acceptable, the registration specialist will register the claim without communicating with the applicant, but may include the alternative spelling in the online public record in the field marked Title. • Eva Villagros Gutierrez submits an online application for a screenplay, providing her full name in the Name of Author field. The deposit copy identifies the author as “Eva Villagros.” The registration specialist will register the claim Chapter 600 | 7 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices without communicating with the applicant, but may include the shortened form of the author’s name in the online public record. • An online application names “Small World Fabrics Inc.” as the author of a fabric design. The deposit copy identifies the

author as “Small World Fabrics Incorporated.” The registration specialist will register the claim without communicating with the applicant or annotating the registration record 603.2 Material Variances Resolvable on Review of the Registration Materials as a Whole A material variance is a variance that substantially affects the required information that should be included in the application, or any of the essential issues that should be resolved before the U.S Copyright Office may complete a registration In some cases, the inconsistency may be clearly and readily resolved by the registration specialist without communicating with the applicant based on the specialist’s review of the registration materials as a whole. If so, the specialist may correct a material variance by amending the registration record and/or by adding an annotation to the registration record. 603.2(A) Material Variances That May Be Resolved by Amending the Registration Record without Annotating or

Communicating with the Applicant If a material variance may be clearly resolved by reviewing the registration materials as a whole or by reviewing other U.S Copyright Office records, the registration specialist may amend the information in the registration record without communicating with the applicant. As a general rule, if all of the required information appears in the application itself (as opposed to elsewhere in the registration materials, including the deposit copy(ies), a cover letter, or the Note to Copyright Office field), the specialist will not annotate the registration record to indicate that the application was revised. Examples: • The Office receives applications to register ten fabric designs. The application for “Design No. 8” names Chelsea’s Fabric Hose as the author and claimant The name Chelsea’s Fabric House appears in all the other applications, in the cover letter, and the address where the certificates of registration should be sent. The registration

specialist may correct the typographical error in the name given in the application for Design No. 8 without giving an annotation • Eric Kressler and Carla McCloud submit an application to register a song titled “Friday Afternoon Blues,” naming themselves as co-authors of the work. The deposit copy states that the song was written by “Erica Kessler and Carl MacCloud.” In a cover letter Eric and Carla explain that their names were misprinted on the copy and that the names given on the application are correct. The registration specialist will register the claim without annotation, but a note will be added to the certificate of registration and the online public record indicating the presence of correspondence in the file. Chapter 600 | 8 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 603.2(B) Material Variances That May Be Resolved by Amending and Annotating the Registration Record without Communicating with the Applicant If a material variance may be

clearly resolved by reviewing the registration materials as a whole or by reviewing other U.S Copyright Office records, the registration specialist may amend the information in the registration record without communicating with the applicant. As a general rule, if the required information does not appear in the application itself, and it is necessary to refer to information found elsewhere in the registration materials, such as the deposit copy(ies), a cover letter, the Note to Copyright Office field, or in other Office records, the registration specialist will annotate the registration record to indicate that the record was amended and will identify the source of the information. Example: • An online application is submitted for a work titled Money: For What It’s Worth. The title that appears on the deposit copy indicates that this is the third edition of this work, but the Limitation of Claim field has not been completed. The registration specialist may amend the title field to

indicate that this is the third edition of this work, and may add an annotation, such as: “Regarding title information: edition statement added by C.O from the deposit copy” 603.2(C) Material Variances Requiring Communication with the Applicant When the U.S Copyright Office discovers a material variance in the registration materials, and the correct information cannot be ascertained based on the information provided in the registration materials as a whole or in the Office’s records, the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant and attempt to resolve the discrepancy. (For a discussion of the Office’s general policies regarding communications, see Section 605) In such cases, any changes agreed to by the applicant will be reflected in the registration record, and the corrected information will appear on the certificate of registration and in the online public record. Examples: • The title on the deposit copy reads Haiku for the Illiterati –Third Edition,

but the application identifies the title as Haiku for the Illiterati – Fifth Edition. The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant to determine whether the applicant intends to register the third or the fifth edition and whether the Office received the correct deposit copy. Depending on the applicant’s response, the specialist may amend the registration record to provide relevant information about the third edition or may request appropriate deposit copies for the fifth edition. • An online application identifies Wilhelmina Puckett as both the author and claimant for an atlas, but the deposit copy identifies the author as Cassandra Smyth. The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant to determine if the correct author has been named on the application. The applicant explains that Wilhelmina Puckett hired Cassandra Smyth to create this work. With the applicant’s permission, the specialist will check the box indicating that the atlas is a

work made for hire. The explanation for this change will be included in the registration record. Chapter 600 | 9 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 604 Annotations An annotation is a statement that the U.S Copyright Office adds to the registration record to clarify the facts underlying the claim or to identify legal limitations on the claim. The registration specialist may annotate an application without communicating with the applicant if the annotation does not cast doubt on or raise a question concerning the validity of the registration. As discussed in Sections 6041 through 6044, annotations may be made for a number of different reasons. An annotation adds substantive information to the registration itself and is considered part of the certificate of registration, as compared to a note or change in the registration record that is made by the registration specialist as part of his or her cataloging responsibilities (such as adding a note or an

index term to the online public record). 604.1 Addressing Variances in the Registration Materials As discussed in Section 603, the registration specialist may annotate the registration record to address certain variances in the application. Example: • Leslie Steward writes a screenplay titled High Heels and a Pickup Truck, which is based on her previously published novel of the same name. In the Note to Copyright Office field Leslie states: “This screenplay is adapted from my novel High Heels and a Pickup Truck, published in 2009,” but the Limitation of Claim screen has been left blank. The specialist may insert this statement in the relevant fields on the Limitation of Claim screen, and may add an annotation to the registration record, such as: “Regarding limitation of claim: statement added by C.O from Note to Copyright Office” 604.2 Adding Comments to the Registration Record An annotation may be used to add comments to the registration record. For example, the

registration specialist may use an annotation to note the presence of an antedated copyright notice, to note overlapping claims, to note references to previous registrations, to note references to cover letters or other communications from the applicant, to note grants of special relief, to clarify the nature of the deposit copy(ies), or to identify uncopyrightable elements specifically claimed in the application. Example: • An online application is submitted for a song that was first published in 1997. In the Note to Copyright Office field the applicant explains that the CD is no longer available for sale and the applicant has only one archival copy. The applicant submits a written request for special relief from the deposit copy requirement for a published song. If the Office agrees to accept an mp3 file in lieu of the published CD, the registration specialist will add an annotation to the registration record, such as: “Regarding deposit: Special Relief granted under 37 C.FR

20220(d)” Chapter 600 | 10 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 604.3 Adding Missing Information to the Registration Record As discussed in Section 603.2(B), an annotation may be used to explain that required information was missing from the application and that the registration specialist obtained that information from elsewhere in the registration materials, such as a cover letter or the deposit copy(ies). Example: • The registration specialist receives two applications for a children’s book titled Learn to Box Young. In both cases, the applicant submitted two copies of the book. One application asserts a claim in the text by Caleb Rose while the other asserts a claim in the illustrations by Mario Ali. The application for Caleb states that the work was published on August 1, 2008, but the application for Mario does not provide a date of publication. The specialist will insert “August 1, 2008” in Mario’s application and will add an

annotation, such as: “Regarding publication: publication date added by C.O from application submitted simultaneously.” 604.4 Documenting Communications with the Applicant In certain appropriate circumstances, the registration specialist may use an annotation to document that the applicant authorized the specialist to amend the registration record or to clarify the facts in the record. Example: • Ralph Carson submits an application for a published work titled “Punish the Producers.” The copyright notice contains multiple year dates, but the applicant failed to complete the Material Excluded field The registration specialist may communicate with the applicant to determine if the work contains any previously published material. If the work is entirely new, the specialist may add an annotation to the registration record, such as: “Regarding publication information: Multiple year dates in notice. Work is all new, confirmed by phone call with Ralph Carson on February 15,

2012.” 604.5 Placement of the Annotation Annotations should be accurate, they should clearly identify information that was provided by the U.S Copyright Office, they should cite the authority for any amendments or deletions that have been made, and they should identify the general topic or the specific field or space of the registration record that has been annotated (e.g, “Regarding Author Information,” “Regarding Limitation of Claim,” “Regarding Deposit,” etc.) Annotations appear on the certificate of registration, generally under the heading “Copyright Office Notes.” They appear in the online public record under the heading “CO Annotation” Chapter 600 | 11 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 604.6 Annotations Are Part of the Registration Record An annotation is part of the registration record and a correct annotation generally will not be removed from the registration record once a registration has been made. The U.S

Copyright Office will retain supporting documentation for an annotation (or amendment), such as an email, cover letter, fax, or note regarding a phone call Both the certificate of registration and the online public record will indicate that correspondence relating to the claim is in the file. 605 Communications Between the Applicant and the Registration Specialist Communication between the U.S Copyright Office and the applicant regarding an application may take many different forms. This Section describes the ways in which an applicant may communicate with the Office and the means by which the Office communicates with the applicant in the course of examining an application. 605.1 General Policies Legal advice not provided. Communications involving the examination of an application should be limited to issues concerning registration and related matters. The US Copyright Office’s staff will not offer legal opinions or advice on other matters, such as the rights of persons in

connection with contracts, infringement disputes, or matters of a similar nature. 37 CFR § 2012(a) (3). Likewise, the Office’s staff will not offer or undertake to resolve disputes concerning conflicting claims to copyright If there is a dispute between two or more parties involving a claim to copyright, it is the responsibility of each party to pursue their claims in an appropriate forum. Communications to be clear, concise, and polite. All communications from the Office should be clear in meaning, concise in statement, and polite in tone. As a general rule, the Office will consider all oral or written communications from the applicant, but will not consider or respond to any abusive, offensive, or scurrilous communications directed to the Office or any of its staff. Similarly, the Office’s staff will terminate any conversation or interview, if the applicant makes abusive or scurrilous statements or engages in threatening behavior. 37 CFR § 2012(c)(4) Business conducted in the

English language. Written communications to the Office should be in English. Communications from the Office are written in English, and as a general rule, oral communications with the Office are conducted in English In limited circumstances and on special request, the Office may be able to examine applications or respond to communications that are written in languages other than English. The Office may provide this service as a courtesy, but it is under no obligation to do so and may ask the applicant to submit an English translation of statements that appear in the registration materials or in a communication from the applicant before it takes any action. Communicating with persons with disabilities. The Office will make accommodations for persons with disabilities upon request. Chapter 600 | 12 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 605.2 Communicating with the U.S Copyright Office An applicant may communicate with the U.S Copyright Office by any of

the means described in Sections 605.2 (A) through 6052(C) When providing an email address or other contact information in the online application, the applicant must ensure that this information is entered correctly. When completing a paper application, the applicant must ensure that this information is both correct and legible In all cases, the applicant must keep this information up-to-date while the claim is pending. If there are any changes, the applicant should notify the Office by contacting the registration specialist assigned to the claim, or by contacting the Public Information Office by phone or by email using the form provided on the Office’s website. If the applicant provides an email address in the application, the Office will use that address as the primary means for communicating with the applicant, even if the applicant also provides a telephone number, fax number, or other contact information. The Office cannot verify email addresses provided by applicants, and

registration specialists do not receive an error message when they attempt to send an email to an incorrect or invalid address. Therefore, applicants must ensure that their email address has been entered correctly. If an applicant provides an inaccurate or invalid address, the file may be closed for failure to reply to a communication from the registration specialist. When a file is closed, the filing fee will not be refunded and the deposit copy(ies) will not be returned. 605.2(A) Note to Copyright Office When an applicant prepares an online application, the applicant may provide additional information that is relevant to the examination process, such as explaining apparent discrepancies in the application or requesting special relief. This information may be provided in the online application in the field marked Note to Copyright Office, which appears on the Certification screen. Currently, the total amount of text that may be provided in this field is limited to 25,000 characters.

The statements provided in the Note to Copyright Office field will not appear on the certificate of registration or the online public record. The US Copyright Office will maintain a copy of the note in the registration record. If the note contains material information, the specialist may add that information to the registration record with an annotation, or may add a note to the certificate of registration and the online public record indicating that there is correspondence in the file. 605.2(B) Cover Letters An applicant may submit a cover letter with an application or with the deposit copy(ies). A cover letter may provide additional information that is relevant to the examination process, such as explaining apparent discrepancies in the application or justifying the applicant’s request for special handling. A cover letter may be submitted with an online application when the deposit copy(ies) are uploaded, provided that the letter and the deposits are submitted as separate files.

To submit a cover letter with a paper application, the applicant may attach it to the application. Chapter 600 | 13 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices A cover letter will not be returned to the applicant or attached as an exhibit to the certificate of registration. However, the US Copyright Office will retain a copy of the letter in the registration record. If the cover letter contains material information, the specialist may add that information to the registration record with an annotation, or may add a note to the certificate of registration and the online public record indicating that there is correspondence in the file. 605.2(C) Calling or Emailing the U.S Copyright Office Applicants are strongly encouraged to refer to the Compendium of U.S Copyright Office Practices, Third Edition, and to the circulars and other materials provided on the U.S Copyright Office’s website for information regarding an application. If the applicant still has

questions regarding the processes and procedures for preparing or filing an application, the applicant may contact the Public Information Office by phone or by email using the form provided on the Office’s website. For more information on contacting the Records, Research and Certification section, see Chapter 2400, Section 2403. 605.3 Communications from the U.S Copyright Office The registration specialist assigned to the claim will communicate with the applicant if he or she has questions regarding the registration materials. The specialist may communicate by email, phone, fax, or letter. However, if the applicant provided an email address in the application, the specialist will use that address as the primary means for his or her communication. In all cases, the specialist will provide the applicant with appropriate contact information for responding to his or her communication. 605.3(A) The U.S Copyright Office’s Email Addresses When communicating with an applicant by

email, the U.S Copyright Office will use one or more of the email addresses listed below. Once an application has been filed, the applicant should routinely monitor his or her “in box” for messages sent from these addresses. When a message arrives in the applicant’s in box, it may or may not be accompanied by the label “Copyright Office.” The applicant should ensure that the “spam filter” for his or her account does not block messages sent from the email addresses listed below. Likewise, the applicant should monitor his or her “spam,” “junk,” and/or “trash” folders for messages sent from these addresses. • noreply@loc.gov: When an applicant successfully submits an application and filing fee through the electronic registration system, the system will generate an automated message confirming that the application and filing fee were received. If the Office does not receive the deposit copy(ies) within ninety days thereafter (either uploaded through the

electronic registration system or sent to the Office by mail), the system will generate an automated message notifying the applicant that the deposit has not been received. As the term “no reply” suggests, the Chapter 600 | 14 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices applicant should not reply to these automated messages. The Office will not read or respond to any email that is sent to this address. • cot-rc@loc.gov: When an applicant successfully uploads a deposit copy(ies) through the electronic registration system, the system will generate an automated message confirming that the deposit was received. The applicant should not reply to this automated message The Office will not read or respond to any email that is sent to this address. • cop-ad@loc.gov: When a registration specialist communicates with an applicant by email, the message will be sent from this address. In all cases, the applicant should respond to the specialist’s message by

opening the message and selecting the “reply” or “reply all” option. As discussed in Section 605.4, the reply message should include the THREAD ID and case number/service request number that appears in the specialist’s message. Doing so will ensure that the response is connected with the appropriate registration record. 605.3(B) When the U.S Copyright Office Will Communicate with the Applicant Whenever possible the registration specialist will examine an application without communicating with the applicant. As a general rule, the specialist will communicate with the applicant if he or she discovers that the applicant failed to provide sufficient information in a particular field or space of the application or elsewhere in the registration materials, or if the applicant otherwise failed to meet the registration requirements. For example, the specialist will communicate with the applicant if the application is ambiguous, substantially incomplete, in conflict with other

informa­tion in the registration materials or the U.S Copyright Office’s records, in conflict with other information that is known to the Office, or indicates that the applicant misunderstands the registration require­ments. By contrast, the specialist generally will not communicate with the applicant if he or she determines that the required information is clearly presented elsewhere in the registration materials. 605.3(C) Records Concerning U.S Copyright Office Communications If the registration specialist communicates with the applicant, either orally or in writing, the U.S Copyright Office will retain a copy of the written communication or the specialist’s written notes concerning his or her conversation with the applicant. The registration record will indicate that there is correspondence in the file concerning the registration. When the specialist adds information to or amends information within the registration record based on a communication with the applicant, the

specialist will add a note containing the full name of the person who supplied the information, the organization or individual(s) that the person represents (if any), and the date the information was supplied. If the relationship between the person and the organization is clear from the information provided in the application, the name of the organization may be omitted from the note. 605.3(D) Communication from the U.S Copyright Office May Address Multiple Issues As a general rule, when the registration specialist communicates with the applicant, he or she may identify all of the issues involving the application or the other registration materials, even if those issues standing alone would not normally prompt a communication from the U.S Copy- Chapter 600 | 15 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices right Office. In some cases, multiple communications from the specialist may be required The fact that the specialist did not mention a particular issue in

his or her initial communication does not prevent that specialist or another specialist from raising that issue or other issues in a subsequent communication. In some cases, the applicant’s response may resolve the issue(s) and no further communication is needed, or conversely the applicant’s response may raise other issues that may require additional communication from the specialist. If the registration specialist discovers similar issues in multiple applications, he or she may discuss those applications in a single communication, instead of issuing a separate communication for each one. 605.3(E) Oral Communications If the registration specialist has questions concerning the registration materials, he or she may attempt to resolve the issue by telephone. If so, the specialist will attempt to contact the person specified in the Correspondent field/space of the application using the telephone number provided in the application. Before speaking with an individual who is not listed

in the application, the specialist will confirm that the individual has been authorized to discuss the claim by the correspondent and/or the copyright claimant. In all cases, the specialist will document the conversation by adding a note to the registration record identifying the name of the individual that he or she spoke with and the date of the conversation. If the specialist adds information to or amends information within the registration record based on an oral communication, the note should contain a brief summary of what was discussed and a brief explanation for any changes reflected in the registration record. The note should identify the date that the information was provided and the name of the party that the individual represents (if any). If the relationship between the individual and the party is clear from the information provided in the application, the name of the party may be omitted from the note. A note should document any amendments made to the registration record,

and is imperative when the amendment appears to be questionable on its face, but is clearly justified by the information provided in the telephone conversation. The US Copyright Office will retain any such note in the registration record, and the record will indicate that there is correspondence in the file. In some situations the specialist may ask for written confirmation authorizing the Office to make a change to the registration record, either by email, fax, or letter. The Office will retain this written confirmation, and the registration record will show that there is correspondence in the file If the specialist leaves a message on the applicant’s voicemail or answering machine, but does not receive a response within a reasonable amount of time, the specialist will call again or will follow up with a written communication. 605.3(F) Written Communications The registration specialist may communicate with an applicant in writing, particularly if the issue is not appropriate for

resolution in a telephone conversation. Chapter 600 | 16 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices Example: • An application is submitted for a painting titled “Level One.” The application lists Anthony Muller as the author and Rob Onbeana as the copyright claimant, but no transfer statement has been provided. The registration specialist may communicate with the applicant in writing to verify that the correct copyright claimant has been named and to determine if Anthony transferred the copyright in the painting to Rob. Written communications will be sent to the person specified in the Correspondent field/space of the application. A communication may be sent by email, fax, or letter, but if the applicant provided an email address in the application, the specialist will use that address as the primary means for his or her communications. The specialist will send his or her communication to the email address, fax number, or other address provided in the

Correspondent field/space of the application. When completing this portion of the online application, the applicant must enter this information correctly. When completing a paper application, the applicant must ensure that this information is both correct and legible. In all cases, the applicant must keep this information up-to-date while the claim is pending. If there are any changes, the applicant should notify the Office using the procedure specified in Section 605.2 605.4 Case Numbers, Service Request Numbers, THREAD-ID Numbers, and Correspondence Identification Numbers The U.S Copyright Office assigns a specific number to each application that it receives, such as “1-929700001.” This number is known as a case number/service request number The Office uses these numbers to keep track of the claim in the electronic registration system. When a registration specialist sends an email concerning an application, the Office will assign a THREAD ID to that communication, such as

“THREAD ID: 1-CKF1YO.” When a specialist sends a letter concerning an application, the Office will assign a correspondence identification number to that communication, such as “Correspondence ID: 1-GHKVFR.” This number will appear on the reply sheet that is attached to the letter. The Office uses these numbers to keep track of written correspondence. If the specialist communicates with the applicant by email, the applicant should respond by opening the specialist’s message and selecting the “reply” or “reply all” option. In addition, the applicant should include the case number/service request number and the THREAD ID in the reply message. Doing so will ensure that the response is filed with the appropriate registration record. If the specialist communicates with the applicant by letter, the applicant may respond by phone, email, fax, or letter. If the applicant responds by email, the applicant should include the case number/service request number and correspondence

identification number in the response If the applicant responds by letter or by fax, the applicant should include the case number/service request number, correspondence identification number, and a copy of the reply sheet in the response. Chapter 600 | 17 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 605.5 Applicant’s Internal Tracking Number The applicant may assign an internal tracking number to an online application by completing the field marked Applicant’s Internal Tracking Number on the Certification screen. Providing a tracking number is optional and this feature is intended solely for the applicant’s convenience. The U.S Copyright Office does not use these numbers to keep track of pending applications or in its communications with applicants. 605.6 605.6(A) Deadlines for Responding to Communications from the U.S Copyright Office Oral Communications If the registration specialist asks the applicant to provide additional information in a

telephone conversation, but does not receive a response during the conversation or within a reasonable amount of time thereafter, he or she will send an email, fax, or letter specifying that a phone call was held on a specific date and briefly summarizing the substance of the conversation. If the specialist does not receive a response to his or her written communication, the file will be closed within the time periods discussed in Sections 605.6(B) through 6056(D) 605.6(B) Email As a general rule, the deadline for responding to an email from a registration specialist is fortyfive calendar days. This deadline is calculated from the date the email was sent to the person specified in the Correspondent field/space of the application (or other designated party, if any). If the specialist does not receive a response to his or her email, the specialist will not follow-up with the applicant unless there is a good reason for doing so. For a discussion of the deadline for responding to an

email requesting the deposit copy(ies), see Section 605.6(C) 605.6(C) Email Requests for Deposit Copy(ies) When an applicant successfully submits an application and filing fee through the electronic registration system, the system will generate an automated message confirming that the application and filing fee were received. If the U.S Copyright Office does not receive the deposit copy(ies) within ninety calendar days, the system will generate an automated message notifying the applicant that the deposit copy has not been received. (For more information on Communications from the US Copyright Office, see Section 605.3) The applicant should submit the copy(ies) by uploading them through the electronic registration system (provided the copies are not subject to best edition requirements), or by sending the copy(ies) to the Office by mail together with the shipping slip. For information concerning these procedures, see Chapter 200, Section 204.3 and Chapter 1500, Section 1508 Chapter

600 | 18 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices The deadline for submitting the deposit copy(ies) is forty-five calendar days. This deadline is calculated from the date that the automated message was sent to the person specified in the Correspondent field/space of the application. If a registration specialist communicates with the applicant by email and asks the applicant to submit the deposit copy(ies), the deadline for responding to that communication is forty-five calendar days. This deadline is calculated from the date the email is sent to the person specified in the Correspondent field/space of the application. If the specialist does not receive a response to his or her email, the specialist will not follow-up with the applicant unless there is a good reason for doing so. 605.6(D) Letters The deadline for responding to a letter from a registration specialist is forty-five calendar days. This deadline is calculated from the date set forth in the

reply sheet that is enclosed with the letter. If the specialist does not receive a response to his or her letter, the specialist will not follow-up with the applicant unless there is a good reason for doing so. 605.7 File Closed Following a Failure to Respond to a Written Communication from the U.S Copyright Office When the U.S Copyright Office communicates with an applicant in writing, the applicant must respond before the deadlines specified in Section 605.6, depending upon the nature of the communication The Office may consider and grant a reasonable request for an extension of time if the request is received in writing prior to the original deadline. As a general rule, the registration specialist will not follow-up with the applicant if the applicant fails to respond in a timely manner. And as a general rule, the specialist will close the file as a “no reply” if the Office does not receive a response to an email or other written communication within the time allowed. If the

applicant wishes to proceed with a claim after the file has been closed, the applicant must reapply for registration by submitting a new application, filing fee, and deposit copy(ies). The effective date of registration will be based on the date that the new submission is received by the Office When an applicant fails to respond to a written communication, the Office will not inform the applicant that the file has been closed. Likewise, the Office will not refund the filing fee and will not return the deposit copy(ies). If the applicant uploaded an electronic copy or phonorecord of a work through the electronic registration system, the deposit copy(ies) will remain in the registration record. If the applicant submitted a physical copy or phonorecord of a published work, the Library of Congress may select the copy(ies) for its collections. If the Library does not select the work for use in its collection, the deposit copy(ies) may be offered to another agency, library, or nonprofit

institution, or they may be retained by the Office for a scheduled period of time. Chapter 600 | 19 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 605.8 Procedure for Reopening a Closed Application If the applicant failed to respond to a written communication from the U.S Copyright Office in a timely manner, and if the failure was caused by extraordinary circumstances, the Office may, in appropriate cases, grant a request to reopen the file, provided that (i) the request is made in writing and within a reasonable amount of time after the original deadline; (ii) a showing of good cause is made; and (iii) the Office has the deposit copy(ies) in its possession, or replacement deposit copy(ies) are submitted with a written declaration confirming that the replacement is identical to the deposit copy(ies) that were submitted with the application, including the copyright notice (if appropriate). By way of example, the Office will not reopen a closed file if the

applicant provided an incorrect email address or out-of-date contact information in the application. Likewise, the Office will not reopen a closed file if the applicant failed to monitor his or her “in box” or “spam,” “junk,” or “trash” folders for messages from the Office, or failed to ensure that the “spam filter” for his or her account does not block messages sent from the email addresses listed in Section 605.3(A) A request to reopen should be submitted using the form provided on the Office’s website. An appropriate official from the Registration Program will determine whether the Office will reopen the file and will notify the applicant in writing of the Office’s decision. The Office will not consider multiple requests to reopen a claim that was closed for failure to respond in a timely manner. 605.9 Withdrawing an Application An applicant may submit a request to withdraw a pending application at any time before the U.S Copyright Office has issued a

certificate of registration or has refused to register the claim For information concerning this procedure, see Chapter 200, Section 208. 606 Warnings If the U.S Copyright Office determines that the deposit copy(ies) for a registrable work contain material that consists of uncopyrightable subject matter or that other legal or formal requirements have not been met, the Office may register the claim without corresponding with the applicant. However, the Office may send the applicant a written communication warning that the registration does not extend to the uncopyrightable subject matter or warning that some of the other legal or formal requirements have not been satisfied. Communications will be sent to the person specified in the Correspondent field/space of the application (or other designated party, if any). The registration specialist will place a copy of the communication in the registration record, and the certificate of registration and the online public record will indicate

the presence of correspondence in the file. Examples: • A professional graphic artist submitted an application to register a portfolio containing seventy-five logo designs. Some of the designs are familiar symbols, such as a stop sign, a five pointed star, or a happy face The registration specialist may send a warning advising the applicant that some of the designs within the portfolio are not copyrightable. Chapter 600 | 20 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices • Pharaoh Studios submits an application to register an unpublished collection containing dozens of rings, earrings, and bracelets. Some of the items in the collection contain a sufficient amount of original authorship in the shape and arrangement of their constituent elements, but most of them do not. The registration specialist may register the claim, but may send a warning advising the applicant that most of the items in the collection do not support an independent claim to copyright.

607 Registration Made Under the Rule of Doubt The U.S Copyright Office has the exclusive authority to issue certificates of registration establishing the prima facie validity of the facts stated in the certificate 17 USC § 410(a), (c) On occasion, the Office may register a claim to copyright, even though the Office has reasonable doubt as to whether the material submitted for registration constitutes copyrightable subject matter or whether the other legal and formal requirements of the statute have been met. This practice is known as the Rule of Doubt. The Rule of Doubt notifies the claimant, the courts, and the general public that the Office is unwilling to grant a presumption of validity to certain aspects of the claim. As a general rule, the Office will apply the Rule of Doubt only in the following situations. The Office may register a claim under the Rule of Doubt if the registration specialist is unable to examine the deposit copy(ies) to determine if the work contains

copyrightable authorship. For example, the Office will apply the Rule of Doubt if the applicant submits an application to register a computer program with a deposit copy consisting solely of object code rather than source code. See 37 CFR § 20220(c)(2)(vii)(B) Likewise, the Office may apply the Rule of Doubt at its discretion if the applicant submits a redacted deposit copy under a grant of special relief in order to protect trade secret material that appears in the work. (For a discussion of the procedure for requesting special relief or the practices and procedures for registering a computer program with a deposit copy consisting solely of object code, see Chapter 1500, Sections 1508.8 and 1509.1(C)(4)(b)) In exceptional cases, the Office may apply the Rule of Doubt if the Office has not taken a position on a legal issue that is directly relevant to whether the work constitutes copyrightable subject matter or whether the other legal and formal requirements of the statute have been

met. The Office will not register a claim under the Rule of Doubt simply because there is some uncertainty as to how that issue may be decided by a particular court. In all cases, the Office will add an annotation to the certificate of registration and the online public record indicating that the work was registered under the Rule of Doubt. The Office also may send a letter to the applicant stating the reasons for its decision and a copy of the letter will be placed in the registration record. Both the certificate of registration and the online public record will indicate that correspondence relating to the claim is in the file. 608 Refusal to Register In the event the U.S Copyright Office determines that the claim does not meet certain requirements for registration based on the registration materials submitted, the registration specialist will refuse to register the work. A refusal to register the entire work will be made by a written Chapter 600 | 21 revised 09/29/2017 c o m

p e n d i u m : Examination Practices communication and will be sent to the address provided in the Correspondent field/space of the application. Examples of situations where the Office will refuse to register a claim include: • The applicant has not met the legal requirements for registration (e.g, completed application, complete filing fee, complete deposit copy(ies), etc.) • The applicant has asserted a claim to copyright in a type of work that is not covered by U.S copyright law. See 17 USC §§ 102(b), 105 • The work is not fixed in a tangible medium of expression. • The work lacks human authorship. • The work was not independently created. • The work does not contain the minimum level of creative authorship to support a copyright claim. • The work is in the public domain. • The work is a U.S sound recording that was fixed before February 15, 1972 (ie, the date US sound recordings became eligible for federal copyright protection). • The work is an

architectural work created before December 1, 1990 (i.e, the date architectural works became eligible for federal copyright protection) or the application to register the architectural work does not otherwise meet the requirements set forth in Copyright Office regulations. See 37 CFR § 20211 • The work is not eligible for copyright protection in the United States based on the author’s citizenship or domicile, based on the nation of first publication, or any other factor set forth in Section 104 of the Copyright Act. • The work does not meet the eligibility requirements for a particular registration option. • The applicant is not authorized to register a claim in the work. • The claimant named in the application is not a proper copyright claimant. • The work unlawfully employs preexisting material that is under copyright protection. 17 U.SC § 103(a) If the applicant disagrees with the Office’s determination, the applicant may appeal that decision within the Office.

This is an administrative procedure known as a request for reconsideration For information concerning this procedure, see Chapter 1700. Chapter 600 | 22 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 609 609.1 Identifying the Work That the Applicant Intends to Register Registration Process Overview When completing an online application, the applicant must provide a “yes” or “no” answer to three questions concerning the work(s) that the applicant intends to register. Based on the responses provided, the electronic registration system will direct the applicant to the Single Application or the Standard Application, which are discussed in more detail below. The questions include: • Yes or No: Are you registering one work (one song, one poem, one illustration, etc.)? Check “NO” to this question if the work is one of the following: a collection of works (such as: book of poetry, CD of songs and photographs), a collective work, website or database

because these works do not qualify for the single form. • Yes or No: Are you the only author and owner of the work (or the agent of the individual author who is also the only owner)? Check “NO” to this question if the work was created by multiple people, is a “work made for hire,” or if any part of the work was created by or is owned by another person. • Yes or No: Does the work you are sending contain material created only by this author? Check “NO” to this question if the copy includes content or contributions by anyone else, even if the claim is limited to only the contribution by this author or the material has been licensed, permissioned or transferred to the claimant. Each of these questions is discussed in Sections 609.1(A) through 6091(C) below If the applicant checks all of boxes marked “yes,” the electronic registration system will generate a message marked “Important Notice.” If the work satisfies all the eligibility criteria listed in this message,

the applicant should click the button marked “OK.” The electronic registration system will direct the applicant to complete the U.S Copyright Office’s Single Application For general information concerning the Single Application, see Chapter 1400, Sections 1402.3 and 14025 The Single Application may only be used to register a work that satisfies the criteria listed in the questions above. If the applicant answers “no” in response to any of these questions or if the applicant responds to the Important Message by clicking the button marked “Cancel,” the electronic registration system will direct the applicant to complete the Office’s Standard Application. note : The Single Application is merely an administrative classification that is used for purposes of registration, and does not affect the subject matter of copyright or the exclusive rights in a work. The fact that a work may be registered with the Single Application does not necessarily mean that it constitutes a

single work for other purposes under the copyright law. The Standard Application may be used to register any work that may be submitted through the electronic registration system. For general information concerning the standard application, see Chapter 1400, Section 1402.4 When completing a Single Application, the following phrase will appear at the top of each screen: “Application Format: Single.” When completing a Standard Application, this portion of the application will read: “Application Format: Standard” Chapter 600 | 23 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices If the applicant attempts to use the Single Application to register a work that does not satisfy the criteria listed in the questions above, the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant, which will delay the examination of the application. If the Office determines that the work is not eligible for the Single Application, the applicant will be required to pay an

additional filing fee, and the Office will assign a later effective date of registration to the claim. See generally Single Application Option, 78 Fed. Reg 38,843 (June 28, 2013) 609.1(A) Question 1: Are You Registering One Work? If the applicant intends to register one work, he or she may be eligible to use the Single Application, provided that the work satisfies the other eligibility requirements for this application. If so, the applicant should check the box marked “yes” that appears next to the question, “Are you registering one work?” The following are representative examples of works that may qualify as one work for purposes of the Single Application: Literary Works: • One poem. • One short story. • One essay. Visual Art Works: • One photograph. • One fabric design. • One sculpture. • One piece of jewelry (not a collection or set of multiple jewelry pieces). • One illustration (not multiple illustrations on the same page). • One technical drawing of

one object. Dramatic Works, Audiovisual Works, and Motion Pictures: • One stage play. • One screenplay. • One “selfie video” featuring one person. Chapter 600 | 24 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices Musical Works and Sound Recordings: A song and a sound recording are separate works. Therefore, the Single Application can be used to register: • One song containing music and lyrics. -- The applicant may submit sheet music to register the music and lyrics of one song if the same individual is the author/owner of both the music and lyrics of the song. • One sound recording. -- The applicant may register a sound recording if the same individual is the author/owner of the sound recording, and if that individual is the only performer featured in the recording. In limited circumstances, a musical work and a sound recording may both be eligible for registration with the Single Application if the following requirements have been met: • One

song consisting of music, lyrics, and sound recording. -- The applicant must submit a recording of the song, the same individual must be the author/owner of the music, lyrics, and the sound recording, and that individual must be the only performer featured in the recording. • One musical arrangement and one sound recording. -- The applicant must submit a recording of the musical arrangement, the same individual must be the author/owner of both the arrangement and the sound recording, and that individual must be the only performer featured in the recording. If the applicant intends to register more than one work, the applicant should check the box marked “no.” The following are representative examples of works that do not qualify as one work for purposes of the Single Application: • Two poems. • Two articles. • Two or more illustrations on a single page. • Two or more drawings on separate pages. • A portfolio of photographs. • A collection or set containing multiple

pieces of jewelry. • Two or more songs. Chapter 600 | 25 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices • A song and liner notes. • Two or more sound recordings. • Different versions of a sound recording. • More than one version of a script or treatment. • A collective work, such as an album, periodical, newspaper, magazine, newsletter, journal, anthology, book of poems or short stories, or any other work that contains a number of separate and independent works. • Multiple contributions to a collective work. • An unpublished collection. (For a definition and discussion of unpublished collections, see Chapter 1100, Section 1106.) • Two or more works physically bundled together by the claimant for distribution to the public as a single, integrated unit and first published in that integrated unit, such as a board game, a box of greeting cards, a book published with a CD-ROM, a box set of music CDs, or a board game with printed instructions,

playing pieces, and a game board. (For a definition and discussion of the unit of publication option, see Chapter 1100, Section 1107.) • Two or more works that may be registered using a group registration option. (For a discussion of the procedure for obtaining a group registration, see Chapter 1100.) • A multi-part work, such as a series of books or photographs. • A website. Likewise, the applicant should check the box marked “no” if the applicant intends to register the following type of work: • An architectural work. • A choreographic work. • A database. 609.1(B) Question 2: Are You the Only Author and Owner of the Work? The applicant may be eligible to use the Single Application if the work was created by one individual, if that individual is the sole owner of the copyright in that work, and if the other eligibility requirements have been met. If so, the applicant should check the box marked “yes” that appears next to the question, “Are you the only

author and owner of the work?” The following are representative examples of works created and owned by one person that may be eligible for the Single Application: Chapter 600 | 26 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices • One essay written and solely owned by Simone Stucker. • One children’s book containing text and illustrations created and solely owned by Franklin Hooker. • One photograph taken and solely owned by Douglas Brewer. • One sound recording containing music written, recorded, and solely owned by Felicia Driver. -- note: Felicia must be the author/owner of both the music and the sound recording, and she must be the only performer featured in the recording. • One song containing music and lyrics written and solely owned by Edward Boxer. -- note: If the applicant submits a recording of the song, Edward must be the author/owner of both the song and the sound recording, and he must be the only performer featured in the recording.

If the work was created by two or more individuals or if the work was created as a joint work, the applicant should check the box marked “no.” (For a definition and discussion of joint works, see Chapter 500, Section 505.) The following are representative examples of works created by more than one author that are not eligible for the Single Application: • One comic book containing text written by one individual and illustrations drawn by another individual. • One screenplay co-written by two individuals. • One song containing music written by one individual and lyrics written by another individual. • Any sound recording created by two or more performers or musicians. • Any motion picture or other audiovisual work that features directing, editing, writing, or other authorship by more than one person. Likewise, the applicant should check the “no” box if the work was created by or on behalf of a company, an organization, or any other legal entity or if the work was

created as a work made for hire. (For a definition and discussion of works made for hire, see Chapter 500, Section 506) The following are representative examples of works that are not eligible for the Single Application because they do not qualify as a work created by an individual author: • One piece of jewelry created by Phoebe Snow Designs, Inc. • One photograph taken by an employee of Sue Saint Marie Studios. Chapter 600 | 27 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices • One song specially ordered or commissioned by Smooth Ride Music, LLC for use as a contribution to a collective work. • One videogame created by the employees of the Chessie Katz game development company. The applicant should check the box marked “no” if the copyright or any of the exclusive rights in the work are owned or co-owned by two or more individuals. The applicant should check “no” if the copyright is owned by a company, an organization, or other legal entity.

The applicant should check “no” if the author transferred the copyright or any of the exclusive rights to a third party, either by written agreement or by operation of law. Likewise, the applicant should check “no” if the author is deceased. (For a discussion of copyright ownership and transfers, see Sections 619 and 620.) The following are representative examples of works that are not eligible for the Single Application because they are owned or co-owned by more than one party, or because the works are not solely owned by the author: • One stage play co-owned by the composer and the librettist of the work. • One song containing music written by one individual and lyrics written by another individual. • One song written by a composer who transferred the copyright to his music publishing company. • One sound recording containing music written by one individual and performed by another individual. • One sound recording co-owned by the artists and musicians who

performed the work. • One article written by a freelance writer who assigned the copyright to her closely held company. • One photograph taken by a photographer who granted the exclusive right of reproduction to a stock photography service and therefore no longer owns all of the rights in the work. • One treatment written by a screenwriter who gave a motion picture studio the exclusive right to produce his work as a motion picture and therefore no longer owns all of the rights in the work. 609.1(C) Question 3: Does the Work You Are Sending Contain Material Created Only by This Author? An applicant may be eligible for the Single Application if the work was created by one individual, if that individual is the sole author of the material that appears in the work, and if the other eligibility requirements have been met. If so, the applicant should check the box marked “yes” Chapter 600 | 28 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices that appears

next to the question, “Does the work you are sending contain material created only by this author?” The following are representative examples of works that may be eligible for the Single Application because they were created solely by one individual: • One travel book containing text, illustrations, and photographs created by Christopher Wren. • One song containing music and lyrics created by Danielle Running Horse. -- note: If the applicant submits a recording of the song, Danielle must be the author/owner of both the song and the sound recording, and she must be the only performer featured in the recording. • A musical work and sound recording created by Alicia Fox. -- note: Alicia must be the sole author/owner of both the sound recording and the musical work, and she must be the only performer featured in the recording. • One “nature video” containing script, direction, cinematography, and narration by Jonathan Bass. • A translation by a single author of a

work that is in the public domain. If the work contains material created by two or more authors, the applicant should check the box marked “no,” even if the applicant does not intend to name the other authors in the application and does not intend to claim their contributions in the application. The following are representative examples of works containing material created by two or more authors that are not eligible for the Single Application: • A novel written by one individual with an introduction and an afterword written by two other individuals. • A translation by a different author of a work that is not in the public domain. • An album containing music, lyrics, liner notes, and sound recordings created by three different individuals. • A sound recording containing a song written by one individual that was performed by a different individual. • A musical work created by one individual embodied in a sound recording created by a different author. • A motion

picture that includes directing, editing, writing, or other authorship by more than one person. Chapter 600 | 29 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 609.2 Type of Work The U.S Copyright Office has specified various administrative classes of works for registration and deposit purposes as authorized pursuant to Section 408(c)(1) of the Copyright Act. These classes are: • Literary Works. • Works of the Visual Arts. • Works of the Performing Arts. • Sound Recordings. • Motion Picture/Audiovisual Works. • Single Serial Issues. 37 C.FR § 2023(b) These classes or types of work are merely an administrative classification and do not affect the subject matter of copyright or the exclusive rights in a work. Nevertheless, the applicant should exercise judgment and care when selecting the Type of Work in the online application. The initial selection may dictate the options for describing the authorship that the applicant intends to register. And it

will determine the registration number that the Office ultimately issues. If the applicant chooses the wrong Type of Work or uses the wrong form for certain types of works, the registration specialist may change the Type of Work to the appropriate classification without communicating with the applicant. For works that contain multiple types of authorship, see Section 609.2(C) below 609.2(A) Online Application When completing an online application the applicant should select the class of work that is most appropriate for the work that the applicant intends to register and the authorship that appears in the work. These classes are listed under a drop down menu marked Type of Work Once a selection has been made, the system will provide a brief description and representative examples of the types of works that fall within each class. Once the applicant has selected the most appropriate classification for the work that will be submitted, the applicant must check the box that appears next

to the following statement: “Click the box to confirm you have read the above description and selected the most appropriate type of work.” If the applicant fails to check this box the application will not be accepted by the electronic registration system Once a selection has been made, the Type of Work field cannot be changed. If the applicant makes a selection that is not appropriate for the work that is submitted, the registration specialist may communicate with the applicant, change the Type of Work field without communicating with the applicant, or refuse to register the work if the application does not state a sufficient basis for registration. Chapter 600 | 30 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices • Select Literary Work if the work is a nondramatic literary work, such as fiction, nonfiction, poetry, a textbook, a reference work, a directory, a catalog, advertising copy, a compilation of information, a computer program, a textual work made

available online, or a database. This category may be used to register an individual article or other textual contribution to a serial publication, or an entire issue of a serial that has not been published before. • Select Work of the Visual Arts if the work is a pictorial, graphic, or sculptural work, including a two-dimensional or a three-dimensional work of fine, graphic, or applied art, a photograph, a print, an art reproduction, a map, a technical drawing, or an architectural work. • Select Work of the Performing Arts if the work is a musical work (either with or without lyrics), a dramatic work (such as a screenplay, play, or other script), a pantomime, or a choreographic work. • Select Sounding Recording if the work contains sound recording authorship and if the applicant intends to register that element of the work (even if the work also contains other types of authorship, such as music or lyrics). Likewise, the applicant should select this option if the applicant

intends to register a sound recording and the underlying works embodied in that recording, provided that the claimant owns all of the rights in those works. If the applicant does not intend to register sound recording authorship, the applicant should not select this option (even if the work happens to contain one or more sound recordings). Likewise, the applicant should not select this option if the applicant intends to register the sounds accompanying a motion picture or other audiovisual work. • Select Motion Picture/Audiovisual Work if the work is a feature film, documentary film, animated film, television show, video, videogame, or other audiovisual work, such as a slide presentation. Likewise, this option is appropriate if the applicant intends to register the sounds accompanying a motion picture or other audiovisual work. • Select Single Serial Issue if the applicant intends to register a single issue of a serial publication. This category may be used to register a

published serial, but may not be used to register an unpublished serial. A serial is a work that is issued in successive parts bearing numerical or chronological designations and is intended to be continued indefinitely. Examples include a single issue of a newspaper, magazine, bulletin, newsletter, annual, journal, and other similar works. Examples of works that do not fall within this category include episodes of a television series, a series of online videos, a collection of musical works, a group of manuscripts, an assortment of poetry, or a set of advertising copies. The online application for a single serial issue may be used to register the issue as a whole. It also may be used to register the individual contributions that were first published within that issue, provided that (i) the claimant owns the copyright in the individual contributions and the issue as a whole, and (ii) if the contributions have not been previously published or previously registered. In no case may the

claimant register a contribution that is in the public domain To register an article, photograph, or other contribution that is not owned by the claimant for the issue as a whole, or to register a contribution that was previously published in another medium, the applicant should prepare a separate application for each contribution, and should select the appropriate form of authorship for that work. For example, if the contribution is an article, the applicant should select Literary Work; if the contribution is a photograph, the applicant should select Work of the Visual Arts. Chapter 600 | 31 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices note: It is also possible to register a group of serials or a group of contributions to a periodi- cal with one application, one filing fee, and deposit copy(ies). For a discussion of these group registration options, see Chapter 1100, Sections 1109 and 1115. 609.2(B) Paper Applications Identifying the type of work that will

be submitted to the U.S Copyright Office is the first step in completing a paper application. The Office has prescribed five basic classes of works that may be registered with a paper application, and each of these classes has its own paper form. The applicant should select the form that is most appropriate for the work that the applicant intends to register and the authorship that appears in the work. • Use Form TX if the work is a nondramatic literary work, such as fiction, nonfiction, poetry, a textbook, a reference work, a directory, a catalog, advertising copy, a compilation of information, a computer program, a textual work made available online, or a database. This form may be used to register an individual article or other textual contribution to a serial publication, or an entire issue of a serial that has not been published before. • Use Form VA if the work is a pictorial, graphic, or sculptural work, including a two-dimensional or three-dimensional work of fine,

graphic, or applied art, a photograph, a print or art reproduction, a map, a technical drawing, or an architectural work. • Use Form PA if the work is a musical work (either with or without lyrics), a dramatic work (such as a screenplay, play or other script), a pantomime, a choreographic work, or an audiovisual work (such as a feature film, documentary film, animated film, television show, video, or videogame). • Use Form SR if the applicant intends to register sound recording authorship (even if the work contains additional types of authorship, such as music or lyrics). If the applicant does not intend to register a sound recording, Form SR should not be used (even if the work contains one or more sound recordings). Likewise, Form SR is inappropriate if the applicant intends to register the sounds accompanying a motion picture or other audiovisual work. • Use Form SE if the applicant intends to register a single issue of a serial publication (e.g, a magazine, journal, etc.)

This form may be used to register a published serial, but may not be used to register an unpublished serial. For a definition of the term “serial” and representative examples of such works, see Section 609.2(A) Form SE may be used to register the issue as a whole. It also may be used to register the individual contributions, provided that (i) the claimant owns the copyright in the individual contributions and the issue as a whole, and (ii) if the contributions have not been previously published or previously registered. In no case may the claimant register a contribution that is in the public domain. To register an article, photograph, or other contribution that is not owned by the claimant for the issue as a whole, or to register a contribution that was previously published in another medium, the applicant should prepare a separate application for each contribution using the appropriate form for that type of work. For example, if the contribution is an article, the applicant

should use Form TX; if the contribution is an illustration, the applicant should use Form VA. Chapter 600 | 32 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices note: It is also possible to register a group of serials or a group of contributions to a periodi- cal with one application, one filing fee, and deposit copy(ies). For a discussion of these group registration options, see Chapter 1100, Sections 1109 and 1115. 609.2(C) Works Containing Multiple Forms of Authorship If the work contains more than one type of authorship, the applicant should select the type of work or the paper application that corresponds to the predominant form of authorship in that work. For example, if the work is a website that contains a substantial amount of text combined with a few photographs, the applicant should select Literary Work (in the case of an online application) or Form TX (in the case of a paper application). If the website mostly contains photographs with a small amount

of text, the applicant should select Work of the Visual Arts for an online application or Form VA for a paper application. If the types of authorship are roughly equal, the applicant may use either option that would be appropriate. However, there is an exception to this rule for claims that include any sound recording authorship. In this case, the applicant must select Sound Recording (in the case of an online application) or use Form SR (in the case of a paper application), regardless of whether sound recording is the predominant form of authorship in the work. See 37 CFR § 2023(b)(2)(ii)(C) 610 Title of the Work The application for copyright registration must specify the title(s) of the work(s) the applicant wishes to register. The application also should include any previous or alternative titles by which the work may be identified. 17 USC § 409(6) If the work being registered is part of a larger work or a series of works, the applicant may provide the title of the larger work

or the title of the series. If the work being registered contains separate and independent works owned by the claimant and if those works are included in the claim, the applicant is strongly encouraged to provide the titles of those works in the Contents Title(s) field. The title of the work will appear in the certificate of registration under the heading Title of Work, and it will appear in the online public record under the heading Application Title. The title that appears on the deposit copy(ies) will appear in the online public record under the heading Title. If there is no title on the deposit copy(ies), the title given in the application will appear in the online public record in both the Title field and the Application Title field. 610.1 Title Types When completing an online application, the applicant generally may provide five types of titles. These title types are listed on the Title screen under the drop down menu marked Title Type. The options include: • Title of work

being registered. • Previous or alternative title. • Title of larger work. • Contents title(s). Chapter 600 | 33 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices • Series title. note: When completing a Single Application the applicant may provide two types of titles. Spe- cifically, the applicant may provide the title of the work being registered, and if that work was published in a larger work, the applicant also may provide the title of the larger work. When completing a paper application, the applicant may provide five types of titles. These title types are listed in space 1 of the application. The options include: • Title of this work (Forms TX, VA, PA, SR, SE). • Title of this serial (Form SE only). • Previous or alternative title (Forms TX, VA, PA, SR, SE). • Publication as a contribution/title of collective work (Forms TX and VA only). • Contents title(s) (Form SR only). Each of these title types is discussed in Sections 610.2 through

6105 below 610.2 Title of Work Being Registered / Title of this Work When completing an online application, the applicant should begin by selecting Title of Work Being Registered and entering the primary title for the work in that field (including any subtitles). If the applicant fails to provide this information, the application will not be accepted by the electronic registration system. note: When completing a Single Application the applicant should provide the title of the work in the field marked Title of this work. If the work contains a number of separate and independent works, such as an anthology, periodical, serial, or the like, and if the applicant intends to register the entire collective work, the title for that collective work should be provided as the Title of Work Being Registered. If the applicant instead intends to register a contribution that has been included in a collective work, such as an article, a photograph, or the like, but does not intend to register the

larger work as a whole (for instance, because the claimant does not own the copyright in the collective work), the title for the contribution should be provided as the Title of Work Being Registered. In all cases, the applicant should only provide titles for a contribution if the copyright claimant owns all of the rights in that contribution. If the applicant intends to register a number of works with the unit of publication option, the applicant should provide a title for the unit as a whole, as well as the title for each component work that will be submitted for registration. For a discussion of the unit of publication option, see Chapter 1100, Section 1107. If the applicant intends to register a collection of unpublished works, the applicant should provide a title for the collection as a whole, as well as a title for each work that is included in Chapter 600 | 34 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices the collection. For a discussion of the procedure

for registering an unpublished collection, see Chapter 1100, Section 1106. When completing a paper application, the applicant should enter the title of the work in space 1 of the application under the heading Title of This Work. As the name suggests, the Title of This Work is the primary title of the work that the applicant intends to register (including any subtitles). If the applicant fails to provide this information, the application may be questioned, which may delay the examination of the application. Form SE also directs the applicant to provide the Title of This Serial This space does not appear in the online application or other paper applications. As the name suggests, the Title of This Serial is the primary title of the serial that the applicant intends to register (including any subtitles). Additionally, the applicant should provide the volume and number for the specific issue that will be submitted for registration, the issue date that appears on the deposit copies (e.g,

January 15, 2010; Spring 2012, etc), and the frequency of publication for the specific serial. Examples: • The applicant intends to register a novel titled The Sun Also Sets. The applicant should provide that title as the Title of Work Being Registered • The claimant wishes to register a song titled, “Midnight,” which was published in an album titled All My Blues. The claimant does not own the copyright in the other songs and did not create the album as a whole. The applicant should provide “Midnight” as the Title of Work Being Registered. (All My Blues should be provided in the Title of Larger Work field, as described in Section 610.4(B) below) • The applicant intends to register the episode “Tina Goes Home” from the television series All My Grandchildren. The applicant should provide “Tina Goes Home” as the Title of Work Being Registered. (The title of the television series should be provided as the Series Title as described in Section 610.5 below) • The

applicant intends to register a book titled Mozart. The subtitle for the book is A Heavenly Voice for the Ages. This is the third book in a series titled The Great Composers. The applicant should provide Mozart: A Heavenly Voice for the Ages as the Title of Work Being Registered. (The applicant should provide The Great Composers as the Series Title, as described in Section 6105 below.) 610.3 Previous or Alternative Title When completing an online application, the applicant should complete the field marked Previous or Alternative Title if the work: • Was previously published under a different title. • Is known by a different title or by a title that is written in a different language. • Is likely to be searched in the U.S Copyright Office’s records under a different title Chapter 600 | 35 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices When completing a paper application, the applicant should enter these types of titles on space 1 under the heading

Previous or Alternative Titles. As a general rule, a subtitle is not considered a Previous or Alternative Title. Examples: • An application is submitted for a painting titled “My Old Ohio Home.” The work is commonly known as “Take Me Back To Cincinnati” among art aficionados. The applicant should provide “My Old Ohio Home” as the Title of Work Being Registered and “Take Me Back to Cincinnati” as the Previous or Alternative Title. • An application is submitted for a novel titled The Black and the Red, which has been translated from the French novel, Le Noir et Le Rouge. The applicant should provide The Black and the Red as the Title of Work Being Registered, and Le Noir et Le Rouge as the Previous or Alternative Title. • An application is submitted for a work with the title The United States of America! (The Book) and a subtitle that reads A Guide to Our Democracy. The applicant should provide the Title of Work Being Registered as The United States of America!

(The Book): A Guide to Our Democracy. 610.4 Works Containing Separate and Independent Works: Unpublished Collections, Units of Publication, Collective Works, and Contributions to Collective Works In the case of an unpublished collection, a unit of publication, a collective work that contains a number of separate and independent works (such as an anthology that contains a number of poems or a periodical that contains a number of articles and photographs), or a contribution to a collective work, the applicant should complete the field marked Title of Work Being Registered, which is discussed in Section 610.2 above In addition, the applicant should complete the Contents Title field and/or the Title of Larger Work field. These fields are discussed in Sections 610.4(A) and 6104(B) below 610.4(A) Contents Title: Titles of Separate and Independent Works Included in a Larger Work If the applicant intends to register any of the separate and independent works that appear in a collective

work, unit of publication, or unpublished collection the applicant should enter the titles of each contribution in the field marked Contents Title. These titles will appear in the online public record and certificate of registration under the heading Contents Title. Listing the content titles (i.e, the titles of separate and independent works that are owned by the copyright claimant) is beneficial for various reasons: (i) it provides a clear record of what the larger work contains; (ii) it clearly describes what the registration covers; and (iii) it makes these titles accessible as searchable terms in the online public record. The total number of characters that may be provided in the Title of Work Being Registered field and the number of characters that may be provided in each Contents Title field is limited. Applicants are strongly encouraged to provide one title in the relevant field, then click the Save button, and then repeat this process in order to prevent loss of data due to

space limitations. Chapter 600 | 36 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices The registration specialist generally will not communicate with the applicant if the titles given in the Title of Work Being Registered field and the Contents Title field are the same, unless it is unclear whether the applicant intends to register the larger work or one of the separate and independent works that appears within the larger work. Examples: • The applicant intends to register an album published under the title, Britney Shields: The Debut Album, as well as the musical works “Young At Last,” “Serenade,” “Dance All Night,” and “Love At First Sight,” which were released on this album. Britney created each of these songs and she produced the album as a whole. To register the album as a whole, the applicant should provide Britney Shields: The Debut Album in the Title of Work Being Registered field. To register the songs that appear on this album, the

applicant should provide the title of each song in the application. Because the author of the album and the author of the songs are the same, the applicant is strongly encouraged to provide the titles “Young At Last,” “Serenade,” “Dance All Night,” and “Love At First Sight” in the Contents Title field. • Railroad Publishers is the author of a work titled, Trackplans and Benchwork, which contains a dozen articles by Jack Armstrong. Jack assigned the copyright in these articles to the publisher, and the publisher intends to register Trackplans and Benchwork and all of the articles that it contains. To register the work as a whole, the applicant should provide Trackplans and Benchwork in the Title of Work Being Registered field. In addition, the applicant is strongly encouraged to provide the title of each article in the Contents Title field. • The applicant intends to register a textbook titled Practical Physics. The book contains twelve chapters and all of the

chapters are written and owned by the same person. The applicant should provide Practical Physics as the Title of work being registered. There is no need to provide the title for each chapter note: The only paper application that specifically requests contents titles is Form SR. Space 1 of this application should be used to list the titles of any separate and independent sound recordings contained in the larger work or unpublished collection that the applicant intends to register. In the alternative, the applicant may use one or more continuation sheets submitted on Form CON to list the titles of any separate and independent works included in the larger work or unpublished collection. As is true for the online application, the applicant should only provide the titles of the individual sound recordings or other works that are owned by the copyright claimant. 610.4(B) Title of Larger Work If the applicant wishes to register a contribution to a larger work, such as an article that has

been published in a newspaper, or a recording of a song that has been released on an album, the applicant should use the Title of Larger Work field to identify the larger work in which the contribution appears. When completing an online application the applicant should provide any volume number, issue date, or similar designation that may be used to identify the larger work, and, if applicable, the page number(s) within the larger work where the contribution appears. Chapter 600 | 37 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices When completing a Single Application the applicant should select “yes” in response to the question “Does this work appear in a larger work?” and should provide the title of the larger work in the field marked Larger Work. In addition, the applicant should identify the volume, number, and issue of the larger work (if any), and the page(s) where the work appears. If it appears that the applicant intends to register a separate and

independent work that has been included in another work, and if the applicant fails to provide the title of the larger work, the registration specialist may add the missing title if it appears in the deposit copy(ies) or elsewhere in the registration materials. If the title of the larger work is not specified in the deposit copy(ies) or elsewhere in the registration materials, the registration specialist may communicate with the applicant. Generally, the registration specialist will communicate when it is unclear whether the applicant intends to register the larger work as a whole, or a separate and independent work that appears within the larger work. Examples: • Melody Meyers submits an application for a song titled “Melody in G,” which was included in an album titled Enchanted Melodies. The rest of the songs on this album are owned by other parties. Enchanted Melodies should be entered as the Title of Larger Work and “Melody in G” should be provided as the Title of Work

Being Registered. • An application is submitted for an article titled “Running a Marathon,” which appeared on pages 45-46 of Field & Track magazine (Vol. 22, April 13, 2004) “Running a Marathon” should be entered as the Title of Work Being Registered, while the Title of Larger Work should be identified as “Field & Track (Volume 22, April 13, 2004, on pages 45-46).” • Alexandra Rodriguez submits a Form TX to register her story “Why I Live at the A&P,” which was published on pages 238-260 of the anthology Stories by American Women. The title of her story “Why I Live at the A&P” should be entered on space 1, Title of This Work. The title of the anthology should be entered on space 1 under Publication as a Contribution, Title of Collective Work. Alexandra also should give the page numbers 238-260 in the On Pages section of space 1. • Nikhil Shah is the author of the story “Living on Top of the World,” which appeared on pages 10-20 of

Katmandu Comics (Vol. 32, No 28, June 14, 2011) Nikhil provided the title of his story, but failed to identify the larger work where the story appeared. The registration specialist may add the missing information (title of the larger work, volume and issue number, issue date, and page numbers) to the Title of Larger Work field, and may add an annotation, such as: “Regarding title: title of larger work added by Copyright Office from the copy.” note: Space 1 of paper Forms TX and VA state that “If this work was published as a contribution to a periodical, serial, or collection, give the information about the collective work in which the contribution appeared.” This space does not appear in the online application or other paper applications If the applicant wishes to register a contribution to a larger work (but does not intend to register the larger work as a whole), the applicant should enter the title of that contribution in the space marked Title of this work. The title of

the periodical, serial, or other collective work Chapter 600 | 38 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices where the applicant’s contribution appeared should be entered in the space marked Title of Collective Work. 610.5 Series Title If the applicant intends to register an episode or installment from a series of works, the applicant should provide the title of that episode or installment along with the title of the series. The Series Title is the main title by which the series is known. Specifically, the applicant should list the title of the episode or installment as the Title of Work Being Registered, along with any number or other alphanumeric designation that has been assigned to that episode or installment (e.g, “Episode 217,” “Fourth Installment,” etc) The applicant should enter the title of the series as the Series Title A registration for a particular episode or installment from a series of works covers the specific episode or

installment that has been submitted for registration. The US Copyright Office does not offer “blanket registrations” that cover future episodes or installments in the same series. As a general rule, it is not possible to register an entire series with one application, because the individual episodes and installments in a series are typically published on different dates. Consequently, the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant if the applicant provides the title for the entire series as the Title of Work Being Registered, or if it appears that the applicant is attempting to register separately published episodes or installments from a series of works with one application. Examples: • The applicant intends to register one of the episodes from his podcast. The podcast is known as The Mike O’Leary Show. The episode in question is titled “Enjoy the Boat.” It is the 687th episode of this podcast The applicant should provide “Enjoy the Boat (Episode

687)” as the Title of Work Being Registered, and The Mike O’Leary Show as the Series Title. • The applicant intends to register the pilot for a television series titled Star Track. The pilot is titled “The Synod Syndrome” The applicant should provide “The Synod Syndrome (Pilot)” as the Title of Work Being Registered and Star Track as the Series Title. • The applicant intends to register a book titled Double Trouble. This is the 56th book in a series of books for teenage girls known as Harper Valley High School. The applicant should provide Double Trouble, No. 56 as the Title of Work Being Registered and Harper Valley High School as the Series Title • The applicant submits an application for nine separate books on the planets. The application states that Space Almanac is both the Title of Work Being Registered and the Series Title. The application will be questioned if it appears that the nine books were published separately. Chapter 600 | 39 revised 09/29/2017

c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 610.6 Examination Guidelines: Title of Work As a general rule, the title that is specified in the application will be accepted without question. The registration specialist may change or correct any apparent spelling, capitalization, or punctuation mistakes in the title, but only if the misspelling or incorrect use of capital letters or punctuation appears to be unintentional. The specialist will use his or her judgment to determine whether an error was intentional or a typographical mistake Examples: • The applicant submits an application for a rap song. The title on the online application is given as “Let US LeaVe hiM hEre.” The title will appear in the registration record exactly as it appears on the application. • The applicant files an application to register a multimedia work. The title listed on the application is Boook of Jonah; the title on the copy is Book of Jonah. The registration specialist may correct the spelling

of the title that appears on the application to conform to the title on the deposit copy 610.6(A) Untitled Works The applicant should not provide “Untitled,” “No Title,” “Working Title,” “No title yet,” or the like as the title of the work. It may be extremely difficult to find a work that has been registered under a generic title. If the work is unpublished and if the author has not selected a title for the work as of the date that the application is submitted, the applicant should provide a descriptive title that identifies the author of the work, the general subject matter of the work, the type of work submitted for registration, or any other relevant information that a person searching the U.S Copyright Office’s records is likely to include in his or her search request Examples: • Sculpture of a Green Frog, Preliminary Study in Clay by Quang Ha (Spring 2008). • Painting on Illustration Board by Imran Latif (2010). • Photo Taken at Sand Hill Cove,

Narragansett, Rhode Island by Ann McKenna (2012). • Working Title: Zuzu’s Petals. If the author decides to change the title after the work has been registered, the applicant may file an application on Form CA to reflect the new title in the online public record. For guidance on completing Form CA, see Chapter 1800, Section 1802.8 If a previously registered, unpublished work is later published with a new title, the applicant may choose to reflect the new title by filing an application for a new basic registration for the first published edition of the work. (This is permissible even if the published edition is exactly the same as the previously registered, unpublished edition.) For information concerning this practice, see Chapter 500, Section 5101 Chapter 600 | 40 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 610.6(B) Descriptive Titles That Appear to Be Incorrect If the applicant provides a descriptive title that does not appear to describe the work

that has been submitted for registration (such as “Print No. 1” or “Study in Red” for a painting that is black and white), the registration specialist generally will accept the title specified in the application. However, the specialist may communicate with the applicant if there is a substantial variance between the title provided in the application and the title that appears on the deposit copy(ies). For examples of a substantial variance, see Section 6106(D)(4) 610.6(C) Titles Consisting of Roman Letters and Arabic Numerals The U.S Copyright Office’s electronic registration system only accepts titles consisting of Roman letters and/or Arabic numerals It does not accept titles consisting of other types of letters, numerals, or characters, such as Cyrillic or Mandarin. Nor does it accept diacritical marks used in Spanish, French, German, or other foreign languages, such as ç, à, ñ, or ü. The system will accept titles written in a foreign language, provided that the

title consists of Roman letters and/or Arabic numerals. The title will appear on both the certificate of registration and the online public record, but without any diacritical marks. The Office will accept a title consisting solely of numbers and/or letters, such as “L‑1011,” “24601,” or “MX.” 610.6(D) 610.6(D)(1) Title of the Work: Variances Variances between the Title Provided in the Application and the Title That Appears on the Deposit Copy(ies) If there is a significant variance between the title given in the application and the deposit copy(ies), and it is clear that both titles refer to the same work, the registration specialist may add the title that appears on the deposit copy(ies) to the title field of the online public record and/or the specialist may add an annotation to the registration record, such as: “Regarding title: title on the deposit copy is .” The title may be taken from the cover, title page, spine, or any other place where a title

may be found. If the deposit copy(ies) are submitted in electronic form, the title may be taken from the file name for the document (excluding extensions indicating the format of the document, such as .doc, pdf, mp3, etc) Examples: • The title on the deposit copy(ies) reads: The Quest for Rest Among Insomniacs. The title given on the application reads: The Quest for Rest. The registration specialist will register the claim without communicating with the applicant. The title that appears on the deposit copy(ies) may be added to the title field in the online public record. • The title on the deposit copy(ies) is Rest Quest. The title on the application reads: The Quest for Rest Among Insomniacs. The application will be accepted Chapter 600 | 41 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices The title that appears on the copies will be added to the title field in the online public record. In addition, Rest Quest may be added to the registration record with an

annotation, such as: “Regarding deposit: title appears on copy as ‘Rest Quest.’” • The applicant submits a paper application on Form PA for an unpublished screenplay. The application lists A Miracle as the title of the work, but the deposit copy gives the title as One More Miracle The application will be accepted The title given on the deposit copy will be added to the previous or alternative title field in the online public record. Additionally, One More Miracle may be added to the registration record with an annotation. 610.6(D)(2) Title That Appears on the Deposit Copy(ies) is More Complete Than the Title Provided in the Application Where the title provided in the application is a generic title, such as “story,” “symphony,” “picture,” or the like, and the title on the deposit copy(ies) substantially adds to the identity of the work, the registration specialist may add the additional information to the online public record. Example: • The title on the

application is “Ballade,” while the title on deposit copies is “Ballade No. 6 in E Minor” The application will be accepted The title that appears on the deposit copies may be added to the online public record in the previous or alternative title field. 610.6(D)(3) Edition Number, Version Number, or Other Identifying Information Not Provided The registration specialist may amend the title provided in the application to indicate that the copy or phonorecord submitted to the U.S Copyright Office is a specific version or a particular edition of the work, particularly if the applicant failed to exclude the prior versions or previous editions from the scope of the claim. Example: • The title on the application is Applied Genetics. The deposit copy indicates that this is the second edition of this work. If the applicant expressly limited the claim to the “new and additional text” contained in the second edition, the application will be accepted. If the claim has not been

limited to the new material, the specialist may amend the title to read Applied Genetics (2nd Edition) and may add an annotation to the certificate of registration, such as: “Regarding title information: edition statement added by C.O from copy” 610.6(D)(4) Substantial Variances Between the Title Provided in the Application and the Title That Appears on the Deposit Copy(ies) If there is a substantial variance between the title given in the application and the deposit copy(ies) and if the registration specialist is unable to determine whether the application and deposit copy(ies) refer to the same work, the specialist will communicate with the applicant. Chapter 600 | 42 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices Examples: • The title given in the application is Davidson’s Biology for Preparatory Study. The title given on the deposit copies is Poems for Shona and Liletha. The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant to determine

whether the correct deposit copies have been submitted or whether the title field should be revised. • The title provided in the application is Ten Frontier Women and the Founding of Carson City, and the title given on the deposit copies is Eight Frontier Men and the Founding of Calico. The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant to determine whether the correct deposit copies have been submitted or whether the title field should be revised. 611 Year of Completion / Year in Which Creation of This Work Was Completed To register a work of authorship with the U.S Copyright Office, the applicant must identify the year that the work was created. 17 USC § 409(7) A work is considered created when it is fixed in a copy or phonorecord for the first time. If the work was prepared over a period of time, the portion or portions of the work that existed in a fixed form on a particular date constitute the work that has been created as of that date. 17 USC § 101 (definition

of “created”) The year of creation is particularly important in the case of a work made for hire, an anonymous work, or a pseudonymous work, because this date may be used to calculate the term of the copyright. 17 U.SC § 302(c) 611.1 Completing the Application: Year of Completion / Year in Which Creation of this Work Was Completed When completing an online application, the applicant should identify the year that the work was completed on the Publication/Completion screen in the field marked Year of Completion (Year of Creation). The year of completion must be provided in four numeric digits When completing a paper application, the applicant should identify the year that the author completed the work on space 3(a) under the heading Year in Which Creation of This Work was Completed. The specific month and day that the author completed the work need not be provided. 611.1(A) Year of Completion for an Unpublished Work Created Over a Period of Time If the work is unpublished and if

the author created the work over an extended period of time, the applicant should provide the year of completion for the most recent iteration of the work. If the applicant provides a year of completion for each iteration of the work (e.g, a cover letter explaining that the author completed the first draft in 2006, the second draft in 2007, and the final draft in 2008), the registration specialist will replace that information with the year of completion for the most recent iteration, and will add an annotation to the registration record specifying the source of that information, such as: “Regarding year of completion: corrected by C.O from cover letter” Chapter 600 | 43 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 611.1(B) Year of Completion for Multiple Versions of the Same Work If the author created multiple versions of the same work, each version is considered a separate work. 17 USC § 101 (definition of “created”) As a general rule, if each

version has been published, the applicant must submit a separate application and filing fee for each of those versions See 17 U.SC §§ 408(a), 409 In preparing each application, the applicant should provide the year of completion for the specific version that is being registered. Example: • An application is submitted for a French translation of an English novel. The application states that the work was completed in 2007, but the deposit copies state, “English edition published 2007; French translation 2011.” The registration specialist will ask the applicant to provide the year of completion for the French translation. In some cases it may be possible to register multiple versions of the same work with one application, provided that all of the versions are unpublished and the applicant complies with the requirements for registering those versions using the option for unpublished collections. In this situation, the applicant should provide the year of completion for the most

recent version that is being registered. See 37 CFR § 2023(b)(4)(ii) Examples: • Raul Hernandez submits an application to register three versions of his unpublished screenplay, which were created in 2009, 2011, and 2012. The applicant provides 2012 as the year of completion. The registration specialist will register the claim with an annotation, such as: “Basis for registration: unpublished collection.” • A paper application is submitted on Form TX for two unpublished poems titled “My First House” and “My First House, Five Years Later.” The applicant provides “2005–2010” as the year of completion. The registration specialist will amend the year of completion to read 2010 and will register the claim. In addition, the specialist will add an annotation, such as: “Basis for registration: unpublished collection. Regarding year of completion: application states 2005–2010.” For a general discussion of unpublished collections, see Chapter 1100, Section 1106.

611.2 611.2(A) Examination Guidelines: Year of Completion / Year in Which Creation of this Work Was Completed Year of Completion Apparently Incorrect The registration specialist may communicate with the applicant if the year of completion is inconsistent with or contradicted by other dates that appear in the registration materials. For instance, the year of completion cannot be later than the date of publication specified in the application. If the date of publication predates the year of completion in an online application, the application will not be accepted by the electronic registration system. If the date of publica- Chapter 600 | 44 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices tion precedes the year of completion in a paper application, the specialist will communicate with the applicant to determine the correct completion and publication dates. Moreover, the year of completion cannot be later than the date that the application is certified or the

date that the application is received in the U.S Copyright Office The electronic registration system will not accept an online application if the date of submission precedes the year of completion. If the date of certification or the date of receipt precedes the year of completion in a paper application, the specialist will communicate with the applicant to determine the correct completion date. If the year of completion specified in the deposit copy(ies) is later than the year of completion specified in the application, the specialist may communicate with the applicant to determine the correct date. If the year of completion is clearly provided in the deposit copy(ies) or elsewhere in the registration materials, the specialist may amend the date provided in the application, and may add an annotation to the registration record, such as: “Regarding year of completion: corrected by C.O from statement on copy” Examples: • An online application states that the author died in 1980,

but gives the year of completion as 1982. The registration specialist will ask the applicant if the year of death is correct, and if so, to explain the discrepancy with the year of completion. • An online application is submitted for a musical work titled “Eau de Joy.” The application states that the work was completed in 2005, but a statement on the phonorecord indicates that the work was written for the inauguration of President Obama in 2009. The registration specialist will ask the applicant to verify the year of completion. • A paper application is certified and submitted on December 31, 2008. The application states that the work was completed in 2009. The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant to determine the correct year of completion. 611.2(B) Year of Completion Omitted If the applicant fails to provide a year of completion in an online application, the application will not be accepted by the electronic registration system. As a general rule,

if the applicant fails to provide a year of creation in a paper application, the registration specialist may communicate with the applicant. If the year of creation is provided elsewhere in the registration materials, the specialist will add the missing information and provide an annotation to the registration record, such as: “Regarding year of creation: added by C.O from cover letter” 611.2(C) Year of Completion Unknown If the applicant cannot determine the exact year of completion, the applicant may provide a qualifying statement, such as “approximately,” “on or about,” “on or before,” or the like. In the Chapter 600 | 45 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices case of an online application, this statement may be provided in the Note to Copyright Office field. On a paper application, this statement may be provided on the application itself or in a cover letter. The registration specialist will add the statement to the certificate of

registration and the online public record with an annotation. In addition, the specialist will add a note to the record indicating that there is correspondence in the file. 612 Date of Publication This Section discusses the U.S Copyright Office’s practices and procedures regarding the date and nation of first publication for a work of authorship (if any). For a general discussion of publication, see Chapter 1900. 612.1 General Policy If the work described in the application has been published, the applicant must specify the date of publication and nation of first publication for that work. 17 USC § 409(8) 612.2 What Constitutes Publication? For purposes of U.S copyright law, “[p]ublication is the distribution of copies or phonorecords of a work to the public by sale or other transfer of ownership, or by rental, lease, or lending.” 17 U.SC § 101 (definition of “publication”) For instance, a book is published when copies of the work are distributed online or in

bookstores. A newspaper is distributed when copies are sold at newsstands or delivered to subscribers’ doorsteps. A song is distributed when print copies or phonorecords are sold (eg, on sheet music or in mp3 format). Software is distributed when copies are distributed by purchase or license, whether in CD-ROM format or online (provided that the copies are actually downloaded and not merely accessed online). On the other hand, a draft dissertation or other manuscript that is sent to a dozen people for peer review with a note stating that the copy should not be shared with other parties is not considered publication. Likewise, “offering to distribute copies or phonorecords to a group of persons for purposes of further distribution, public performance, or public display, constitutes publication.” Id For example, when a motion picture distribution company offers copies of a motion picture to movie theaters for public showing in the theater, the movie is published. “A public

performance or display of a work does not of itself constitute publication.” Id For a general discussion of publication and for specific guidance on determining whether a particular work has been published, see Chapter 1900. 612.3 Determining whether the Work Is Published or Unpublished The applicant not the U.S Copyright Office must determine whether the work is published or unpublished This determination should be based on the facts that exist at the time Chapter 600 | 46 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices the application is filed with the Office, and it should be based on the definition of publication under U.S copyright law, even if the work was created or published in another country As a general rule, the Office will accept the applicant’s representation that the work is published or unpublished, unless that statement is implausible or is contradicted by information provided elsewhere in the registration materials or in the Office’s

records or by information that is known to the registration specialist. Upon request, the registration specialist will provide the applicant with general information about the provisions of the Copyright Act, including the statutory definition of publication, and will explain the relevant practices and procedures for registering a work with the Office. However, the Office will not give specific legal advice on whether a particular work has or has not been published. 612.4 What Is the Date of First Publication? The date of first publication is the date that copies or phonorecords of the work were first published with the authorization of the copyright owner. 612.5 What Is the Nation of First Publication? The nation of first publication is the country where copies or phonorecords of the work were first published with the authorization of the copyright owner. The US Copyright Office may use this information to determine whether the work is eligible for copyright protection under U.S

copyright law For information concerning the eligibility requirements, see Chapter 2000, Section 2003. For information concerning works published in more than one country either simultaneously or within thirty days of each other, see Section 612.7(J) 612.6 612.6(A) Completing the Application: Date and Nation of First Publication Date of First Publication When completing an online application, the applicant should indicate whether the work is published or unpublished. The applicant will be asked to provide this information on the Publication / Completion screen by selecting “yes” or “no” in the drop down menu marked “Has this work been published?” If the work has been published, the applicant should provide the specific month, day, and year that copies or phonorecords of the work were distributed for the first time or were offered to a group of persons for further distribution, public performance, or public display for the first time. This information should be provided in

the field marked Date of First Publication. If the applicant indicates that the work has been published, but fails to provide the specific month, day, and year that publication occurred, the application will be not be accepted by the Office’s electronic registration system. Chapter 600 | 47 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices When completing a paper application, the applicant should enter the month, day, and year of first publication on space 3(b) under the heading Date and Nation of First Publication of This Particular Work. If the work has not been published, space 3(b) should be left blank 612.6(B) Nation of First Publication When completing an online application the applicant should identify the country in which the work was first published by selecting one of the countries listed in the drop down menu marked Nation of first publication. If the applicant indicates that the work has been published, but fails to provide a nation of first

publication, the application will be not be accepted by the electronic registration system. For a paper application, the nation of first publication should be listed on space 3(b) in the space marked Nation. If the work has not been published, space 3(b) should be left blank 612.6(C) ISBN, ISRC, and ISSN Numbers If the work has been published and if an International Standard Book Number (“ISBN”), International Standard Recording Code (“ISRC”), or International Standard Serial Number (“ISSN”) has been assigned to that work, the applicant is strongly encouraged to include that information on the Publication / Completion screen of the online application. Specifically, the applicant should select ISBN, ISRC, or ISSN from the drop down menu marked International Standard Number Type and provide the relevant ISBN, ISRC, or ISSN in the field marked International Standard Number. (Forms TX, PA, VA, SR, and SE do not contain a specific space for providing an ISBN, ISSN, or ISRC,

but this information may be provided in space 1.) This information will assist in the identification of a work and may facilitate licensing. However, providing an ISBN, ISRC, or ISSN is optional and an application will be accepted even if this portion of the application is left blank. If the applicant provides an ISBN, ISRC, or ISSN in the application, the U.S Copyright Office will not review the number to determine if it is correct The number will appear on the certificate of registration and in the online public record. The Office does not assign these numbers to published works. In the United States, ISSNs are administered by the Library of Congress (www.locgov/issn), ISBNs are administered by RR Bowker LLC (www.bowkercom), and ISRCs are administered by the Recording Industry Association of America (wwwusisrcorg) 612.7 Examination Guidelines: Date and Nation of First Publication This Section discusses the U.S Copyright Office’s practices and procedures for examining the Date and

Nation of first publication field/space in an online application or a paper application. As a general rule, if the applicant fails to complete the Date and Nation of first publication space in a paper application, the work will be registered as an unpublished work. The registration specialist may communicate with the applicant if information provided elsewhere in the registration materials clearly suggests that publication has occurred or if the specialist knows that the work has been published, such as a well-known novel or film. Chapter 600 | 48 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 612.7(A) Claim in a Published Work Contradicted by Information Provided Elsewhere in the Registration Materials As a general rule, if the applicant asserts that the work has been published, the work will be registered as a published work, unless the registration specialist discovers evidence to the contrary elsewhere in the registration materials. The specialist may

communicate with the applicant if the deposit copy(ies) or other information in the registration materials suggests that the work is unpublished or if it appears that the applicant provided a date and nation of first publication by mistake. For instance, the specialist may question whether publication has in fact occurred in cases such as the following: • The applicant gives a publication date on her application and states that she “recited this poem at a poetry slam,” or “played this song at church,” or “performed this dance on cable access television,” or otherwise indicates that the work was “performed” or “broadcast.” In such cases, the registration specialist may communicate with the applicant, and explain that a public performance of a work, in and of itself, does not constitute publication under U.S copyright law. • The applicant states that a painting or sculpture was “exhibited in a gallery,” “shown in a museum,” or otherwise indicates that

the work was publicly displayed. The registration specialist may communicate with the applicant and explain that a public display, in and of itself, does not constitute publication under U.S copyright law 612.7(B) Claim in an Unpublished Work Contradicted by Information Provided Elsewhere in the Registration Materials As a general rule, if the applicant affirmatively states that the work is unpublished (in the case of an online application) or if the applicant does not complete the date and nation of first publication space (in the case of a paper application), the work will be registered as an unpublished work, unless the information provided elsewhere in the registration materials clearly suggest that publication has occurred. If the applicant claims that the work is unpublished, the registration specialist may communicate with the applicant if the deposit copy(ies) or other information in the registration materials suggests that the work has been published. For example, the

registration specialist may communicate with the applicant in cases such as the following: The applicant submits two professionally printed copies or phonorecords of the work and there is other evidence in the registration materials of publication. • The applicant submits an application to register a serial or a contribution to a serial more than one month after the date that appears in the deposit copies. • The applicant submits an application to register a jewelry design along with a catalog where the work has been advertised for sale. • The applicant submits a musical score bearing the legend “for rental only.” Chapter 600 | 49 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices • The applicant submits an application to register multiple episodes of a television series that are known to be in syndication. • The cover for a compact disc states that the works are “from the album ” and the registration specialist is aware that the album

has been advertised in a trade publication. • The applicant submits an application for a novel and the registration specialist is aware that the work has appeared on a best seller list. • The applicant submits multiple applications for similar types of works, and provides a date of publication on all but one of the applications. 612.7(C) Nation of Publication Given in a Paper Application without a Date of Publication If the applicant provides a nation of first publication on a paper application, but fails to provide a date of first publication, the registration specialist may remove the country name from the registration record and register the work as unpublished (provided that the work appears to be unpublished). In such cases, the specialist will add an annotation to the registration record to document this change. Example: • The U.S Copyright Office receives a paper application, along with one copy or phonorecord of the work. The applicant states that the work was

published in the United States, but fails to provide a date of publication. The deposit copy is handwritten or homemade (such as a CDR deposited for a claim in music and sound recording). The registration specialist may register the claim without communicating with the applicant. In this situation, the specialist will remove the nation of first publication from the application, and will add an annotation, such as: “Regarding publication: no publication date given; registered as unpublished.” 612.7(D) Extraneous Statements Concerning Publication As a general rule, there is no need to explain the basis for the applicant’s statement that the work is published or unpublished. The registration specialist will not communicate with the applicant if such extraneous statements are provided, unless they are contradicted by information found in the deposit copy(ies), elsewhere in the registration materials, or other materials. Examples: • An application is submitted for a recording of

a live sporting event. In the Note to Copyright Office field the applicant states that the event was “televised on New Year’s Day,” but the applicant does not provide a date or nation of publication. The statement is considered superfluous, because a public performance does not constitute publication under US copyright law • The applicant submits an application for a motion picture and provides a date of first publication. In the Note to Copyright Office field the applicant states that the work was released in theaters on December 31, 2008. The state- Chapter 600 | 50 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices ment is considered superfluous, because the release of a motion picture to theaters constitutes publication under U.S copyright law • The applicant provides a date of first publication for a musical work. In the Note to Copyright Office field, the applicant explains that he “gave CDs to the audience at my concert.” The statement is

considered superfluous, because the distribution of copies constitutes publication. 612.7(E) Month, Day, and Year Required for the Date of First Publication The applicant should provide the month, day, and year that the work was published for the first time. The application will not be accepted by the electronic registration system if the applicant selects “yes” in response to the question “has this work been published,” but does not provide the month, day, and year of publication. If the applicant fails to provide the month, day, and year of publication on a paper application, or states that the date of first publication is “unknown,” the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant, unless this information is provided elsewhere in the registration materials. Examples: • An applicant submits a paper application that lists the date of publication as “January, 1980.” The registration specialist will ask the applicant to provide the day that the work

was published for the first time. • An applicant submits a paper application stating that the work was first published in 2013. The registration specialist will ask the applicant to provide the month and day that the work was first published. 612.7(F) Exact Date of Publication Unknown Applicants are strongly encouraged to provide a specific date of first publication. If the applicant cannot determine the exact date of first publication, the date may be qualified by “approximately,” “thereabouts,” “on or about,” “on or before,” “not later than,” or similar statements. In the case of an online application, a qualifying statement regarding the date of publication may be provided in the Note to Copyright Office field. In the case of a paper application, this statement may be provided on the application itself or in a cover letter. In such cases, the registration specialist will add an annotation to the certificate of registration and the online public record, such

as: “Regarding publication: applicant states ‘On or about May 15, 1981.’” 612.7(G) Multiple Dates of Publication As a general rule, the applicant should provide only one date of publication, namely, the date that the work was published for the first time. If the applicant provides multiple publication dates, the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant to determine the date of first publication for the work described in the application. By contrast, the applicant may be asked to provide a range of dates when completing an application for a group registration, such as a group of published photographs. For a discussion of group registration options, see Chapter 1100. Chapter 600 | 51 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 612.7(H) Future Date of Publication As a general rule, the date of first publication cannot be later than the date that an online application is certified or the date that the application is received by the

U.S Copyright Office The electronic registration system will not accept an online application where the submission date precedes the date of publication. If the applicant provides a future date of publication in a paper application, the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant to determine whether the work has been published, and if so, whether publication occurred on the date specified in the application. Example: • On January 1st, the applicant submits a paper application and states that the work will be published on February 1st. The registration specialist examines the application on June 1st. The specialist will communicate with the applicant to determine if the work was, in fact, published on the date specified in the application. 612.7(I) Impossible or Impractical Date of Publication If the applicant provides a date of publication that does not exist, or a date that is impossible or impractical based on information provided elsewhere in the registration

materials, the registration specialist will ask the applicant to explain the discrepancy. Examples: • The date of first publication given on the application is September 31, 2010. • The date of first publication is earlier than the year of the author’s birth specified in the application. • The date of first publication is earlier than the year of completion specified in the application. 612.7(J) Nation of First Publication: Works Published in Multiple Countries If the work was first published in the United States and another country on the same date, the applicant should provide United States as the nation of first publication. Likewise, the applicant should provide United States as the nation of first publication if the work was first published in a foreign country that has entered into a copyright treaty with the United States and if the work was subsequently published in the United States within thirty days thereafter. 17 USC § 104(b) If the work was first published in

two or more countries on the same date or within thirty days of each other, the applicant may provide the name of each country where the work was published. In the case of an online application, the applicant may provide the name of one country on the Publication/Completion screen in the field marked Nation of First Publication. The names of the other countries may be provided in the Note to Copyright Office field. In the case of a paper application the name of each country may be provided on the application itself, on a continuation sheet, or in a cover letter. The names of the additional countries may be added to the registration record with an annotation, such as: “Regarding publication: applicant states simultaneously published in Nigeria and Ghana.” Chapter 600 | 52 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices If the applicant lists two or more countries in the application, the registration specialist will assume that the work was published in each

country on the same day or within thirty days of each other, absent conflicting information in the deposit copy(ies) or elsewhere in the registration materials. 612.7(K) Nation of First Publication Unclear If the applicant provides the name of a city, state, and country in the Nation of First Publication field/space, the registration specialist may include the name of the state and/or country, but will remove the name of the city from the registration record. If the applicant provides the name of a state, territory, city, or other political subdivision, rather than the name of a country, the application will be accepted if the nation of first publication is obvious or if there is another basis for establishing that the work is eligible for copyright protection under U.S copyright law For example, the specialist will accept an application if the applicant states that the work was first published in “Quebec” or “Wales,” although “Canada” or the “United Kingdom” would be

preferable. As a general rule, statements made on a paper application, such as “published on the internet” or “published online” are not acceptable. If the applicant identifies the nation of first publication as the “internet,” “online,” the “world wide web,” or the like, the specialist may ask the applicant to provide the name of a specific country from which the work is uploaded. If the work is eligible for copyright protection in the United States based on the information provided in the application, such as the author’s citizenship or domicile, the specialist may register the claim without communicating with the applicant. In this situation, the specialist will add an annotation, such as: “Regarding publication: application states ‘internet’ as the nation of publication.” 612.7(L) Nation of First Publication Unknown If the nation of first publication is unknown, the applicant may select “not known” from the drop down menu of the online

application. When completing a paper application, the applicant may leave space 3(b) blank or may state “not known.” If the applicant fails to identify the nation of first publication, the application may be accepted if that information is provided elsewhere in the registration materials or if the registration specialist determines that the work is eligible for copyright protection under U.S copyright law based on the author’s citizenship or domicile. 17 USC § 104(b) If there appears to be no other basis for establishing eligibility for copyright protection, the specialist will communicate with the applicant. If the nation of first publication is the only basis for establishing that the work is eligible for copyright protection, registration may be refused. Examples: • The applicant states that the nation of first publication is “not known,” but states that the author is a citizen of France. The application will be accepted • The applicant states that the nation of

first publication is “not known” and states that the author is a citizen of Eritrea and a domiciliary of Ethiopia. The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant, because it is Chapter 600 | 53 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices unclear whether the work is eligible for copyright protection in the United States based on the information provided. • The U.S Copyright Office receives an online application which states that both the nation of first publication and the author’s citizenship and domicile are “not known.” The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant, because it is not clear whether the work is eligible for copyright protection in the United States based on the information provided. 613 Name of Author(s) This Section describes the U.S Copyright Office’s practices and procedures for identifying the author of a work. 613.1 Who Is the Author? To register a work with the U.S Copyright Office,

the applicant must identify the author or authors of the work submitted for registration, unless the work is anonymous or pseudonymous 17 U.SC § 409(2) Generally, the author is the person (or persons) who actually created the material that the applicant intends to register. See, eg, Community for Creative Non-Violence v. Reid, 490 US 730, 737 (1989) (“As a general rule, the author is the party who actually creates the work, that is, the person who translates an idea into a fixed, tangible expression entitled to copyright protection.”); Burrow-Giles Lithographic Co v Sarony, 111 US 53, 58 (1884) (describing the author as the person “to whom anything owes its origin; originator; maker; one who completes a work of science or literature.”) There is an exception to this rule if the work is a work made for hire. The author of a work made for hire is not the individual who actually created the work, but “the employer or other person for whom the work was prepared.” Community for

Creative Non-Violence, 490 U.S at 737; see also US Auto Parts Network, Inc v Parts Geek LLC, 692 F. 3d 1009, 1015 (9th Cir 2012) For a definition and discussion of works made for hire, see Chapter 500, Section 506. 613.2 When Authorship Is Determined A work is protected by copyright from the moment that it has been fixed in a tangible medium of expression. 17 USC § 102(a) As soon as a work is written down on paper, captured on film, recorded in an audio file, saved onto an electronic storage device, or set in any other tangible medium of expression, the copyright immediately becomes the property of the author or authors who created the work (or in the case of a work made for hire, the employer of the person who created the work or the party that commissioned the work). 17 USC § 201(a), (b) Thus, the author of a work is determined when the work is created. Examples: • Joseph Andrews wrote a biography titled Finding Henry Fielding. Andrews assigned the copyright in this work to

Oxbridge University but died before the work was published. Oxbridge subsequently submits an application to register the work, naming itself as the copyright claimant for the work. Andrews should be named as the author, even though he died before the application was filed. Chapter 600 | 54 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices • Friend Filter LLC submits an application for a computer program naming itself as the author of the work. In the Note to Copyright Office field the applicant explains that Jay Rothenberg is the president of the company, that he wrote the program in 2005, and that he assigned the copyright to Friend Filter when the company was formed in 2007. The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant and explain that Jay should be named as the author of the work, not the company. 613.3 Identifying the Authors Who Should Be Named in the Application When completing an application, the applicant should only provide the

name(s) of the author(s) who created the copyrightable material that the applicant intends to register. Likewise, the applicant should only identify the author(s) who created the copyrightable material that is owned by the individual or entity who is named in the application as the copyright claimant. The applicant should not provide the name of any person(s) who created material that is not owned by the copyright claimant or material that will not be submitted for registration. Likewise, there is no need to provide the name of any person(s) who created material that is de minimis or uncopyrightable. 613.4 Identifying the Authors of a Work Made for Hire A work of authorship is considered a work made for hire (i) if the work was “prepared by an employee within the scope of his or her employment,” or (ii) if the work was “specially ordered or commissioned.” 17 USC § 101 (definition of “work made for hire”) For guidance in identifying the author of a work made for hire, see

Chapter 500, Section 506. 613.5 Identifying the Authors of a Joint Work A joint work is a work “prepared by two or more authors with the intention that their contributions be merged into inseparable or interdependent parts of a unitary whole.” 17 USC § 101 If the work submitted for registration is a joint work the applicant should provide the name of each author who contributed copyrightable authorship to the work that the applicant intends to register. If the applicant fails to name all the joint authors who are named in the deposit copy(ies), the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant. Examples: • An application is submitted for a children’s book containing equal amounts of text and artwork on each page. The applicant names John Kinnadee as the author of “text” and George Sand as the author of “2-dimensional artwork.” A statement on the deposit copies reads “Text by John Kinnadee; Illustrations by George Sands” and the copyright notice

reads “ Kinnadee and Sands.” The copyright notice and the content of the work indicate that this may be a joint work. The registration specialist will register the claim • An application for a scientific article names Dr. Pankaj Patel, Dr Shilpa Shah, and Dr. Aziz Haniff as co-authors of the “text” A statement on the deposit Chapter 600 | 55 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices copy reads “By Drs. Patel, Shah, and Haniff,” which suggests that this may be a joint work. The registration specialist will register the claim • An application for a children’s book names Debbie Churchill as the author and claimant of the “text.” The copyright notice that appears in the deposit copies reads “Text Deborah Churchill; Illustrations Thomas Broadbent.” The copyright notice indicates that the text and the illustrations may be separately owned and the application clearly indicates that the applicant only intends to register the text. The

registration specialist will register the claim without communicating with the applicant. • An application for an essay names Darryl Oshey and Ruben Israel as co-authors of the work, but a statement on the deposit copy reads “By D. Oshey, R. Israel, and C Cabbage” The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant. The essay appears to be a joint work, but the applicant failed to identify all of the authors who are named on the deposit copy. For a general discussion of joint works, see Chapter 500, Section 505. 613.6 Identifying the Author of a Derivative Work A derivative work is a work that is “based upon one or more preexisting works.” 17 USC § 101 Typically, a derivative work is a new version of a preexisting work or an entirely new work that combines material from a preexisting work with an appreciable amount of new material. If the applicant intends to register a derivative work, the applicant should provide the name of the author or authors who created

the new or revised material submitted for registration. As a general rule, the applicant should not provide the name of the author(s) who created any preexisting material that appears in the derivative work. If the author of the preexisting material is named in the application, the registration specialist may register the claim if this information is provided in the Material Excluded field (in the case of an online application) or the Preexisting Material space (in the case of a paper application). Examples: • An online application for a sound recording names Molly Moe as the author of the work. The recording contains Molly’s performance of a song which was written by Samuel Brackett. The applicant excludes the music from the claim by completing the Limitation of Claim screen, but does not provide Samuel’s name in the Name of Author field. The registration specialist will register the claim. • An online application is submitted for a short story that contains extensive quotes

from William Shakespeare’s Macbeth. April Pearly is named as the sole author of the work. The applicant excludes the passages from Macbeth from the claim by completing the Limitation of Claim screen, but does not provide Shakespeare’s name in the Name of Author field. The registration specialist will register the claim. Chapter 600 | 56 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices • A paper application names George Milo as the author of a lithograph. The applicant checks the box indicating that the work is “a reproduction of a work of art,” but does not name the author of the preexisting work of art. The registration specialist will register the claim. • An online application for a dramatic work names Michael Kelly as the author of the work. The New Material Included field asserts a claim in “text” The Material Excluded field explains that the work is “based on letters and journal entries by Samuel Chase.” The registration specialist will

register the claim without communicating with the applicant. • Prudhoe Sellars wrote a novel, which was translated into Spanish by John Puff. The applicant submits an application naming Prudhoe as the author of the work. In the New Material Included field the applicant asserts a claim in “translation” and in the Material Excluded field he excludes “Original novel by Prudhoe Sellars” from the claim. The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant The applicant clearly intends to register the Spanish translation, rather than the original novel. Therefore, John should be listed in the Name of Author field, rather than Prudhoe. For a general discussion of derivative works, see Chapter 500, Section 507. For guidance in completing the Material Excluded/New Material Included fields in the online application and spaces 6(a) and 6(b) in the paper application, see Section 621. 613.7 Identifying the Author of a Compilation A compilation “is a work formed by the

collection and assembling of preexisting materials or of data that are selected, coordinated, or arranged in such a way that the resulting work as a whole constitutes an original work of authorship.” 17 USC § 101 A compilation may contain several forms of authorship: • The selection authorship involved in choosing the preexisting material or data that will be included in the compilation. • The coordination authorship involved in classifying, categorizing, ordering, or grouping the preexisting material or data. • The arrangement authorship involved in determining the placement or arrangement of the preexisting material or data within the compilation as a whole. If the applicant intends to register a compilation, the applicant should provide the name(s) of the author(s) who created the selection, coordination, and/or arrangement that the applicant intends to register. An applicant may register a compilation together with the material contained therein, provided that (i) the

material is copyrightable and (ii) the compilation and the material therein were created by the same author, and/or (iii) the copyright in the compilation and the material therein is owned by the copyright claimant. If so, the applicant should provide the name(s) of the author(s) who created the material that is included in the claim. Chapter 600 | 57 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices Examples: • Empirical Asset Management created the Copperhead 500, which is a financial index that tracks the performance of the copper industry. Empirical developed the criteria for determining whether a particular company should be included in the index and each year it updates the selection of companies that meet these parameters. Empirical should be named as the author of the selection of companies that are included in the Copperhead Index. • Finite Financial publishes The Final Word, which is a database that contains the closing price for securities that are

traded on various exchanges. Finite selects the securities that are included within the database, organizes them into various categories, and arranges the closing price for each security in manner that facilitates searching and sorting of the information. Finite should be named as the author of the selection and coordination of the securities, as well as the author of the arrangement of the closing prices. Finite should not be named as the author of the actual prices that are listed in The Final Word, because they are mere facts that are not eligible for copyright protection. 613.8 Identifying the Author of a Collective Work or a Contribution to a Collective Work The Copyright Act defines a collective work as “a work, such as a periodical issue, anthology, or encyclopedia, in which a number of contributions, constituting separate and independent works in themselves, are assembled into a collective whole.” 17 USC § 101 Collective works are a subset of compilations. Id (definition

of “compilation”) Therefore, for the collective whole to be registrable, the separate and independent works must be selected, coordinated, and/or arranged in such a way that “the resulting work as a whole constitutes an original work of authorship.” Id A contribution to a collective work is a separate and independent work that has been included within a collective work, such as an article that has been included within a periodical or an essay that has been included within an anthology. A collective work contains two different types of authorship: • The authorship in the collective work as a whole, which involves selecting, coordinating, and/ or arranging the various contributions within the collective work as a whole; and • The authorship in the separate and independent works that have been included in the collective work. An applicant may register a collective work together with the separate and independent works contained therein therein (i) if the copyright in the

collective work and the contributions are owned by the same claimant, and (ii) if the component works have not been previously published, previously registered, and are not in the public domain. If the applicant intends to register the copyright in the collective work as a whole, the applicant should identify the individual(s) or entity that selected, coordinated, and/or arranged the contributions and assembled them into a collective whole. If the applicant intends to register a collective work together with the contributions that appear in that work and if the contributions were created by a person(s) who transferred his or her Chapter 600 | 58 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices copyright to the claimant, the applicant should provide the name(s) of those author(s) in the Name of Author field/space. If the applicant intends to register a contribution that appeared in the collective work, but does not intend to register the collective work as a whole,

the applicant should identify the author of the contribution in the Name of Author field/space. In all cases, the applicant should provide the name(s) of the author(s) who created the material that is owned by the copyright claimant and for which registration is sought. The applicant should not include the name(s) of author(s) who created any material that is not owned by the copyright claimant or any material that the applicant does not intend to register. Examples: • Health Publishing Company submits an application for a publication containing hundreds of articles on remedies for common health problems. The company selected the articles that have been included in the publication and categorized them by subject matter. Half of the articles were written by the company’s employees. The others were written by freelance writers, but only two of those writers assigned the copyright in their contributions to the publisher. Health Publishing Company should be named as the author of the

collective work as a whole, and the author of the articles written by its employees The publisher also should provide the names of the two freelance authors who assigned their copyrights to the company. The remainder of the freelance authors should not be mentioned in the application, because the company does not own the copyright in their contributions. • Smart Curriculum, Inc. submits an application to register a package of materials for an educational seminar The package includes a motion picture, instructional text, and various printed materials containing charts depicting the company’s worldwide sales. The application names Smart Curriculum, Inc as the author of the collective work. In addition, it names Advanced Educational Productions, Inc. as the author of the motion picture and several individuals as the authors of the instructional text The transfer statement indicates that Smart Curriculum acquired the copyright in these elements by written agreement. The registration

specialist will register the claim, because it is clear that the applicant intends to register both the collective work as well as the contributions that have been identified in the application. • Santiago Thomas took a photograph which was published in the May 2012 edition of Modern Driver magazine. Santiago submits an application naming himself as the author and claimant of this photograph, but does not mention any of the other material that appears in the magazine. The registration specialist will register the claim without communicating with the applicant, because it is clear that the applicant intends to register his photograph but does not intend to register the collective work as a whole. For a discussion of the procedure for asserting a claim to copyright in a collective work and/or a contribution to a collective work, see Section 618.7 For a general discussion of collective works and contributions to collective works, see Chapter 500, Section 509. Chapter 600 | 59

revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 613.9 Completing the Application: Name of Author When completing an online application, the applicant should provide the full name of each author who created the copyrightable material that the applicant intends to register. If the copyrightable material was created by an individual, the applicant should provide the author’s first and last name on the Authors screen in the field marked Individual. If the copyrightable material was created by or on behalf of a corporation, company, organization, or other legal entity, the applicant should provide the name of the entity in the field marked Organization. When completing a Single Application the applicant should provide the author’s name on the screen marked Author. When completing a paper application, the applicant should enter the author’s full name on space 2(a) of the application in the space marked Name of Author. If the work was created by two or more

authors, the applicant may provide the names of up to three authors on spaces 2(a), 2(b), and 2(c) of the application (or the names of up to two authors in the case of an application submitted on Form VA). The applicant may add the names of additional authors by completing and submitting as many continua­tion sheets as necessary. As a general rule, the applicant should provide the name of the actual individual or entity that created the material that the applicant intends to register. However, there are three exceptions to this rule: • If the work is a work made for hire, the applicant should list the name of the employer or the name of the party that ordered or commissioned the work (rather than the name of the individual or entity that actually created the work). For a definition and discussion of works made for hire, see Chapter 500, Section 506. • If the work is an anonymous work, the applicant is not required to provide the author’s full name in the application. Instead,

the applicant may state “Anonymous” in the Name of Author field/space or may leave that portion of the application blank, provided that the applicant checks the box marked Anonymous. For a definition and discussion of anonymous works, see Section 615.1 • If the work is a pseudonymous work, the applicant is not required to provide the author’s full name in the application. Instead, the applicant may insert the author’s pseudonym in the Name of Author field/space, provided that the applicant checks the box marked Pseudonymous. For a definition and discussion of pseudonymous works, see Section 6152 613.10 Examination Guidelines: Name of Author This Section discusses the U.S Copyright Office’s practices and procedures for examining the Name of Author field/space. For a discussion of the Office’s practices and procedures for examining the Name of Author field/ space in an application to register a work made for hire, an anonymous work, or a pseudonymous work, see Sections

614.2, 6151 and 6152 Chapter 600 | 60 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 613.10(A) Name of Author Unclear The author(s) of the copyrightable material that the applicant intends to register should be clearly identified in the application. As a general rule, the registration specialist will accept the information contained in the application unless it is contradicted by the information found elsewhere in the registration materials or information that is known to the U.S Copyright Office The specialist will communicate with the applicant if it is unclear whether the person named in the application is the author of the work that has been submitted for registration. For example, the specialist may communicate if the applicant indicates that the work was created by a project manager, project coordinator, project head, financier, underwriter, researcher, reviewer, commentator, printer, artistic consultant, or any other term that suggests that the person

named in the application may not be the actual author of the work. For the same reason, the specialist may communicate if the applicant indicates that the person named in the application merely reviewed, or transcribed the work, or merely suggested revisions or edits without contributing copyrightable authorship. 613.10(B) Name of Author: Variances As a general rule, the person(s) named in the application as the author(s) of the work should be consistent with the information that appears on the deposit copy(ies) or elsewhere in the registration materials. Ordinarily, the registration specialist will give greater weight to the information that appears in the application If appropriate, the registration specialist may add an annotation to the registration record, or a note to the online public record to clarify the information given in the application, or to add information that appears in the deposit copy(ies) or elsewhere in the registration materials. The registration specialist may

communicate with the applicant if the information provided in the application is substantially inconsistent with the information that appears on the deposit copy(ies) or elsewhere in the registration materials. 613.10(B)(1) 613.10(B)(1)(a) Variances Between the Name Provided in the Application and the Name Provided in the Deposit Copy(ies) Minor Variances If there is a minor variance between the name listed in the application and the name found on the deposit copy(ies), and if both names clearly refer to the same person, the registration specialist may register the claim without communicating with the applicant and without annotating the certificate of registration. The name that appears on the deposit copy(ies) may be added to the online public record if it is likely that a person searching the U.S Copyright Office’s records may use that name to locate the work. Examples: • An application for a painting names “Margaret Duncan” as the author, but the name that appears on

the canvas is “Peggy Duncan.” The registration specialist will register the claim without communicating with the applicant, and may add the name that appears on the deposit to the online public record. Chapter 600 | 61 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices • Liliana Sophia Monroe submits an application to register a poem. Liliana names herself as the author, but the deposit copy states that the work was “written by Lily Monroe.” The registration specialist will register the claim without communicating with the applicant, and may add the name that appears on the deposit to the online public record. • John Smith submits an application to register a mash-up video and names himself as the author, but the deposit copy states that the work was “produced by Johnny Smythe.” The registration specialist will register the claim without communicating with the applicant, and may add the name that appears on the deposit to the online public record.

• Bob Walters submits an application to register a song. Bob names himself as the author, but the deposit copy states that the work is “a Buck Walters ballad.” The registration specialist will register the claim because Buck Walters appears to be the author’s nickname. In addition, the specialist may add the name that appears on the copy to the online public record. 613.10(B)(1)(b) Significant Variances If there is a significant variance between the name given in the application and the name given on the deposit copy(ies), the registration specialist may register the claim if it is clear that both names refer to the same person. The name that appears on the deposit copy(ies) may be added to the online public record, and it may be added to the registration record with an annotation. Examples: • Sally Burnham-Jones submits an application to register an app. The deposit copy names “Sally Jones” as the author. The application names “Sally Burnham” as the author and

claimant, and the application is certified by “Sally Burnham-Jones.” The registration specialist will register the claim, because Sally Jones appears to be the author’s married name. The specialist may add an annotation to the registration record, such as: “Regarding author information: name appears on copy as Sally Jones.” The specialist also may add that name to the online public record. • The U.S Copyright Office receives an application to register a song The application names Lawrence Mitchell, Janet Carlyle, and Robert Thomas as the authors of the music and lyrics. The liner notes state that the authors of the work are Yard Dog, Metal Head, and The Enforcer. The registration specialist will register the claim. The names that appear on the deposit copy may be added to the online public record, because they appear to be pseudonyms for the individuals named in the application. • Jason Brown submits an application to register a song on Form PA. The application names

Jason Brown as the author of “lyrics” and Cathy Unger as the author of “music.” The deposit copy states “written by the Marvels” The registration specialist will register the claim because “the Marvels” appears to be the name of Jason and Cathy’s performing group. The name that appears on the deposit copy may be added to the online public record. Chapter 600 | 62 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices If there is a significant variance between the name listed in the application and the name given on the deposit copy(ies), and if it is unclear whether the names given in the application and the deposit copy(ies) refer to the same person, the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant. If the applicant confirms that the name in the application is incorrect, the specialist will add the correct name to the registration record. If the applicant states that the name given in the application is correct, the specialist will

register the claim. In addition, the specialist will add the name that appears on the deposit copy(ies) to the online public record, and will place a note in the registration record indicating that there is correspondence in the file. Examples: • The Office receives an online application for an instrumental track titled “Zippy Beat.” The application names Jason Herbert and Cynthia Schmidt as the authors of the work. The file name for the deposit copy reads, “Zippybeat2012byJasonandDavidmp3” The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant, because there is a significant variance between the names entered in the application and the names from the deposit copy. • An application for a musical work names Randy Potemkin as the author, but the deposit copy states “music by Mary Jones.” The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant. The applicant confirms that the work was created by Mary (rather than Randy). The specialist will replace the

name given in the application with the name given on the deposit. • An application for an article names Randolph Smith and Jason McCombs as co-authors of the work and the pseudonymous box is checked “no.” The deposit copy states that the work was “written by Randolph Smith and George Bilford.” The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant The applicant confirms that the work was created by Randolph, Jason, and George. The specialist will add George’s name to the registration record and register the claim. The specialist will add a note to the registration record indicating that the file contains correspondence. 613.10(B)(2) Variance Between the Number of Authors Named in the Application and the Number of Authors Named in the Deposit Copy(ies) If the authors named in the application are more numerous than the authors named in the deposit copy(ies), the registration specialist may register the claim if the information specified on the deposit copy(ies)

appears to be incomplete, provided that the application has been certified by or on behalf of one of the authors who is named in both the application and the deposit copy(ies). If the application has been certified by an author who is named in the application but not the deposit copy(ies), the specialist will communicate with the applicant. Examples: • Melissa Monet submits an application to register a song. The application names Melissa Monet and Robert Dearborn as the author of “music and lyrics,” but a statement on the deposit copy reads, “music and lyrics by Melissa Monet.” The registration specialist may register the claim if he or she determines that the song was created by Melissa and Robert and that the statement on the deposit copy is incomplete. Chapter 600 | 63 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices • Thomas Truxton submits an application to register the manuscript for a children’s book. The application lists Tom Truxton and

Bobbie Park as the authors of the “text” and Cindy Cove as the author of the “artwork” A statement on the cover of the manuscript reads, “Story by Tom Truxton; Illustrations by Cindy Cove.” The registration specialist may register the claim if he or she determines that the work was created by Tom, Bobbie, and Cindy, and that the statement on the cover of the manuscript is incomplete. • An application for a multimedia work names Reba McKenzie, Suzie Jones, and Billy Jones as the co-authors of the work. Billy signed the certification A statement on the deposit copy reads “By Reba McKenzie and Suzie Jones.” Because Billy’s name does not appear on the deposit, the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant to determine if Billy is, in fact, an author of this work. If the authors named in the deposit copy(ies) outnumber the authors named in the application and if it is clear that the unnamed authors created the copyrightable material that the applicant

intends to register, the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant. Examples: • An application is submitted for a book that contains text and photographs. The application names John Hously as the author of the “text.” A statement on the deposit copies reads “Written by John Hously; Photographs by Larry Fogley.” The registration specialist will register the claim without communicating with the applicant The applicant asserted a claim in the text (rather than the photographs), the author of the text is named in the application, and there is no conflict between the name that appears in the application and the name that appears in the deposit copies. • An application for a song titled “Running Up the Down Escalator” names Mark Richards and David Anderson as the authors of the work. The liner notes state that the song was written by Mark Richards, David Anderson, and Stephen Davis. In the Note to Copyright Office field the applicant confirms that Mark and

David are the sole authors of this work and that the statement on the deposit copy is incorrect. The specialist will register the claim, and will add a note to the registration record indicating that there is correspondence in the file. • Catherine Jones submits an online application for a screenplay titled Systemic Collapse. The application names Catherine as the author for the “text,” but the screenplay states “Systemic Collapse by Catherine Jones and Howard Finkelman.” The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant to determine whether Howard’s name should be added to the application as a co-author of the text. • An application is submitted for a CD naming Cathy Gardner as the author of music, lyrics, and artwork. However, the deposit copy names Cathy as the author of the music and lyrics and James Holmes as the author of the artwork. The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant to determine if James should be added to the

application as the author of the artwork. Chapter 600 | 64 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 613.10(C) Name of Author Not Required As discussed in Section 613.3 the applicant should not provide the name of any person who created material that is not owned by the copyright claimant or material that the applicant does not intend to register. Likewise, the applicant should not provide the name of any person who created material that is de minimis or uncopyrightable. As a general rule, if the applicant fails to mention an author who is named in the deposit copy(ies) or elsewhere in the registration materials, the registration specialist will not communicate with the applicant if it is clear that the claimant does not own the copyright in that author’s contribution or if it is clear that the applicant does not intend to register that contribution. In making this determination, the specialist may consider the title of the work, the copyright notice,

or any other information given in the deposit copy(ies) or elsewhere in the registration materials. If appropriate, the registration specialist may add an annotation to the registration record to clarify the information given in the application or to add information that appears in the deposit copy(ies) or elsewhere in the registration materials. Examples: • Technology Law Guides, Inc. submits an application to register a textbook titled Software and Internet Law (Second Edition). The application names Maria Scott as the author of “text” A statement on the title page reads, “Second Edition Editor in Chief: Maria Scott, Contributing Editors Terry Johnson, Belinda Boswell, et al.” The registration specialist will register the claim if he or she determines that the applicant only intends to register the new material that appears in the second edition, that Maria is the author of the new material, and that Terry and Belinda did not contribute copyrightable authorship to the

second edition. • An application is submitted for a 500 page biography of Charles de Gaul. The deposit copies name Pierre Lafayette as the author of the work and Laurent Etienne as the author of the foreword that appears at the beginning of the book. The applicant names Pierre as the author of “text,” but does not mention the author of the foreword The registration specialist will register the claim because it appears that the applicant only intends to register the text of the biography, rather than the text of the foreword. • An application names Terrawn Dooley and Jessica Brown as co-authors of a travel brochure. The copy contains text and artwork, along with the statement “Written by T Dooley and J Brown Artwork by Kyle Ritz” The registration specialist will register the claim because the text and the artwork appear to be separately owned and the applicant appears to be asserting a claim in the text, but not the artwork. To clarify the scope of the claim, the

specialist may add an annotation, such as: “Regarding author information: statements on deposit copy indicate text by Terrawn Dooley and Jessica Brown.” If the applicant fails to mention an author who is named in the deposit copy(ies) or elsewhere in the registration materials, the registration specialist will not communicate with the applicant if the author’s contribution appears to be de minimis or uncopyrightable. Chapter 600 | 65 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices Examples: • Darryl Cooper submits an application for a screenplay titled Better Safe Than Sorry. Both the application and the deposit copy name Darryl as the author of the work. In the Note to Copyright Office field, the applicant explains that his friend Tom Klein came up with the title for the work. Because titles are uncopyrightable and because the applicant did not claim the title in the application, the registration specialist will register the claim without communicating

with the applicant. • An application is submitted for a photograph that contains an image of a fashion model together with the phrase “Not to be outdone.” The application names Jordan Johnson as the author of the photograph. The deposit copy names Jordan as the author of the “photograph” and Marci Adams as the author of the “text.” Because the text is a short phrase that is uncopyrightable and because that applicant did not claim the text in the application, the registration specialist will register the claim without communicating with the applicant. 613.10(D) Name of Author Unknown The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant if the applicant states that the author of the work is “unknown,” “not known,” or the like, because this type of statement suggests that the applicant and/or the claimant may not be entitled to register the work. 613.10(E) Name of the Author Omitted: Works Created by a Single Author If the work was created by a single

author, the applicant should identify the author of that work (unless the applicant has checked the box indicating that the work is an anonymous or pseudonymous work). For guidance in identifying the author of the work and completing the fields for an anonymous or pseudonymous work, see Sections 613.9, 6151(B) and 6152(B) If the applicant fails to identify the author in an online application, the application will not be accepted by the electronic registration system. If the applicant fails to identify the author in a paper application, the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant. 613.10(F) Name of an Author Omitted: Works Created by Large Numbers of Authors If the work was created by a large number of authors, the applicant is encouraged to provide the name of each author in the application where it is feasible. Likewise, if the work contains or consists of separate and independent works created by a large number of authors and if the claimant owns the copyright

in each of those contributions, the applicant is encouraged to identify the author of each contribution. The Office will accept an application that provides representative names and identifies the number of additional authors included in the claim (e.g, “John Jones, Will Smith, Fred Johnson, and thirty-five other contributors”). However, the registration specialist will not add missing names Chapter 600 | 66 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices to the application, even if the authors’ contributions are clearly specified in the deposit copy(ies) or elsewhere in the registration materials. note: One district court has concluded that if the applicant does not identify each author in the application, the registration does not cover any portion of the work that was created by an unnamed author. See Muench Photography, Inc v Houghton Mifflin Harcourt Publishing Co, 712 F Supp. 2d 84, 94-95 (SDNY 2010), abrogated on other grounds by Reed Elsevier, Inc

v Muchnick, 559 U.S 154, 157 (2010); The Fourth and Ninth Circuits have reached the opposite conclusion, holding that a registration for a collective work may cover the constituent elements of that work even if the authors of those elements are not specified in the registration. See Alaska Stock, LLC v Houghton Mifflin Harcourt Publishing Co, 747 F3d 673, 685 (9th Cir 2014); Bean v Pearson Education, Inc, 2014 U.S App LEXIS 19869, at *2 (9th Cir. Oct 10, 2014); Bean v Houghton Mifflin Harcourt Publishing Co., 2014 US App LEXIS 19858, at *2 (9th Cir. Oct 10, 2014); Metropolitan Regional Information Systems Inc. v American Home Realty Network, LLC, 722 F3d 591, 599-600 (4th Cir 2013); Craigslist Inc. v 3Taps Inc, 2013 US Dist LEXIS 61837, at *34 (N.D Cal Apr 30, 2013) 614 614.1 Works Made for Hire Completing the Application: Works Made for Hire This Section provides guidance on completing an application to register a work made for hire. For a definition of works made for hire, see

Chapter 500, Section 506. For guidance in determining whether a particular work qualifies as a work made for hire, see Chapter 500, Section 5064 A work made for hire may be registered with an online application or with a paper application submitted on Forms TX, VA, PA, SR, or SE. The Single Application may not be used to register a work made for hire. For a discussion of the Single Application, see Chapter 1400, Section 1402.5 614.1(A) Year of Completion and Date of Publication The term for a work made for hire is based on the year that the work was created or the date that the work was published. Therefore, the applicant must provide this information when completing an online application or a paper application For guidance on completing this portion of the application, see Sections 611 and 612. 614.1(B) Identifying the Author of a Work Made for Hire When completing an application the employer or the party that ordered or commissioned the work should be named as the author (rather

than the individual who actually created the work). In other words, if the work was created by an employee acting within the scope of his or her employment, the employer should be identified as the author (not the employee). If the work was specially ordered or commissioned as a work made for hire, the person or organization that Chapter 600 | 67 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices ordered or commissioned the work should be listed as the author (rather than the individual who actually created the work). See 17 USC § 201(b) If the employer or the party who ordered or commissioned the work is an individual, the applicant should enter that individual’s first and last name in the field marked Individual Author. If the employer or the party that ordered or commissioned the work is an organization, the applicant should provide the full name of that organization in the field marked Organization Name. In both cases, the applicant should choose “yes” in

response to the question “Is this author’s contribution a work made for hire?” note: If an organization is named as the author of the work, the box marked “Is this author’s contribution a work made for hire?” must be checked “yes.” If the applicant provides the name of an organization and checks the “no” box, the application will not be accepted by the electronic registration system. When completing a paper application, the applicant should list the name of the employer or the party that ordered or commissioned the work on line 2(a) of the application in the space marked Name of Author. Additionally, the applicant should choose “yes” in response to the question “Is this author’s contribution a work made for hire?” 614.1(C) Identifying the Citizenship and / or Domicile of the Author If the work was created by an employee acting within the scope of his or her employment and if the employer is an individual, the applicant should identify the employer’s

country of citizenship and domicile (rather than the employee’s citizenship or domicile). Likewise, if the work was specially ordered or commissioned as a work made for hire and if the hiring party is an individual, the applicant should provide citizenship and domicile information for the party that ordered or commissioned the work (rather than the individual who actually created the work). By contrast, if the work was created for a company, organization, or other legal entity, the applicant should identify the country where the entity is domiciled, but need not provide a country of citizenship for that entity. When completing an online application, the applicant should provide this information by selecting one of the countries listed in the drop down menus that appear under the headings Citizenship and/or Domicile. When completing a paper application the applicant should insert this information on space 2. If the employer or the party that ordered or commissioned the work is a

citizen of or domiciled in more than one country, the applicant may specify any of the countries that establish that the work is eligible for copyright protection under U.S copyright law For additional guidance on completing this portion of the application, see Section 617 614.1(D) Year of Birth and Death Not Required for Works Made for Hire When completing an online or paper application, the applicant will be asked to identify the year that the author was born and the year that the author died. If the work is a work made for hire, this portion of the application should be left blank, even if the author is an individual, rather than a company or organization. The year of the author’s birth and death is not required in this situation, because the term of copyright for a work made for hire is based on the year the work was created or the year the work was published, rather than the author’s year of death. 17 USC § 302(c) Chapter 600 | 68 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u

m : Examination Practices 614.1(E) Registering a Work Made for Hire as an Anonymous or Pseudonymous Work A work is considered an “anonymous work” if “no natural person is identified as author” on the copies or phonorecords of the work. 17 USC § 101 A work is considered a “pseudonymous work” if “the author is identified under a fictitious name” on the copies or phonorecords of the work. Id If the author’s name appears on the copies or phonorecords, the work is not an anonymous or pseudonymous work, even if the author does not wish to reveal his or her identity in the registration record. The statute implies that anonymous works and pseudonymous works are limited to works created by natural persons. Compare id (definitions of “anonymous” and “pseudonymous” works) with 17 U.SC § 302(c) (indicating that the term for anonymous and pseudonymous works may be based on the life of the author if his or her identity is revealed before the copyright expires). If the

applicant checks the box indicating that the work is a work made for hire and checks the box marked Anonymous or Pseudonymous and/or leaves the Name of Author field/space blank, the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant. The specialist will explain that a work made for hire cannot be registered as an anonymous or pseudonymous work and that the author’s full name should be provided in the registration record. Examples: • An application is submitted for a “tell all” book about a famous celebrity. Both the application and the deposit copies state that the author of this work is “Anonymous.” The Tattletale Press, LLC is named as the copyright claimant The work made for hire box is checked “yes” and no transfer statement has been provided. The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant The specialist will explain that if the work is actually a work made for hire it cannot be registered as an anonymous work. In this case, the specialist

will ask authorization to give the author’s full name in the registration record and answer “no” to the anonymous question. By contrast, if the work made for hire question was answered “yes” by mistake and the work truly is anonymous (i.e, not a work made for hire and no natural person is named on the deposit copies), then the specialist will request authorization to answer “no” to the work made for hire question, and to add a transfer statement to the registration record. • An online application is submitted for a photograph and names Global Icons as the author and claimant for the work. The pseudonymous question is answered “yes.” In the Pseudonym field, the applicant entered the name “Photograph My World” The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant to explain that a work authored by a company or other legal entity cannot be registered as pseudonymous. The specialist will request authorization to remove all reference to the work being

pseudonymous If it is determined that the company uses both names (Global Icons and Photograph My World), the specialist also may request that the relationship between the names be identified in the registration record using terms such as: “Global Icons doing business as Photograph My World” or “Global Icons also known as Photograph My World.” For a general discussion of anonymous and pseudonymous works, see Section 615. Chapter 600 | 69 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 614.1(F) Identifying the Claimant for a Work Made for Hire When completing an online application or paper application, the applicant will be asked to identify the full name and address of the claimant. For purposes of copyright registration, the claimant for a work made for hire is either the author of the work (i.e, employer or the party that ordered or commissioned the work) or a person or organization that obtained ownership of all the exclusive rights under copyright

act by legal or written transfer. 37 CFR § 2023(a) (3). If the person(s) or organization(s) named in the application as the author and copyright claimant are not the same, the applicant should provide a brief statement explaining how the claimant obtained ownership of the copyright. 17 USC § 409(5) For guidance on completing this portion of the application, see Sections 619 and 620. 614.2 Examination Guidelines: Works Made for Hire This Section discusses the U.S Copyright Office’s practices and procedures for examining the work made for hire field/space in an online application or paper application. note: The work made for hire field does not appear in the Single Application. 614.2(A) Identifying the Work as a Work Made for Hire If the work described in the application is a work made for hire, the box marked “Is this author’s contribution a work made for hire?” should be checked “yes.” If the applicant indicates that the work is a work made for hire, and it appears

the statutory definition has been met, the registration specialist generally will accept the applicant’s assertion. If the applicant checks the box marked “yes,” but the application, deposit copy(ies), or other registration materials indicate that the work does not meet the statutory definition for a work made for hire, the registration specialist may communicate with the applicant. Likewise, if the work appears to be a work made for hire the specialist may communicate with the applicant if the applicant checks the box marked “no” or fails to complete this portion of the application. 614.2(B) 614.2(B)(1) Identifying the Author of a Work Made for Hire Was the Work Created by an Employee Acting within the Scope of His or Her Duties? As discussed in Chapter 500, Section 506.4, the applicantnot the US Copyright Officemust determine whether a work meets the statutory definition of a work made for hire. The registration specialist generally will accept the applicant’s assertion

regarding whether the work is a work made for hire, unless there is evidence to the contrary in the registration materials. As a general rule, the registration specialist will not ask the applicant to confirm that the work was created by an employee acting within the scope of his or her employment. Chapter 600 | 70 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices Examples: • An application is submitted for a photograph naming “Briana Johnson, photographer for Sonic Company” as the author of the work. The work made for hire boxes are blank and Sonic Company has been named as the claimant. The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant. If Briana is an employee of Sonic Company, the company should be named as the author, the work made for hire box should be checked “yes,” and Briana’s name should be removed from the application. If Briana is not an employee, the applicant should provide a transfer statement explaining how the company

obtained the copyright in this work. • An application names Hopkins Financial Services LLP as the author and copyright claimant for a short story. The work made for hire box is checked “yes” and the application is signed “Roland Hopkins III, President & CEO, Hopkins Financial Services.” A statement on the deposit copies reads “By Roland Hopkins III.” The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant if it seems unlikely that Roland created this work as part of his regular duties and responsibilities for this company. 614.2(B)(2) Was the Work Specially Ordered or Commissioned as a Work Made for Hire? If the applicant checks the work made for hire box or affirmatively states that the work was specially ordered or commissioned, the registration specialist will accept that assertion, unless there is evidence to the contrary in the registration materials. Ordinarily, the specialist will not ask the applicant to verify that there is a signed written

agreement between the parties designating the work as a work made for hire or to submit a copy of that agreement. However, the application may be questioned if the work does not appear to fall within one or more of the nine categories of works listed in the statutory definition of works made for hire. Examples: • An application for a travel guide names Mary Rimbaud as the author of the text and the work made for hire question is answered “no.” Jason Berta is listed as author of the illustrations and the work made for hire question is answered “yes.” The copyright notice reads “Text and Illustrations 2011 Mary Rimbaud” The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant. The copyright notice indicates that this may not be a joint work and that Mary may have hired or commissioned Jason to create the illustrations. If so, Mary should be named as the author of both the text and illustrations, rather than Jason. • Katherine Chen submits an application to

register a song. Katherine is named as the author and the work made for hire box has been checked “yes.” The transfer statement reads “I paid my sister Alice to write this song for me, but we don’t have a contract or anything since she’s a member of the family.” The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant. The work does not appear to satisfy the first part of the statutory definition, because it is unlikely that Alice is Katherine’s employee. The work does not satisfy the second part of the definition, because a song is not one of the nine categories of works that may be specially ordered or commissioned. For more information about works made for hire see Chapter 500, Section 506.1 Chapter 600 | 71 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 614.2(B)(3) Naming the Employee or the Individual Who Actually Created the Work as the Author of a Work Made for Hire If the work is a work made for hire, the employer or the party that

ordered or commissioned the work should be named as the author. In other words, if the work made for hire was created by an employee acting within the scope of his or her employment, the employer should be identified as the author of the work, not the employee. Similarly, if the work made for hire was specially ordered or commissioned, the party that ordered or commissioned the work should be identified as the author of the work, not the individual who actually created the work. If it appears that the applicant has named an employee as the author of a work made for hire, the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant. Examples: • An application for an advertising brochure names Susanne Taylor as the author of “text and photographs.” The work made for hire question is answered “yes.” Argonne, Inc is named as copyright claimant and the transfer statement reads “Susanne Taylor is Owner, President, and CEO of Argonne, Inc” The brochure describes the

company’s services and the copyright notice reads “ 2012 Argonne, Inc.” The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant. The specialist will explain that senior officers or owners of organizations may be considered employees if they prepared a work while acting within the scope of their duties. If the applicant confirms that Susanne created the work on behalf of Argonne, Inc., the company should be named as the author, the work made for hire box should be checked “yes,” and Susanne’s name should be removed from the application. • An application is submitted for a screenplay, naming a screenwriter as the author and a production company as the copyright claimant. The work made for hire question has not been answered and no transfer statement has been provided. The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant to determine whether the production company hired the screenwriter to create this screenplay as a work made for hire or acquired

copyright in this work through a written agreement with the screenwriter. • An application names Jeremy Roe as author of “text, photographs.” The work made for hire question is answered “no.” Berger & Berger, LLC is named as claimant and the transfer statement reads “for hire agreement.” The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant The application indicates that Berger & Berger hired Jeremy to create this work as a work made for hire. Therefore, the company should be listed as the author, the work made for hire question should be answered “yes,” and Jeremy’s name should be removed from the application. The U.S Copyright Office will accept an application that names the individual who actually created a work made for hire, provided that the employer or the party that ordered or commissioned the work is identified as the author and the relationship between the employer and the employee, or the relationship between the person or organization

that ordered or commissioned the work and the individual who actually created the work, is clearly indicated. Chapter 600 | 72 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices Example: • Lawrence Jeffries is a staff copywriter for Freemont Enterprises, Inc. Lawrence prepared a brochure that describes the company’s newest product. The brochure is a work made for hire, because Jeffries prepared this work within the scope of his employment. Freemont Enterprises, Inc should be named as the author of the work and the work made for hire box should be checked “yes.” Although there is no need to provide Lawrence’s name, the application will be accepted if it identifies the author as “Freemont Enterprises, Inc. employer of Lawrence Jeffries.” 614.2(B)(4) Volunteer Created Work Made for Hire A work created by an individual volunteer(s) may or may not be considered a work made for hire, depending on the facts and circumstances of the case. If the application

names an organization or company as the author, and if the work made for hire question has been answered “yes,” the U.S Copyright Office will not communicate with the applicant if it appears that the work was created by a volunteer. Example: • An application names Faith Church as the author of a sound recording and the work made for hire box is checked “yes.” In the Note to Copyright Office field, the applicant states that the recording was created by the members of the church choir. The registration specialist will register the claim without communicating with the applicant. 614.2(B)(5) Organization Named as the Author of a Work Made for Hire If a legal entity, such as a corporation, limited liability company, limited partnership, limited liability partnership, foundation, university, or trust is named as the author of the work, the registration specialist will assume that the work is a work made for hire. This is due to the fact that an organization may be named as an

author only if the work was created by the employees of that organization or if the organization specially ordered or commissioned the work as a work made for hire. In this situation the box marked “Is this author’s contribution a work made for hire?” should be checked “yes.” The application will be questioned if the box is checked “no” Examples: Application acceptable • An online application names Legal Beagle Publishing, Inc. as author of “revisions and additional text” The work made for hire question is answered “yes” The application will be accepted. • A paper application names The University of Perth-Amboy as author. The work made for hire question should be checked “yes,” but this portion of the application has been left blank. The registration specialist will register the claim on the assumption that the work was created for the University as a work made for hire. • An application is submitted for a play. The deposit copy identifies Maryam

Zamindar as the author of the work, but the application names Maryam LLC as the author and claimant. The work made for hire field has been checked Chapter 600 | 73 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices “yes,” and Maryam certifies the application as an authorized representative of Maryam LLC. The registration specialist will register the claim on the assumption that Maryam is an employee of Maryam LLC Examples: Application questioned • The application names the author as First Baptist Church and the work made for hire question is answered “no.” The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant • The application names the author as Art Corp. and the work made for hire question is answered “no.” The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant. Likewise, the application would be questioned if the work made for hire question is answered “no” and the application identified the author as Art Inc., Art LLC,

Art LLP, Art SA, Art plc, Art AG, Art GmbH, or the like 614.2(B)(6) Individual Named as Author of a Work Made for Hire When an applicant names an individual as the author (rather than a legal entity) and answers the work made for hire question “yes,” the registration specialist may communicate with the applicant if it appears unlikely that the work is a work made for hire, based on the Office’s experience or based on the information set forth in the deposit copy(ies) or elsewhere in the registration materials. If the information in the registration materials suggests that the individual is the employer of another person, the specialist will assume that the work was created by the individual’s employee(s) while acting within the scope of their employment. If it appears that the individual may have commissioned the work, the specialist will assume that the work was specially ordered or commissioned by that individual, provided that the work falls within one or more of the nine

categories of works listed in the statutory definition of works made for hire. Examples: Application acceptable • An application for a travel book containing text and illustrations names Roland Fingers as the author of the “text” and the work made for hire question is not answered. The application also names Roland as author of “illustrations” with the work made for hire question answered “yes.” Roland Fingers is listed in the deposit copy as the author of the text, but Jason Foote is named as the author of the illustrations. The registration specialist will register the claim without communicating with the applicant. The illustrations are considered a supplementary work, which is one of the nine categories of works that may be specially ordered or commissioned. Therefore, the specialist will assume that Roland and Jason signed a written agreement specifically stating that Jason would create the illustrations for Roland as a work made for hire. • An application is

submitted along with a published compact disc. The applicant names the performing artist Tammy Conklin as the author of the sound recordings that appear on the CD. The applicant also names Tammy as the author of the photograph that appears on the cover with the work made for hire box checked “yes.” The photograph appears to be a photo of the performing artist, and a statement on the CD identifies Donald Blake as the author of the photograph. The photograph could be considered a supplementary work, Chapter 600 | 74 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices which is one of the nine categories of works that may be specially ordered or commissioned. Therefore, the registration specialist will assume that Tammy and Donald signed a written agreement specifically stating that Donald would take the photograph as a work made for hire. The registration specialist will register the claim with an annotation, such as “basis for registration: unit of publication

containing collective work and other component elements.” • An application for a documentary names Tim Berger as the sole author of the work. The work made for hire question is answered “yes” The credits at the end of the documentary name Tim as the sole producer and director of the work, along with other individuals who apparently contributed camerawork, writing, animation, and other forms of authorship. The registration specialist will register the claim without communicating with the applicant. Because a work created as part of a motion picture is one of the nine categories of works that may be specially ordered or commissioned, the specialist will assume that Tim signed a written agreement with the other individuals specifying that their contributions would be considered a work made for hire. Examples: Application questioned • Elsa Frankfurter is named as the author of an architectural work with the work made for hire box checked “yes.” The deposit copy contains a

copyright notice stating “ 2011 Achtung GmbH.” Because a corporation is named in the copyright notice, the registration specialist may ask the applicant if Elsa created this work as an employee of Achtung GmbH. If so, the specialist will ask for permission to remove Elsa’s name from the application and to add the corporation’s name as the author and claimant. • An application is submitted for a comic book. Josh Willoughby is named as the sole author of the work and the work made for hire box is checked “yes.” The copy names Josh as the author of the “text” and Harley Quince as the author of the “illustrations.” The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant. It appears that Josh hired Harley to create the illustrations pursuant to a work made for hire agreement, and that Josh is the sole author of the text. If that is the case, Josh should be named on the application as both the author of the text (work made for hire answered “no”) and the

author of the illustrations (work made for hire answered “yes”). For more information on works made for hire see Chapter 500, Section 506.1 614.2(B)(7) Individual and Incorporated Organization Named Together as the Authors of a Work Made for Hire If an individual and an incorporated entity (e.g, a corporation, a professional corporation, a limited liability company, etc.) are named together as the authors of the work, the registration specialist will conclude that the organization is a separate legal entity, rather than an assumed name or trade name for the individual (regardless of how the work made for hire question is answered). As a general rule, the specialist will communicate with the applicant when both an individual and an incorporated entity are named together in the Name of Author field/space, because the identity of the author is unclear. Likewise, the specialist generally will communicate if the appli- Chapter 600 | 75 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m :

Examination Practices cation indicates that an individual is “doing business as” or “trading as” a corporation. Ordinarily, the specialist will not communicate if it is clear from the registration materials as a whole that the incorporated entity is the author and that the relationship between the individual and the entity is merely descriptive. Example: Application acceptable • An application names the author as “Faux-Mink, Inc., employer for hire of Abner Hess.” The work made for hire question is not answered The registration specialist may register the claim without communicating with the applicant The work appears to be a work made for hire, Faux-Mink, Inc appears to be the author, and the reference to Abner Hess is merely descriptive. Examples: Application questioned • An application for a computer program names “Han Sung (dba GoferBroke, LLC)” as the author. The work made for hire box is not checked The deposit copy contains redacted source code and the

Note to Copyright Office states that the code contains trade secrets belonging to GoferBroke LLC. The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant to determine whether Han Sung prepared this work for GoferBroke as a work made for hire. If so, GoferBroke should be listed as the author of the work and the work made for hire box should be checked “yes.” • Aristide Micheals submits an application for a webinar. The application names “Aristide of HTCommunication LLP” as the author and the certification indicates that Aristide is the president of this company. The videos contain a copyright notice in the name of HTCommunications LLP. The registration specialist will ask Aristide to clarify whether he prepared these works for HTCommunications as a work made for hire. If so, the company should be listed as the author of the work and the work made for hire box should be checked “yes.” • An application names the author as “Richard Smith/Smith Publishing

Company, Inc.,” and the work made for hire question has not been answered The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant to clarify whether the work is a work made for hire and whether the author is Richard Smith or Smith Publishing Company, Inc. 614.2(B)(8) Individual and Unincorporated Organization Named Together as the Authors of a Work Made for Hire In some cases, an individual author uses an unincorporated organization to conduct his or her business (e.g, “Jackson Charles doing business as Charles Photography,” “Sophia Tomasco d/b/a Tomasco Studios,” “Lucas Fleming trading as Fleming Designs”). In such cases, the Office considers the individual and the organization to be the same legal entity If the individual author created the work on behalf of his or her own unincorporated organization, the individual should be named as the author of the work and the work made for hire box should be checked “no.” Example: • Pamela Bethel is a songwriter

who does business under the name “Patti Bell Music.” She submits an application naming Pamela Bethel as the author of Chapter 600 | 76 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices “music” and she responds to the work made for hire question by checking the box marked “no.” The registration specialist will register the claim As a general rule, the name of the author’s d.ba should not be provided in the Name of Author field/space. If the applicant wishes to include this information in the registration record, the d.ba should be provided in the Note to Copyright Office field The registration specialist will add the name of the author’s d.ba to the certificate of registration and the online public record In addition, the dba may be added as an index term if it is likely that users may use that term to search for the author’s works. Example: • Iskandar Hussain submits an application for a documentary. Iskandar names himself as the author with

the work made for hire question answered “no.” In the Note to Copyright Office field he states: “Iskandar Hussain, d/b/a I Can Do It Productions.” Iskandar appears to be the author and the organization named in the Note to Copyright Office field appears to be his unincorporated business. The registration specialist will add the name “I Can Do It Productions” to the registration record along with an annotation, such as: “Regarding author information: dba added from Note to CO” If an individual and an unincorporated organization are named together in the Name of Author field, the registration specialist may communicate with the applicant unless the application clearly states that the individual is “doing business as” (dba) or “trading as” the organization or that the unincorporated organization is “solely owned by” the individual. Examples: • An application is submitted for a video with “Arvo Robinson d.ba ActiviTEE” named as the author of this work and

the work made for hire box checked “no.” The name that appears in the copyright notice is “ActiviTEE Films” The registration specialist may register the claim, although the name of the d.ba should have been provided in the Note to Copyright Office field rather than the Name of Author field. An application names “Associated Designs (Virginia McDonald)” as the author of a fabric design. The work made for hire question is answered “yes.” A statement on the deposit copy reads “All designs created by Virginia McDonald.” The registration specialist may communicate with the applicant, because it is unclear whether the author is Virginia McDonald or Associated Designs. 615 615.1 615.1(A) Anonymous and Pseudonymous Works Anonymous Works What Is an Anonymous Work? A work is considered an anonymous work if “no natural person is identified as author” on the copies or phonorecords of the work. 17 USC § 101 If the author’s name appears on the copies or phonorecords, the

work is not an anonymous work, even if the author does not wish to reveal his or her identity in the registration record. In such cases, the applicant should provide the au- Chapter 600 | 77 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices thor’s real name in the application and the Anonymous box should not be checked. Likewise, a work does not qualify as an anonymous work based solely on the fact that the applicant cannot identify the person or persons who created the work. The statute implies that anonymous works are limited to works created by natural persons. Compare id (defining an “anonymous work” as “a work on the copies or phonorecords of which no natural person is identified as author”) with 17 U.SC § 302(c) (indicating that the term for an anonymous work may be based on the life of the author if his or her identity is revealed before the copyright expires). Therefore, the applicant should check the Anonymous box only if the author is a human

being. If the author is a corporation, limited liability company, partnership, or other legal entity, the author’s full name should be provided in the Name of Author field/space. If the applicant checks the Anonymous box or asserts that the author wishes to remain anonymous, the application may be questioned if the author appears to be a legal entity. 615.1(B) Completing the Application: Anonymous Works Applicants are encouraged to provide the author’s name in the application, even if the author’s name does not appear on the copies or phonorecords of the work. Providing the author’s name creates a clear record of authorship and ownership of the copyright, and it may extend or reduce the term of the copyright, depending on the circumstances. Ordinarily, the copyright for an anonymous work endures for a term of 95 years from the year of publication or 120 years from the year of creation, whichever expires first. 17 USC § 302(c) If the author’s identity is revealed in the

registration record, the copyright will endure until 70 years after the author’s death. Id; see also H.R Rep No 94-1476, at 137 (1976), reprinted in 1976 USCCAN 5659, 5753 If the applicant provides the author’s name in the application, the registration specialist will assume that the applicant intended to reveal the author’s identity. Therefore, the specialist will not ask the applicant to check the box marked “Anonymous,” even if the work satisfies the statutory definition for an anonymous work. If the author’s name does not appear on the copies or phonorecords of the work, the applicant is not required to provide the author’s name in the application. Instead, the applicant may leave the Name of the Author field/space blank and check the box marked “Anonymous.” (If the applicant fails to provide the author’s name and fails to check the Anonymous box in an online application, the application will not be accepted by the electronic registration system.) If the

applicant does not provide the author’s name, the applicant should identify the year that the work was created, and if the work has been published, the applicant should provide the date of publication. In addition, the applicant should provide the author’s nation of citizenship and/ or nation of domicile, even if the author’s name has not been disclosed. The Office may use this information to determine if the work is eligible for copyright protection in the United States. If the applicant fails to provide this information, the application may be questioned. If the author and the copyright claimant are the same individual and if that individual does not wish to provide his or her real name anywhere in the application, the applicant may state “Anonymous” in the Name of Author field/space, and may provide a pseudonym in the field/ spaces for the Name of Claimant, Rights and Permissions, Correspondent, and Certification. As described in Section 615.3 below, the information

provided on the application becomes part of the public record. Therefore, if the work satisfies the statutory definition of an anonymous Chapter 600 | 78 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices work and if the applicant does not wish to disclose the author’s real name, the applicant should check the Anonymous box instead of providing the author’s real name in the application. Example: • Joseph Cline is the author of a literary work titled Prime Color. Cline’s name did not appear on the first edition of the work. Instead, the first edition stated that the work was written “By Anonymous.” The US Copyright Office will register the first edition as an anonymous work if the applicant identifies the author as “Anonymous” and/or checks the Anonymous box. In the alternative, the Office would accept an application that names Joseph Cline as the author (regardless of whether the Anonymous box has or has not been checked). 615.2 615.2(A)

Pseudonymous Works What Is a Pseudonymous Work? A work is considered a pseudonymous work if “the author is identified under a fictitious name” on the copies or phonorecords of the work. 17 USC § 101 The statute implies that pseudonymous works are limited to works created by an individual. Compare id. (definition of “pseudonymous work”) with 17 USC § 302(c) (indicating that the term for a pseudonymous work may be based on the life of the author if his or her identity is revealed before the copyright expires). Therefore, the applicant should check the Pseudonymous box only if the author is a human being. If the author is a corporation, limited liability company, partnership, or other legal entity, the author’s full name should be provided in the Name of Author field/space. If the applicant checks the Pseudonymous box, the application may be questioned if the author appears to be a legal entity. A pseudonym must be a name. The US Copyright Office will not accept a number or

symbol as a pseudonym. The name of a performing group is not a pseudonym and should not be provided in the Name of Author field/space. Instead, applicants should provide the names of the individuals who created or performed the work described in the application, even if the copies or phonorecords of the work indicate that the work was created or performed by a performing group as a whole. Providing the names of the individual members of the performing group creates a clear record of authorship, given that the members of the performing group may change over time. For additional information concerning this issue, see Chapter 800, Section 802.8(D) and 8038(C) Similarly, the name of the author’s d.ba (“doing business as”) designation is not a pseudonym and should not be provided in the Name of Author field/space. If the applicant would like to include the name of a performing group or the name of the author’s d.ba in the registration record, that name should be provided in the Note

to Copyright Office field or in a cover letter. The registration specialist will add the name of the author’s performing group to the record as an index term. The specialist will include the name of the author’s d.ba on the certificate of registration and the online public record, and will add that name as an index term if it is likely that members of the public may use the d.ba to search for the author’s works. Chapter 600 | 79 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices Example: • An application is submitted to register a musical work. The authors are named on the application as Jerobi Manor, Brett Chargon, and Alaina Kraft. The pseudonymous box has not been checked. In the Note to Copyright Office field the applicant states: “Jerobi, Brett, and Alaina are doing business under the name “Three Times the Charm.” The registration specialist will add the name “Three Times the Charm” to the certificate and the online public record with an

annotation, such as: “Regarding author information: dba added from Note to C.O” In addition, the specialist may add that name to the record as an index term. 615.2(B) Completing the Application: Pseudonymous Works If the author’s real name appears anywhere on the copies or phonorecords (including the copyright notice) the work is not a pseudonymous work, even if the author does not wish to reveal his or her identity in the registration record and even if the author is generally known by his or her pseudonym. 17 USC § 101 (definition of “pseudonymous work”) In this case, the applicant should provide the author’s real name in the application and the Pseudonymous box should not be checked. Likewise, a work does not qualify as a pseudonymous work based solely on the fact that the applicant cannot identify the person or persons who created the work. Applicants are encouraged to provide the author’s real name in the application, even if the author’s name does not appear on

the copies or phonorecords of the work. In the alternative, the applicant may provide the author’s full name and the author’s pseudonym, provided that the application clearly indicates which is the real name and which is the pseudonym (e.g, “Samuel Clemens, whose pseudonym is Mark Twain”). Providing the author’s real name creates a clear record of authorship and ownership of the copyright, and it may extend or reduce the term of the copyright, depending on the circumstances. Ordinarily, the copyright for pseudonymous work endures for a term of 95 years from the year of publication or 120 years from the year of creation, whichever expires first. 17 USC § 302(c) However, if the author of the work is a natural person and if the identity of the author is revealed in the registration record, the copyright will endure until 70 years after the author’s death. Id; see also, H.R Rep No 94-1476, at 137 (1976), reprinted in 1976 USCCAN 5659, 5753 If the applicant provides the

author’s real name in the application, even though it does not appear anywhere on the deposit copy(ies), the registration specialist will assume that the applicant intended to reveal the author’s identity. In this situation, the specialist will not ask the applicant to check the box marked “Pseudonymous,” even if the work satisfies the statutory definition for a pseudonymous work. If a fictitious name appears on the copies or phonorecords of the work, the applicant is not required to provide the author’s real name in the application. Instead, the applicant may provide the author’s pseudonym in the field marked Pseudonym (in the case of an online application) or in the Name of the Author field/space (in the case of an online or paper application). In such cases, the applicant should check the box marked “Pseudonymous” to indicate that the applicant intends to register a pseudonymous work. (If the applicant fails to complete the Pseudonym field, and fails to check the

Pseudonymous box in an online application, the application will not be accepted by the electronic registration system.) Chapter 600 | 80 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices If the author does not wish to reveal his or her identity anywhere in the application, the applicant may put the author’s pseudonym in the fields/spaces for the Name of Claimant, Rights and Permissions, Correspondent, and/or Certification. As described in Section 615.3 below, the information provided on the application will become part of the public record. Therefore, if the work satisfies the statutory definition of a pseudonymous work and if the applicant does not wish to disclose the author’s real name, the applicant should provide the author’s pseudonym in the application instead of providing the author’s real name. Examples: • Steven Kingsley is the author of a literary work titled Running Woman, which was published by New American Library. Kingsley’s name did not

appear on this edition of the work. Instead, the author was identified as “Rick Buchman” The applicant names Rick Buchman as the author and claimant, and checks the Pseudonymous box. The Office will register the work as a pseudonymous work. In the alternative, the Office would accept an application that named the author as “Steven Kingsley, whose pseudonym is Rick Buchman” (regardless of whether the Pseudonymous box has or has not been checked). • An application is submitted for a poster containing artwork and text. The applicant named “Deacon of Chocolate City” as the author of the work and checked the Pseudonymous box. Dennis Rickman is named as the copyright claimant. Because the applicant did not provide a transfer statement, the registration specialist will assume that Dennis Rickman is the author of this work, that he created this work under his pseudonym, and that the applicant intended to reveal the author’s identity in the registration record. 615.2(C) Name

of the Author Omitted As a general rule, if the applicant checks the Pseudonymous box but fails to provide the author’s pseudonym or the author’s real name in the Name of Author field/space, the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant. In the alternative, the specialist may add the name that appears on the deposit copy(ies) if that name is clearly identified as the author’s pseudonym. 615.3 Privacy Concerns Because registration records are open to the public, an applicant should not disclose the author’s real name or address in an application for an anonymous or pseudonymous work if the author does not wish to make that information public. If the applicant discloses the author’s identity or the author’s address on the application, that information will appear on the certificate of registration. In addition, this information will appear in the online public record for the work, which may be accessed by anyone who searches for the work on the Office’s

website. The Office will not remove the author’s name from the registration record once a certificate of registration has been issued. Once a certificate of registration has been issued, the Office cannot remove the author’s name from the registration record or replace it with a pseudonym. The author, claimant, or their respective representatives may submit a written request to the Office to substitute the author’s current legal name for the name shown in the online public record (but not the offline public Chapter 600 | 81 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices record). To do so, the requesting party must submit an affidavit together with a court order granting the legal name change, and must pay the appropriate fee for this service. For more information on this procedure, see Chapter 1800, Section 1805. For a general discussion of privacy issues, see Chapter 200, Section 205. 616 616.1 Year of Author’s Birth and Death The Author’s Year of

Birth When completing an application to register a work with the U.S Copyright Office, the applicant will be asked to identify the year that the author was born. This information may be useful in identifying the author of the work. Providing the author’s year of birth is optional and an application will be accepted even if this portion of the application is left blank If the applicant provides the author’s year of birth, the registration specialist will not question that date unless it is obviously wrong (e.g, the date of birth provided is the current year) 616.1(A) Year of Birth Not Required for Works Made for Hire As discussed in Section 614.1(D), the author’s year of birth should not be provided if the work was created as a work made for hire. 616.1(B) Privacy Concerns Because registration records are open to the public, an applicant should not disclose the author’s year of birth on the application if the author does not wish to make that information public. If the

applicant discloses the author’s date of birth on the application, the year of birth will appear on the certificate of registration, which will be made available to the public upon request. In addition, the author’s year of birth will appear in the online public record for the work, which may be accessed by anyone who searches for the work on the Office’s website. For a general discussion of privacy issues, see Chapter 200, Section 205. 616.2 The Author’s Year of Death When completing an application to register a work with the U.S Copyright Office, the applicant will be asked if the author of the work is deceased. The applicant should provide a year of death if the work was created by a natural person who is deceased as of the date that the application is filed. If the work was created by two or more authors, the applicant should provide a year of death for each individual who is deceased. 17 USC § 409(2) The author’s year of death is required because the term of copyright

for certain unpublished works created before 1978 and for all works created after 1978 is based on the year that the author died (unless the work is a work made for hire, an anonymous work, or a pseudonymous work). 17 USC §§ 302(a), (b); 303(a) Chapter 600 | 82 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices As a general rule, the registration specialist will not question a year of death unless it is obviously wrong (e.g, a year of death occurring before the year that the work was created) If the applicant fails to provide a year of death in the application and if the information in the deposit copy(ies) or elsewhere in the registration materials indicate that the author may be deceased, the registration specialist may communicate with the applicant if that information could be used to determine the term of copyright. Examples: • An application is submitted for a photograph. Jane Freeman is named as the author and The Estate of Jane Freeman is named as the

copyright claimant. Because the author appears to be deceased, the registration specialist will ask the applicant to provide the author’s year of death. • An application for an autobiography titled Out of Australia names Georgette Firth as the author and states that the work was published in 2013. A statement on the deposit copies indicates that the author died in 2009 The registration specialist may communicate with the applicant to request the author’s year of death. • An application is submitted for a book of cartoons featuring Charlie Brown, Snoopy, and other characters from the “Peanuts” comic strip. The application names Charles Schulz as the author of the work and states that the work was published in 2013. The registration specialist is aware that Mr Schulz is deceased. Therefore, he or she will communicate with the applicant to request the author’s year of death. Applicants are strongly encouraged to provide the author’s year of death if the work was created

by a human being and if the work is being registered as an anonymous or pseudonymous work. The Office will accept an application if the applicant fails to provide this information, because the term of copyright for an anonymous or pseudonymous work may be calculated based on the year the work was created or the year the work was published. 17 USC § 302(c) Providing the author’s year of death is useful, because if the author’s real name is revealed in records maintained by the Office, the term of copyright will be calculated based on the year of the author’s death, rather than the year of creation or publication. Id; see also, HR Rep No 94-1476, at 137 (1976), reprinted in 1976 U.SCCAN 5659, 5753 By contrast, the applicant should not provide the author’s year of death if the work is being registered as a work made for hire. The year of death is not required in this situation, because the term of copyright for a work made for hire is based on the year the work was created or the

year the work was published. For a definition and discussion of anonymous works and pseudonymous works, see Sections 615.1 and 615.2 For a definition and discussion of works made for hire, see Chapter 500, Section 506 616.3 Completing the Application: Author’s Year of Birth and Death If the applicant chooses to provide the author’s year of birth in an online application, the applicant should provide only the author’s birth year. The online system will not accept an entry that contains the month, day, and year that the author was born. Likewise, if the author is deceased, Chapter 600 | 83 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices the applicant should list only the year the author died, rather than the month, day, and year of the author’s death. If the applicant chooses to provide the author’s year of birth in a paper application, the applicant should enter only the author’s birth year in the space marked Year Born. If the applicant gives the

month, day, and year of birth, the certificate of registration and online record will reflect only the year of birth. If the author is deceased, the applicant should list only the author’s year of death in the space marked Year Died. If the applicant gives the month, day, and year of death, the certificate of registration and online record will reflect only the year of death. If the applicant cannot determine the exact year of birth and/or death, the applicant may provide a good faith estimate qualified by the phrase “on or about,” “approximately,” or the like. When completing an online application, this statement may be provided in the Note to Copyright Office field. In a paper application this statement may be provided on the application itself or in a cover letter. In both cases, the registration specialist will add an annotation to the registration record, such as: “Regarding author information: applicant states author’s year of birth is ‘approximately 1952.’”

617 617.1 Citizenship and Domicile of the Author What Is the Author’s Citizenship and Domicile? The application should identify the citizenship and/or domicile of the author, regardless of whether the work described in the application is an anonymous work or a pseudonymous work, or whether the work was created by a natural person or a corporation, a limited liability company, a limited partnership, or a similar legal entity. 17 USC § 409(2), (3) This information may be used to determine whether the work is eligible for copyright protection under U.S copyright law Unpublished works are eligible for copyright protection in the United States, but published works may not be eligible if they are first published in, or by authors of, countries that have not entered into a copyright treaty with the United States. 17 USC § 104(a), (b) For information concerning these eligibility requirements, see Chapter 2000, Section 2003. The terms “citizenship” and “nationality” mean the same

thing. Specifically, they mean that the author is a citizen of a particular country, or that the author owes permanent allegiance to a particular country, even though he or she is not a citizen of that nation. The author’s domicile is the country where the author has a fixed and permanent residence, where the author intends to maintain his or her residence for an unlimited time, and whenever absent, where the author intends to return. Mere residence is not the equivalent of domicile and does not provide a basis for establishing eligibility. 617.2 Determining the Author’s Citizenship or Domicile for a Published Work If the work has been published, the applicant should provide the author’s citizenship and domicile as of the date that the work was first published. The fact that the author’s citizenship and/ or domicile may have changed after the work was first published is irrelevant. For example, if the author was a Tunisian citizen when the work was first published and

subsequently became Chapter 600 | 84 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices a French citizen, the applicant should identify the author’s country of citizenship as “Tunisia” rather than “France.” 617.3 Determining the Author’s Citizenship or Domicile for a Work Made for Hire If the work is a work made for hire the applicant should indicate the citizenship and/or domicile of the employer or the person or entity that ordered or commissioned the work. For example, if the work was created by an employee acting within the scope of his or her employment and the employer is a legal entity, the applicant should identify the nation in which the employer entity is incorporated or is domiciled (rather than the employee’s country of citizenship or domicile). If the work was specially ordered or commissioned as a work made for hire, the applicant should provide citizenship or domicile information for the party that ordered or commissioned the work

(rather than the individual who actually created the work). For questions regarding nationality of a legal entity, see Chapter 2000, Section 2005.5 For a definition and discussion of works made for hire, see Chapter 500, Section 506. 617.4 Determining the Author’s Citizenship or Domicile for Anonymous and Pseudonymous Works The applicant should provide the author’s citizenship or domicile, even if the author’s real name is not provided in the application and does not appear on copies or phonorecords of the work. If the applicant fails to provide this information in an online application, the application will not be accepted by the electronic registration system. If the applicant fails to provide this information on a paper application, the application will be questioned if there is no other basis for establishing that the work is eligible for copyright protection under U.S copyright law For a discussion of anonymous and pseudonymous works, see Sections 615.1 and 6152 617.5

Determining the Author’s Citizenship or Domicile for Compilations and Derivative Works If the work described in the application is a derivative work, the applicant should provide the citizenship and/or domicile of the author or authors who created the new material and/or revised material that appears in the derivative work. If the work described in the application is a compilation, the applicant should list the citizenship and/or domicile of the author or authors who selected, coordinated, and/or arranged the preexisting material or data that appears in the compilation. As a general rule, the applicant need not provide citizenship or domicile information for the author or authors who created any preexisting material or data that may appear in a derivative work or a compilation. For a general discussion of derivative works and compilations, see Chapter 500, Sections 507 and 508. Chapter 600 | 85 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 617.6 Completing

the Application: Citizenship and Domicile When completing the Authors screen in the online application the applicant should identify the nation of citizenship and domicile for each author named in the application. Specifically, the applicant should select one of the countries listed in the drop down menu under the headings Citizenship and Domicile. If the applicant fails to complete this portion of the application, the application will not be accepted by the electronic registration system. When completing a Single Application the applicant should provide this information on the screen marked Author. When completing a paper application, the citizenship and domicile for each author named in the application should be entered in space 2 in the spaces marked “Citizen of ” and “Domiciled in .” If the author is a citizen of or domiciled in more than one country, the applicant may provide the name of each country where the author is a citizen or is domiciled. In the

case of an online application, the applicant may provide the name of one country on the Author screen and the names of the other countries may be provided in the Note to Copyright Office field. In the case of a paper application, the name of each country may be provided on the application itself, on a continuation sheet, or in a cover letter. In the alternative, the applicant may provide the name of any country that establishes that the work is eligible for copyright protection under U.S copyright law. If the author is a stateless person, the applicant may select “no place” from the drop down menu in the online application or state “no place” or “stateless” in the paper application. If the citizenship and domicile for the author is unknown, the applicant may select “not known” from the drop down menu in the online application. When completing a paper application, the applicant may leave this portion of the application blank or may state “not known.” 617.7

Examination Guidelines: Citizenship and Domicile This Section discusses the U.S Copyright Office’s practices and procedures for examining the Citizenship and Domicile field/space in an online application or a paper application. 617.7(A) Citizenship and Domicile Unclear As a general rule, the registration specialist will accept a statement concerning the author’s citizenship or domicile, unless it is clearly inconsistent with the facts set forth in the registration materials or other information known to the U.S Copyright Office Examples: • The application states that the author John Germaine is a U.S citizen and that the work has been published, but fails to provide a nation of first publication. In the Note to Copyright Office field the applicant explains that the author has applied for citizenship, but has not been naturalized. The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant to determine if there is a basis for establishing that the work is eligible for

copyright protection under U.S law Chapter 600 | 86 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices • An application for a work by a prominent European politician states that the author is domiciled in the United States. The application also states that the work has been published, but fails to identify the nation of first publication. Because the author does not appear to be domiciled in the United States, the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant to determine if there is a basis for establishing that the work is eligible for copyright protection under U.S law If the applicant provides the name of a city, state, and country in the Citizenship or Domicile field/space, the registration specialist may include the name of the state and/or country but will remove the name of the city from the registration record. If the applicant provides the name of a city, state, territory, or other political subdivision rather than the name of a country,

the application will be accepted if the author’s nation of citizenship or domicile is obvious or if there is another basis for establishing that the work is eligible for copyright protection under U.S copyright law For example, if the applicant states that the author is a citizen of “Puerto Rico” or “Scotland,” the specialist will accept the application, although “United States” or the “United Kingdom” would be preferable. 617.7(B) Citizenship and Domicile in Multiple Countries If the application indicates that the author is a citizen of or domiciled in multiple countries, the names of the additional countries may be added to the registration record with an annotation, such as: “Regarding citizenship/domicile: application states Trinidad and the United States.” 617.7(C) Stateless Persons If the application states “no place” in the Citizenship or Domicile field/space, the registration specialist will register the claim without communicating with the

applicant on the assumption that the author is a stateless person. 17 USC § 104(b)(1) 617.7(D) Citizenship and Domicile Unknown If the applicant states that the author’s citizenship or domicile is “not known” or fails to complete this portion of the application, the application may be accepted if that information is provided elsewhere in the registration materials or if the registration specialist determines that the work is otherwise eligible for copyright protection under U.S copyright law Examples: • An application is submitted on Form PA for a musical work titled “Do You See What I See?” The application states that the work has been published in New Zealand, states that Beth McFarlane is the author of the work, and states that the author’s citizenship and domicile is “not known.” The registration specialist will register the claim without communicating with the applicant. Although the applicant failed to specify the author’s nation of citizenship or

domicile, the work is eligible for copyright protection under U.S law because it was published in a country that has entered into a copyright treaty with the United States. 17 USC § 104(b)(2) Chapter 600 | 87 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices • An application is submitted on Form VA for an unpublished work titled “I See You.” The application names Stu Millbrook as the author and claimant, but no information is given for the author’s domicile and citizenship. The registration specialist will register the claim without communicating with the applicant. Although the applicant failed to specify the author’s citizenship or domicile, the work is eligible for copyright protection under U.S law because the work is unpublished. 17 USC § 104(a) If there appears to be no basis for establishing eligibility, the specialist will communicate with the applicant. If the applicant is unable to identify the author’s citizenship and domicile, registration

may be refused if that is the only basis for establishing that the work is eligible for copyright protection under U.S law Examples: • The applicant fails to identify the author’s citizenship or domicile, but states that the work was first published in Afghanistan. The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant, because a work first published in that country may be ineligible for copyright protection in the United States. • The application states that the author’s citizenship and domicile and the nation of first publication are “not known.” The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant, because it is unclear whether the work is eligible for copyright protection in the United States based on the information provided. 618 Author Created / Nature of Authorship This Section discusses the procedure for asserting a claim to copyright in a work of authorship. 618.1 Asserting a Claim to Copyright To register a work of authorship the

applicant must file an application that clearly identifies the copyrightable authorship that the applicant intends to register, and the applicant must assert a claim to copyright in that authorship. The information provided in the application defines the claim that is being registered, rather than the information provided in the deposit copy(ies) or elsewhere in the registration materials. When completing an online application, the applicant should identify the copyrightable authorship that the applicant intends to register on the Authors screen in the field marked Author Created. (When completing the Single Application the applicant should provide this information on the Author screen in the field marked Author Created.) When completing a paper application, the applicant should provide this information on space 2 of the application under the heading Nature of Authorship. For guidance on completing this portion of the application, see Section 618.4 The U.S Copyright Office registers

claims to copyright in works of authorship As a general rule, the Office will issue one registration for each work that is submitted for registration. The registration specialist may examine the individual elements or components of a work to determine if the work as a whole contains a sufficient amount of creative expression to warrant Chapter 600 | 88 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices registration. However, the Office will not issue separate registrations for the constituent elements or components of a work of authorship. Likewise, the Office will not issue separate registrations to each author who contributed copyrightable expression to a work of authorship (except as contributions to a collective work or derivative works). As a general rule, the specialist will register a claim to copyright if the claim is clearly supported by the information provided in the application and the deposit copy(ies), and if the other formal and legal requirements

have been met. If the Author Created field or the Nature of Authorship space is completed incorrectly, the registration specialist may register the claim with an annotation if the specialist determines that the claim is clear from the registration materials as a whole. If the claim is unclear, the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant. The information provided in the Author Created field or the Nature of Authorship space will appear on the certificate of registration in a space marked Author Created and in the online public record in the field marked Authorship (regardless of whether the applicant submits an online application or a paper application). See Corrections and Amplifications of Copyright Registrations; Applications for Supplementary Registration, 63 Fed. Reg 59,235, 59,235 (Nov 3, 1998) (“The Copyright Office follows the general policy of requiring all authors and copyright claimants to supply information, consistent with 17 U.SC § 409, concerning

the authorship being claimed in the application for registration”) 618.2 Limiting the Claim to Copyright A registration only covers the new material that the author contributed to the work. As explained in Section 621, a registration does not extend to any unclaimable material that may appear in the work, namely: • Previously published material. • Previously registered material (including material that has been submitted for registration but has not been registered yet). • Material that is in the public domain. • Copyrightable material that is owned by another party (i.e, an individual or entity other than the copyright claimant). If the work contains an appreciable amount of unclaimable material, the applicant must exclude that material from the claim and limit the application to the new copyrightable material that the author contributed to the work. When completing an online application the applicant should provide this information on the Limitation of Claim screen;

when completing a paper application, the applicant should provide this information in spaces 5 and/or 6(a) and 6(b) of the application. For a discussion of the U.S Copyright Office’s practices and procedures for limiting a claim to copyright, see Section 621. Chapter 600 | 89 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 618.3 The Relationship Between the Author Created / Limitation of Claim Fields in the Online Application and the Relationship Between Spaces 2, 5, 6(a), and 6(b) in the Paper Application As a general rule, a claim to copyright is defined by the information provided in the Author Created field (in the case of an online application) or in the Nature of Authorship space (in the case of a paper application). Therefore, all of the copyrightable material that the applicant intends to register should be identified in these fields/spaces. When an applicant excludes material from the claim and limits the application to the new copyrightable material

that the author contributed to the work, the claim to copyright is defined by the information provided in the New Material Included field of the online application or the information provided in space 6(b) of the paper application as modified by the material excluded field/space. Therefore, all of the new copyrightable material that the applicant intends to register should be described in the New Material Included field or in space 6(b), as applicable. 618.4 Completing the Application: Author Created / Nature of Authorship This Section provides guidance on completing the Author Created field in the online application and the Nature of Authorship space in the paper application. For guidance on completing an application to register a derivative work, a compilation, or a collective work, see Sections 618.5, 618.6, and 6187 For guidance on completing an application to register specific types of literary works, works of the performing arts, and visual art works, see Chapters 700, 800, and

900. 618.4(A) The Online Application: Author Created Field When completing an online application, the applicant should identify the authorship that the applicant intends to register on the Authors screen by checking one or more of the boxes in the Author Created field that accurately describe the authorship that is owned by the copyright claimant. (When completing a Single Application the applicant should provide this information on the Author screen in the Author Created field.) The options for each type of work are listed below: Literary Works • • • • Text Computer program Photograph(s) Artwork Works of the Visual Arts • Photograph • 2-Dimensional artwork • Jewelry design Chapter 600 | 90 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices • • • • Sculpture Architectural Work Technical Drawing Map Works of the Performing Arts • • • • Music Lyrics Text Musical Arrangement Sound Recordings • Sound Recording Motion Pictures

and Audiovisual Works • • • • • • Entire motion picture Production Cinematography Direction Editing Script/Screenplay Single Issue of a Serial Publication • Compilation • Contribution(s) to a Collective Work (e.g, an article) For a definition and discussion of these terms, see Section 618.4(C) For representative examples that demonstrate how to complete the Author Created field, see Section 618.4(D) As a general rule, the U.S Copyright Office will accept any of these terms or any combination of these terms, provided that they accurately describe the copyrightable authorship being claimed. If the information provided in the Author Created field is contradicted by the information provided elsewhere in the registration materials, the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant. The applicant should check the boxes that describe the authorship created by the author(s) named in the application that is owned by the individual(s) or entity(ies) who are

named in the application as the copyright claimant(s). The applicant should not assert a claim in material created by authors who are not named in the application, material that is not owned by the copyright claimant, material that will not be submitted for registration, or material that does not appear in the work. Likewise, the applicant should not assert a claim in any material that is uncopyrightable or de minimis. For information concerning claims in uncopyrightable or de minimis material, see Sections 618.8(C) and 6188(D) Chapter 600 | 91 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices Example: • An application is submitted for a multimedia work that contains artwork, photographs, and a map. The copyright claimant owns the copyright in the artwork, but does not own copyright in the other material that appears in the work. In the Author Created field the applicant should check the box for “2-D artwork,” but should not check the boxes for

“photograph(s)” or “map.” Instead, the applicant should exclude that material from the claim using the procedure described in Section 621.8 The applicant should check the boxes that identify the specific type of authorship that the applicant intends to register. For example, if the applicant intends to register a screenplay or a computer program, the applicant should check the boxes marked “script/screenplay” or “computer program,” rather than the boxes marked “editing” or “text.” Likewise, if the applicant intends to register an atlas or a necklace, the applicant should check the boxes marked “map” or “jewelry design,” rather than the boxes marked “sculpture” or “2-D artwork.” If the terms provided in the checkboxes do not fully describe the copyrightable authorship that the applicant intends to register, the applicant should provide a more specific description in the “Other” field. Examples: • The applicant intends to register the

introduction to a travel guide. The applicant may assert a claim to copyright in this authorship by checking the box marked “text” in the Author Created field or by stating “text of introduction” in the Author Created / Other field. • The applicant intends to register a short story which was published on pages 59–77 of an anthology. The applicant may assert a claim to copyright in this authorship by checking the box marked “text” in the Author Created field or by stating “text of story appearing on pages 59–77” in the Author Created / Other field. • The applicant intends to register a fabric design. The applicant may assert a claim to copyright in this authorship by checking the box marked “2-D artwork” in the Author Created field or by stating “fabric design” in the Author Created / Other field. • The applicant intends to register the artwork that appears on the surface of a handbag. The applicant may assert a claim to copyright in this authorship

by checking the box marked “2-D artwork” in the Author Created field or by stating “artwork applied to handbag” in the Author Created / Other field. • The applicant intends to register some of the photographs that appear in a coffee table book. The applicant may assert a claim to copyright in this authorship by checking the box marked “photograph(s)” in the Author Created field or by stating “some photographs” in the Author Created / Other field. • The applicant intends to register a comedy sketch. The applicant may assert a claim to copyright in this authorship by checking the box marked “script/ screenplay” or by stating “comedy sketch” in the Author Created / Other field. Chapter 600 | 92 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices • The applicant intends to register a ballet. The applicant may assert a claim to copyright in this authorship by stating “choreographic work” in the Author Created / Other field. Currently,

the total amount of text that may be provided in the Author Created / Other field is limited to 100 characters. If more space is required, the applicant should provide the additional information in the Note to Copyright Office field. 618.4(B) Paper Applications: Nature of Authorship Space When completing a paper application, the applicant should identify the authorship that is owned by the copyright claimant that the applicant intends to register. The applicant should not assert a claim in material that is not owned by the copyright claimant, material that was not created by the author(s) named in the application, material that will not be submitted for registration, or material that does not appear in the work. Likewise, the applicant should not assert a claim in any material that is uncopyrightable or de minimis. For information concerning claims in uncopyrightable or de minimis material, see Sections 618.8(C) and 6188(D) When completing a paper application using Form VA, the

applicant should check one or more of the boxes in space 2 that accurately describe the authorship that the applicant intends to register. When completing a paper application using Forms TX, PA, SR, or SE, the applicant should provide a brief statement that accurately describes the authorship that will be submitted for registration. This statement should be provided in space 2 of the application under the heading Nature of Authorship. If the applicant needs more space to provide a complete and accurate description of the claim, the applicant should complete and submit as many continuation sheets as necessary. The U.S Copyright Office may accept any of the terms listed below or any combination of those terms that are not redundant or duplicative (e.g, “text” and “computer program” when support for each term is nonexistent), provided that they accurately describe the copyrightable authorship being claimed. In some cases, the Office may accept variant forms of these terms If the

statement provided in the Nature of Authorship space is contradicted by the information provided in the deposit copy(ies) or elsewhere in the registration materials, the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant. For a definition and discussion of the following terms, see Section 618.4(C) For representative examples that demonstrate how to complete the Nature of Authorship space, see Section 618.4(D) Literary Works / Form TX • • • • Chapter 600 | 93 Text Photograph(s) Artwork Computer program revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices Works of the Visual Arts / Form VA. When completing a paper application using Form VA, the applicant should check one or more of the boxes in space 2 that accurately describe the authorship that the applicant intends to register. The options include: • • • • • • • • • 2-dimensional artwork Photograph(s) 3-dimensional sculpture Architectural work Jewelry design Map Technical

drawing Reproduction of work of art Text Works of the Performing Arts / Form PA • • • • • • Music Lyrics Text Musical arrangement Choreographic work Pantomime Sound Recordings / Form SR • Sound recording Motion Pictures or Audiovisual Works / Form PA • • • • • • • Entire motion picture Production Cinematography Direction Script Screenplay Audiovisual material Single Serial Issue (i.e, a single issue of a serial publication) / Form SE • Compilation • Contribution(s) to a collective work • Text Chapter 600 | 94 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices • Photograph(s) • Artwork 618.4(C) Recommended Terminology for Asserting a Claim to Copyright This Section provides a definition and discussion of the various terms that may be used to assert a claim to copyright in the Author Created field or the Nature of Authorship space. • Architectural work. This term may be used to describe a work consisting of the

design of a building, including the overall form as well as the arrangement and composition of spaces and elements in the design. By contrast, the blueprints or architectural plans for an architectural work should be described as a technical drawing A technical drawing can be used to support either (i) an architectural work, or (ii) pictorial or graphic authorship in a technical drawing (i.e, the design or plans themselves as distinct from the architectural work) For a discussion of the specific practices and procedures for registering technical drawings and architectural works, see Chapter 900, Sections 922 and 923. • 2-D artwork, 2-dimensional artwork. This term may be used to describe the authorship in a pictorial or graphic work. For example, it may be used to describe two-dimensional artwork appearing in paintings, drawings, collages, stencils, patterns, posters, calendars, games, commercial prints, labels, logos, packaging, and greeting cards. It may be used to describe

unanimated drawings and graphics that appear on a website or computer screen (If the drawings or graphics are animated, the applicant should use the term audiovisual work to describe the work.) The term 2-D artwork may be used to describe two-dimensional drawings or artwork that create the illusion of three-dimensions through the use of shading and perspective. The term 2-D artwork also may be used to describe two-dimensional artwork that has been applied to a useful article, such as designs reproduced on wallpaper, carpeting, floor tile, wrapping paper, clothing, textiles, lace, and other fabrics, or two-dimensional artwork that has been applied to a useful article, such as a chair, car, plate, or vase, provided that the artwork is separable from the useful article. For a discussion of the practices and procedures for registering specific types of pictorial and graphic works, see Chapter 900, Sections 908 through 922. For a discussion of the practices and procedures for registering

separable artwork that has been incorporated into a useful article, see Chapter 900, Section 924. • Artwork. This term may be used to describe the authorship in a pictorial or graphic work Specifically, the term may be used to describe two-dimensional artwork, including illustrative matter, such as drawings or other pictorial representations. Likewise, this term may be used to describe a chart, table, or graph, provided that the work contains a sufficient amount of pictorial or graphic authorship. • Cinematography. This term may be used to describe the authorship in a motion picture or other audiovisual work. Specifically, it may be used to describe the creative contribution to a joint work or a work made for hire of the individual or entity who composes the shots for a motion picture or other audiovisual work, operates the camera during filming or videotaping, and/or supervises any of the foregoing activities. For a discussion of the specific practices and procedures for

registering motion pictures and other audiovisual works, see Chapter 800, Sections 807 and 808. • Compilation / Compilation of . For a discussion of these terms and the specific practices and procedures for registering a compilation, see Section 618.6 Chapter 600 | 95 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices • Computer program. This term may be used to describe source code, object code, or other statements or instructions that are used in a computer to bring about a certain result, including both executable code and nonexecuting comments that may be included within the program. For a discussion of the specific practices and procedures for registering a computer program, see Chapter 700, Section 721. • Collective work. For a discussion of this term and the procedures for registering a collective work, see Sections 618.7 and 6187(A) • Contribution(s) to a collective work. For a discussion of this term and the procedures for registering a

contribution to a collective work, see Section 6187(B) • Direction. This term may be used to describe the authorship in a motion picture or audiovisual work It may also be used to describe the authorship in a dramatic work that is a joint work, a work made for hire, or a derivative work. Specifically, the term direction may be used to describe the creative contribution of the individual or entity that supervises and directs the entire cast and crew for a motion picture, an audiovisual work, or a dramatic work, including all technical and artistic aspects of the work. For a discussion of the specific practices and procedures for registering, dramatic works, audiovisual works, and motion pictures see Chapter 800, Sections 804, 807, and 808. • Editing. The term editing may be used to describe the authorship in a motion picture or other audiovisual work. Specifically, it may be used to describe the creative contribution to a joint work, a work made for hire, or a derivative work of

the individual or entity who selects the takes and shots from a motion picture or other audiovisual work, and splices them into sequences to achieve continuity and a desired dramatic, comedic, and/or thematic effect. For a discussion of the specific practices and procedures for registering motion pictures and other audiovisual works, see Chapter 800, Section 807 and 808. For information concerning editorial revisions in a literary work, see Chapter 700, Section 709.4 For editing involving a musical work, see Chapter 800, Section 8026(I) For digital editing in photography, see Chapter 900, Section 909.3 • Entire motion picture. This term may be used to describe the direction, production, editing, music, script, and cinematography in a motion picture. For a discussion of the specific practices and procedures for registering motion pictures, see Chapter 800, Section 808 • Jewelry design. This term may be used to describe two-dimensional or three-dimensional designs that have been

applied to rings, pendants, earrings, necklaces, and the like. For a discussion of the specific practices and procedures for registering jewelry designs, see Chapter 900, Section 908. • Lyrics. This term may be used to describe the words in a song or other musical composition For a discussion of the specific practices and procedures for registering lyrics, see Chapter 800, Section 802.9 If the lyrics are registered after being combined with music, the work must be registered as a work of joint authorship naming the joint authors and their respective contributions. • Map. This term may be used to describe a cartographic representation of a geographic area, including atlases, marine charts, relief maps, and globes. For a discussion of the specific practices and procedures for registering maps, see Chapter 900, Section 918 Chapter 600 | 96 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices • Music. This term may be used to describe the melody, rhythm, and/or

harmony of a musical composition. For a discussion of the specific practices and procedures for registering music, see Chapter 800, Section 802. If the music is registered after being combined with lyrics, the work must be registered as a work of joint authorship naming the joint authors and their respective contributions. • Musical arrangement. This term may be used to describe new or revised harmony that has been added to a preexisting melody or song. In such cases, the work must be registered as a derivative work. • Musical composition. This term may be used to describe the melody, rhythm, and/or harmony of a musical composition. • Photograph(s). This term may be used to describe photographic images, photographic illustrations, photographic prints, and photographic slides It also may be used to describe holograms For a discussion of the specific practices and procedures for registering photographs, see Chapter 900, Section 909. • Production. This term may be used to

describe the authorship in a motion picture or other audiovisual work. A motion picture generally embodies the contributions of many persons whose efforts are brought together to make a cinematographic work of authorship. The term production may be used to describe the contribution of an individual or entity that plays a direct, creative role in planning, organizing, and controlling the various stages of the creation of a motion picture. For a discussion of the specific practices and procedures for registering motion pictures and other audiovisual works, see Chapter 800, Sections 807 and 808. • Reproduction of a work of art. This term may be used to describe a copyrightable reproduction of a preexisting pictorial, graphic, or sculptural work of art that has been produced through lithography, photoengraving, etching, molding, sculpting, or other creative processes. For a discussion of the specific practices and procedures for registering a reproduction of a work of art, see Chapter

900, Section 916. • Script / screenplay. These terms may be used to describe the authorship in a work of the performing arts. Specifically, they may be used to describe a written text that is used in the production or performance of a work that is presented on stage, screen, television, radio, the internet, or any other performance medium. As a general rule, these terms should not be used to describe a brief synopsis of a play, script, or screenplay or a treatment for a motion picture (i.e, a written description of a motion picture that is typically created before the creation of the shooting script). Instead, the term “synopsis” or “treatment” should be used to describe these types of works. • Sculpture, 3-dimensional sculpture. These terms may be used to describe the authorship in a work of fine art. Likewise, they may be used to describe the authorship in toys, dolls, scale models, and other three-dimensional sculptural works. They also may be used to describe

three-dimensional artwork that has been incorporated into a useful article, provided that the sculpture can be separated from the useful article. For a discussion of the specific practices and procedures for registering a separable sculpture that has been incorporated into a useful article, see Chapter 900, Section 924. • Sound recording. This term may be used to describe a series of sounds that have been recorded in a particular medium, such as a recording of musical sounds that have been captured in a Chapter 600 | 97 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices compact disc or mp3 file. Specifically, the term sound recording may be used to describe the creative contribution of an individual who performed the sounds that are fixed in a particular recording. If more than one performance is fixed in the sound recording, the claim must be for joint authorship or a work made for hire. Likewise, the term sound recording may be used to describe the creative

contribution of the producer or sound engineer who recorded the sounds. A sound recording is separate and distinct from any work that may be embodied in the recording. For example, a song that is captured in a sound recording is a separate work from the recording of that song and a book that is captured in an audiobook is a separate work from the recording of that book. For a discussion of the specific practices and procedures for registering a sound recording, see Chapter 800, Section 803 • Technical drawing. This term may be used to describe diagrams illustrating scientific or technical information in linear form, such as architectural blueprints or mechanical drawings For a discussion of the specific practices and procedures for registering technical drawings, see Chapter 900, Section 922. • Text. This term may be used to describe books, periodicals, manuscripts, stories, poetry, or other nondramatic literary works. It may be used to describe textual material that accompanies

a pictorial, graphic, or sculptural work, such as comic strips, greeting cards, maps, commercial prints or labels, or the rules for a game. It also may be used to describe a play, a script, a screenplay, or a treatment for a motion picture, an audiovisual work, or other works of the performing arts. 618.4(D) Examples for Completing the Author Created Field and the Nature of Authorship Space This Section provides representative examples for completing the Author Created field in the online application, as well as the Nature of Authorship space in the paper application. • Online application for a novella. Author Created: text. • Online application for a travel book containing photographs and written descriptions of tourist attractions. Author Created: text, photograph(s). • Online application for a slide presentation containing text and photographs. Author Created: text, photograph(s). Author Created/Other: Audiovisual material. • Online application for a graphic novel.

Author Created: 2-D artwork. Author Created/Other: Text. • Online application for etched and raised design on the surface of a pocket knife. Author Created/Other: Etched and sculptural authorship applied to pocket knife. • Online application for a blueprint that depicts the specifications for a new product. Author Created: Technical drawing. Chapter 600 | 98 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices • Online application for the design of a house. Author Created: Architectural work. • Online application for a sound recording released on a CD containing liner notes, drawings, and photographs. Author Created: sound recording. Author Created/Other: text of liner notes, artwork, photographs (and possibly compilation of sound recordings). • Online application for a musical. Author Created: music, lyrics. Author Created/Other: script. • Online application for a multimedia kit containing text, illustrations, multiple sound recordings, and a video

presentation. Author Created: sound recording. Author Created/Other: text, artwork, audiovisual material. • Paper application for a treatment for a documentary. Nature of Authorship: treatment. • Paper application for an educational workbook containing lessons, illustrations, and photographs. Nature of Authorship: text, artwork, and photographs. • Paper application for a stuffed animal. Nature of Authorship: 3-dimensional sculpture. 618.5 Derivative Works A derivative work “is a work based upon one or more preexisting works, such as a translation, musical arrangement, dramatization, fictionalization, motion picture version, sound recording, art reproduction, abridgement, condensation, or any other form in which a work may be recast, transformed, or adapted.” 17 USC § 101 To register a claim to copyright in a derivative work the applicant should identify the new material that the author contributed to the work, as well as “any preexisting work or works that it is based

on or incorporates.” 17 USC § 409(9) By definition, a derivative work contains two types of authorship: • The authorship in the preexisting work(s) that have been recast, transformed, or adapted within the derivative work; and • The new authorship involved in recasting, transforming, or adapting the preexisting work(s). When completing an online application, the applicant should identify the new authorship that the applicant intends to register on the Authors screen. Specifically, the applicant should check one or more of the boxes that appear under the heading Author Created that accurately describe the new copyrightable material that will be submitted for registration. If none of these terms fully describe the new material that the applicant intends to register, the applicant should Chapter 600 | 99 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices provide a more specific description in the field marked Other. For guidance on completing this portion of

the application, see Section 618.4(A) When completing a paper application, the applicant should provide this information in space 2 under the heading Nature of Authorship. For guidance on completing this portion of the application, see Section 6184(B) Derivative works often contain previously published material, previously registered material, public domain material, or material owned by a third party, because by definition, they are based upon one or more preexisting works. 17 USC § 101 (definition of “derivative work”) If a derivative work contains an appreciable amount of unclaimable material, the applicant should limit the claim to the new copyrightable material that the author contributed to the work using the procedure described in Section 621.8 For representative examples that demonstrate how to complete the Author Created field and the Nature of Authorship space in an application to register a derivative work, see Section 621.8(E) 618.6 Compilations A compilation “is a

work formed by the collection and assembling of preexisting materials or of data that are selected, coordinated, or arranged in such a way that the resulting work as a whole constitutes an original work of authorship.” 17 USC § 101 A compilation may contain several distinct forms of authorship. There may be selection authorship involved in choosing the material or data that will be included in the compilation There may be coordination authorship involved in classifying, categorizing, ordering, or grouping the material or data. In addition, there may be arrangement authorship involved in determining the placement or arrangement of the material or data within the compilation as a whole. A registration for a compilation may cover each type of authorship if that authorship is sufficiently creative, but it does not cover any preexisting material or data that appears within the compilation unless that material (i) is copyrightable, (ii) is owned by the copyright claimant, and (iii) is

specifically claimed in the application. Likewise, it does not cover any preexisting material or data that has been previously published or previously registered, or any material that is in the public domain. 17 USC § 103(b) To register a claim to copyright in a compilation the applicant should identify the new material that the author contributed to the work and should specify the preexisting material or data that was selected, coordinated, and/or arranged (e.g, “selection and arrangement of data” or “compilation of sound recordings”) 17 USC § 409(9) When completing an online application, the applicant should provide this information on the Authors screen in the field marked Other. Specifically, the applicant should provide a brief statement that (i) identifies the preexisting material or data that appears in the compilation and (ii) specifies whether the author selected, coordinated, and/or arranged that material or data. Currently, the total amount of text that may be

provided in the Author Created / Other field is limited to 100 characters. If more space is required, the applicant should provide the additional information in the Note to Copyright Office field. Chapter 600 | 100 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices When completing a paper application, the applicant should provide a brief statement in space 2 under the heading Nature of Authorship that identifies the authorship that the applicant intends to register. As a general rule, if the applicant states “compilation of ” and specifies the preexisting material or data that appears in the work, the registration specialist may register the claim, provided that the selection, coordination, and/or arrangement authorship that the applicant intends to register is clearly evident from the deposit copy(ies). Examples: • Online application for a literary work containing a selection of thirty-five poems by William Butler Yeats written between 1896 and

1916 and coordinated based on theme, symbolism, and meter. Author Created/Other: Compilation of poems by W.B Yeats • Online application for a sound recording containing a selection of fifty big band recordings produced in Chicago and coordinated based on performing group, featured artist, instruments, and recording medium. Author Created/Other: Compilation of big band sound recordings. • Online application for a literary work containing a selection of 10,000 statistics from the 1995-2000 major league baseball seasons, coordination of statistics by team, player, and position, and arrangement of statistics in charts, tables, and graphs. Author Created/Other: Compilation of major league baseball statistics. If the selection, coordination, and/or arrangement authorship is not clear from the deposit copy(ies), the registration specialist may communicate with the applicant, which will delay the examination of the claim. In such cases, the specialist may ask the applicant to provide a

more specific authorship statement, such as: • Selection of [specify the preexisting material or data that has been selected and specify the criteria used to select the material or data]. • Coordination of [specify the preexisting material or data that has been coordinated and specify the criteria used to classify, categorize, organize, or group the material data]. • Arrangement of [specify the preexisting material or data that has been arranged and specify the manner in which the material or data has been arranged]. As discussed above, a claim to copyright in a compilation may cover the preexisting material or data that appears in that work, provided it (i) is copyrightable, (ii) is owned by the copyright claimant, (iii) is specifically claimed in the application, and (iv) has not been previously published or previously registered. In no case may the claimant register material that is in the public domain. 17 USC §103(b) If the claimant owns the copyright in the preexisting

material or data and if the applicant intends to register that material with an online application, the applicant should check one or more Chapter 600 | 101 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices of the boxes that appear under the heading Author Created that accurately describe the preexisting material or data that will be submitted for registration. If none of these terms describe the material that the applicant intends to register, the applicant may provide a more specific description in the field marked Other or in the Note to Copyright Office field if additional space is required. In the case of a paper application the applicant should provide this information on the Nature of Authorship space. For guidance on completing this portion of the application, see Sections 618.4(A) and 6184(B) When an applicant registers a compilation together with the material contained therein, the registration covers the material that is copyrightable, as well as the

selection, coordination, and/ or arrangement of the material that appears in the compilation (regardless of whether that material is copyrightable or not). Examples: • An online application is submitted for a CD containing fifteen sound effects. In the Author Created field the applicant asserts a claim in the individual recordings by checking the box marked “sound recording.” In the Author Created / Other field the applicant asserts a claim in the compilation by stating “compilation of sound effects.” The registration specialist may register the claim • An online application is submitted for a CD-ROM containing a dozen clip art designs. A statement on the deposit copy reads “all designs created by Clipper Ships, LLC,” and all of the designs contain copyrightable artwork. In the Author Created / Other field the applicant asserts a claim in the compilation by stating “compilation of clip art designs.” The applicant asserts a claim in the individual designs by

checking the box marked “2-D artwork” in the Author Created field. The registration specialist may register the claim • An online application is submitted for a spreadsheet containing hundreds of fields. In the Author Created / Other field the applicant asserts a claim in the compilation by stating “compilation of data.” In the Note to Copyright Office field the applicant explains that the compilation contains a “selection of product names, product numbers, sales volume, and other information arranged in tabular form.” The applicant attempts to register the individual product names and numbers by checking the box marked “text” in the Author Created field. The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant The claim in the selection and arrangement of data is acceptable, but the claim in text is not, because product names and individual numbers are not copyrightable. • A paper application is submitted for an article that describes a method for

preparing tax returns. Three of the terms in the article are printed in bold typeface. The applicant asserts a claim in “text and compilation of highlighted terms” in the Nature of Authorship space. The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant The claim to copyright in the text of the article is acceptable, but the selection and arrangement of the highlighted terms is insufficient to support a claim in compilation. Compilations often contain unclaimable material, such as a selection of data that has been previously registered, a coordination of data that has been previously published, or an arrangement of data that is owned by a third party. If a compilation contains an appreciable amount Chapter 600 | 102 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices of unclaimable material, the applicant should exclude that material from the claim using the procedure described in Section 621.8 618.7 Collective Works A collective work “is a work,

such as a periodical issue, anthology, or encyclopedia, in which a number of contributions, constituting separate and independent works in themselves, are assembled into a collective whole.” 17 USC § 101 To register a claim in a collective work and/or a contribution to a collective work, the applicant should identify the authorship that the applicant intends to register. By definition, a collective work contains two types of authorship: • The compilation authorship in the collective work, which typically involves selecting, coordinating, and/or arranging a number of separate and independent works and assembling them into a collective whole; and • The authorship in the separate and independent works included within the collective work, such as an article that appears in a periodical issue, a poem that appears in an anthology, or a sound recording that appears on an album. An applicant may register a collective work together with the separate and independent works contained

therein (i) if the copyright in the contributions and the collective work are owned by the same claimant, and (ii) if the component works have not been previously published, previously registered, and are not in the public domain. Example: • Elizabeth Barrett wrote a short story, which was published in an anthology containing twelve stories by different authors. Alfred Pennington compiled the stories that appear in this anthology. Alfred obtained the right to use each story in the anthology, but he did not acquire the copyright in any of these contributions. Alfred may register the anthology as a collective work, but he is not entitled to register the copyright in any of the stories. Elizabeth may register the copyright in her story as a contribution to a collective work, but cannot register the copyright in the anthology as a whole. Collective works often contain unclaimable material, such as contributions that are not owned by the copyright claimant or contributions that were

previously registered or previously published. If a collective work contains an appreciable amount of unclaimable material, the applicant should exclude that material from the claim using the procedure described in Section 621.8 618.7(A) Asserting a Claim to Copyright in a Collective Work If the applicant intends to register the compilation authorship involved in creating the collective work as a whole, the applicant should describe that authorship on the Authors screen in the field marked Author Created/Other. Currently, the total amount of text that may be provided in the Author Created/Other field is limited to 100 characters. If more space is required, the applicant should provide the additional information in the Note to Copyright Office field. Chapter 600 | 103 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices When completing a paper application, the applicant should provide a brief statement in space 2 under the heading marked Nature of Authorship that

describes the compilation authorship that the applicant intends to register. As a general rule, if the applicant states “collective work” the registration specialist may register the claim. The specialist may register the claim if the applicant states “compilation,” provided that the selection, coordination, and/or arrangement authorship that the applicant intends to register is clearly evident from the deposit copy(ies). The specialist also may register the claim if the applicant states “compilation of ” and specifies the type of contributions that appear within the collective work. Example: • Online application for a journal containing dozens of articles, photographs, and illustrations. Author Created/Other: Compilation of articles, photographs, and illustrations. If the selection, coordination, and/or arrangement authorship is not clear from the deposit copy(ies), the registration specialist may communicate with the applicant. In such cases, the specialist

may ask the applicant to provide a more specific authorship statement using the guidelines set forth in Section 618.6 For representative examples that demonstrate how to complete the Author Created field and the Nature of Authorship space in an application to register a collective work, see Section 618.7(D) 618.7(B) 618.7(B)(1) Asserting a Claim to Copyright in a Contribution to a Collective Work Registering a Contribution without Registering the Collective Work as a Whole If the applicant intends to register a contribution to a collective work, but does not intend to register the collective work as a whole, the applicant should provide the title of the contribution in the Title of Work Being Registered field. The applicant should provide the title of the collective work in which the contribution appears in the Title of Larger Work field For guidance on completing these fields on the Titles screen, see Sections 610.2 and 6104(B) The applicant should assert a claim in that

contribution by checking one or more of the boxes in the Author Created field that accurately describes that contribution. For guidance on completing this field, see Section 618.4(A) To register a contribution to a collective work with a paper application, the applicant should identify the authorship that the applicant intends to register in space 2 under the heading Nature of Authorship. For representative examples that demonstrate how to complete the Author Created field and the Nature of Authorship space in an application to register a contribution to a collective work, see Section 618.7(D) note: If the claimant owns the copyright in the individual contribution(s) that appear within a collective work, but does not own the copyright in the collective work as a whole, the applicant Chapter 600 | 104 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices generally must submit a separate application for each contribution. In some cases, it may be possible to register

multiple contributions using the group option for contributions to periodicals or the group option for published photographs. For information concerning these options, see Chapter 1100, Sections 1115 and 1116. 618.7(B)(2) Registering a Collective Work and a Contribution to a Collective Work If the claimant owns the copyright in the collective work as a whole, and owns the copyright in one or more of the contributions that appear within that work, the applicant may register those contributions together with the collective work – but only if those contributions have not been previously published or previously registered. In no case may the claimant register a contribution that is in the public domain If the author of the collective work created the contributions that appear within the collective work, the applicant may register the contributions together with the collective work by providing the following information in the online application: • The applicant should provide the

title of the collective work as the “Title of work being registered.” For guidance on completing this portion of the Titles screen, see Section 6102 • The applicant should assert a claim in the collective work as a whole using the procedure described in Section 618.7(A) • The applicant should assert a claim in the contribution(s) by checking one or more of the boxes in the Author Created field that accurately describe the contribution(s) that the applicant intends to register. For guidance on completing this portion of the application, see Section 618.4(A) • The applicant may provide the titles of the contributions that were created by the author of the collective work, although this is optional. Specifically, the applicant may provide this information in the Contents Title field. For guidance on completing this portion of the Titles screen, see Section 610.4 Alternatively, the applicant may identify the contributions that were created by the author of the collective work

by providing the titles of those works in the New Material Included field and by disclaiming “all other contributions” in the Material Excluded field. Alternatively, the applicant may identify the contributions that are not owned by the claimant (if any) by providing the titles of those works in the Material Excluded field and by stating “all other contributions” in the New Material Included field. For guidance on completing this portion of the application, see Section 6218(D) If the claimant owns the copyright in the collective work and the individual contributions – but is not the author of those contributions – the applicant may register the contributions together with the collective work by providing the following information in the online application: • The applicant should provide the title of the collective work as the “Title of work being registered.” For guidance on completing the Titles screen, see Section 6102 • The applicant should assert a claim in

the collective work as a whole using the procedure described in Section 618.7(A) Chapter 600 | 105 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices • On the Authors screen the applicant may provide the name of the individual or entity that created the contribution in the field marked Individual Author or Organization, although this is optional. For guidance on completing this portion of the application, see Section 6139 • On the Claimants screen the applicant should provide an appropriate transfer statement in the Transfer field that explains how the claimant obtained the copyright in the contribution, such as “by written agreement with each contributor,” “by written agreement(s) with individual contributors not named on the application/certificate,” or the like. For additional guidance on providing a transfer statement, see Section 620.9 • The applicant may provide the titles of the contributions that have been transferred to the copyright

claimant, although this is optional. Specifically, the applicant may provide this information on the Authors screen in the field marked Author Created/Other. Currently, the total amount of text that may be provided in the Author Created/Other field is limited to 100 characters. If more space is required, the applicant may provide additional information in the Note to Copyright Office field. Alternatively, the applicant may identify the contributions that are not owned by the copyright claimant by disclaiming those titles in the Material Excluded field, and by stating “all other contributions” in the New Material Included field. For guidance on completing this portion of the application, see Section 6218(D) If the work contains contributions created by other authors, the applicant should repeat the process set forth in the bullets immediately above for each contribution that the applicant intends to register. To register a collective work and/or a contribution to a collective work

with a paper application, the applicant should identify the authorship that the applicant intends to register in space 2 under the heading Nature of Authorship. For representative examples that demonstrate how to complete the Author Created field and the Nature of Authorship space in an application to register a contribution to a collective work, see Section 618.7(D) 618.7(C) Asserting a Claim to Copyright in a Serial Publication This Section discusses the procedure for asserting a claim to copyright in a single issue of a serial publication. A serial publication is a work that is published or intended to be published at regular or stated intervals on an indefinite basis where each issue is numbered or dated consecutively, such as a newspaper, magazine, or other periodical. 37 CFR § 2023(b)(1)(v) If the applicant intends to register a single issue of a serial publication, then as discussed in Section 609.2(A), the applicant should select Single Serial Issue from the drop down menu

on the Type of Work screen. (When completing a paper application, the applicant should use Form SE, as discussed in Section 609.2(B)) If the applicant intends to register the issue as a whole, the applicant should check the “compilation” box that appears on the Authors screen in the Author Created field. (When completing a paper application, the applicant should state “compilation” on space 2.) This term may be used to register the authorship involved in selecting, coordinating, and/or arranging the content that appears within the issue. The registration will cover each type of author- Chapter 600 | 106 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices ship if it is sufficiently creative. But the registration will not cover the individual contributions that appear within the issue unless those contributions (i) are copyrightable, and (ii) are owned by the copyright claimant. Likewise, the registration will not cover any contributions that have been

previously published or previously registered, or any contributions that are in the public domain. 17 USC § 103(b) If the claimant owns the copyright in the issue as a whole, and owns the copyright in one or more of the contribution(s) that were first published in that issue, the claimant may register those contributions together with the issue as a whole. To do so, the applicant must check the boxes marked “Compilation” and “Contribution(s) to a collective work (e.g, an article)” (When completing a paper application, the applicant should state “compilation and contributions to a collective work” on space 2.) For representative examples that demonstrate how to complete the Author Created field and the Nature of Authorship space in an application to register a single serial issue together with the contributions that appear within that issue, see Section 618.7(D) If the applicant checks the box marked “Contribution(s) to a collective work” in the online application, but

fails to check the box marked “Compilation,” the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant to determine if the claimant owns the copyright in both the contributions and the issue as a whole. (Similarly, the specialist will communicate if the applicant asserts a claim in “text,” “artwork,” “photographs,” or “contributions to a collective work” on Form SE, but fails to assert a claim in the “compilation.”) If the claimant owns the copyright in the individual contribution(s), but does not own the copyright in the issue as a whole, the specialist generally will instruct the applicant to submit a separate application for each contribution. note: In some cases, it may be possible to register multiple contributions using the group option for contributions to periodicals or published photographs. For information concerning these options, and the group registration options for serials, daily newspapers, daily newsletters, see Chapter 1100, Sections

1109, 1110, 1111, 1115, and 1116. 618.7(D) Examples for Asserting a Claim to Copyright in a Collective Work and / or a Contribution to a Collective Work This Section provides representative examples for completing the Author Created field in an online application for a collective work and/or a contribution to a collective work (including a single issue of a serial publication). Examples: • Claim in collective work. An application is submitted for an anthology titled Fierce. Pride Publishers intends to register the authorship involved in selecting, coordinating, and arranging the text, photographs, artwork, and other contributions that appear in this anthology, but does not intend to register the contributions themselves. Type of work: Literary work. Title of work being registered: Fierce. Name of Author: Pride Publishers. Work made for hire: Yes. Author Created/Other: Compilation of text, photographs, and artwork. Chapter 600 | 107 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m :

Examination Practices • Claim in collective work and contributions to the collective work. HealthNet, Inc., created the newest issue of a journal titled Fitness, which contains hundreds of articles HealthNet’s employees created all of the content that appears in this journal. The company intends to register the compilation authorship involved in creating the journal as a whole, as well as the individual articles contained therein. Type of work: Single serial issue. Title of work being registered: Fitness, Vol. 7, No 77, Spring 2014 Name of Author: HealthNet, Inc. Work made for hire: Yes. Author Created: Compilation, Contribution(s) to a collective work (e.g, an article).” • Claim in collective work and contributions to the collective work. American Wildlife published a coffee table book titled Fauna that contains text, photographs, and maps. American Wildlife LLC selected and arranged all of the content that appears in the book. Most of the content was created by the

company’s employees. The rest of the content was created by freelancers who assigned the copyright in their respective contributions to the company. American Wildlife submits an application to register the coffee table book as a whole, together with the individual contributions created by its employees and the freelancers. Content created by American Wildlife employees: Type of work: Literary work. Title of work being registered: Fauna. Contents Title (Optional): [Titles of contributions created by American Wildlife’s employees]. Name of Author: American Wildlife LLC Work made for hire: Yes. Author Created: Text, photograph(s) Author Created/Other: Maps, compilation of text, photographs, and maps. Name of Claimant: American Wildlife LLC. Content created by freelance writers: Name of Author (Optional): [Name of freelance writer]. Work made for hire: No. Author Created/Other (Optional): [Title of the contribution created by the freelance writer; repeat for contributions created by

other freelance writers]. Name of Claimant: American Wildlife LLC. Transfer statement: “By written agreement with all contributors,” “by written agreement(s) with individual contributors not named on the application/ certificate,” or the like. • Claim in a single issue of a serial publication (including both the collective work and the contributions to the collective work). McCallister & Co publishes Driven magazine four times a year. The publisher intends to register the authorship involved in selecting, coordinating, and arranging the content that Chapter 600 | 108 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices appears in the latest issue. It also intends to register the individual articles, photographs, and other content created by its employees. The publisher does not intend to register the content which was created by third parties, such as the advertisements or content by freelance writers or photographers. Type of work: Single serial issue.

Title of work being registered: Driven, Vol. 12, Issue 2, Winter 2012 Name of Author: McCallister & Co. Work made for hire: Yes. Author Created: Compilation, Contribution to a collective work (e.g, an article). • Claim in a single issue of a serial publication (including both the collective work and the contributions to the collective work). Horologiste SA publishes a monthly magazine titled Chronometrics. The publisher’s employees create most of the articles, photographs, and other content that appears within each issue, as well as the coordination and arrangement of the issue as a whole. The March 2016 issue contains articles by a several freelance writers who assigned the copyright in their respective contributions to the publisher. Horologiste intends to register the compilation authorship involved in creating the March 2016 issue, as well as the individual contributions created by its employees and the freelance writers. Content created by Horologiste employees: Type of

work: Single serial issue. Title of work being registered: Chronometrics. Issue date on copies: March 2016 Name of Author: Horologiste S.A Work made for hire: Yes. Author Created: Compilation, Contribution(s) to a Collective Work (e.g an article) Author Created/Other (Optional): Text, photograph(s) Name of Claimant: Horologiste S.A Content created by freelance writers: Author Created: Contribution(s) to a Collective Work (e.g an article) Name of Claimant: Horologiste S.A Transfer statement: By written agreement(s) with individual contributors not named on the application/certificate. • Claim in a contribution to a collective work. Al Thomas intends to register his article “A Sneak Peek at the Breitling Navitimer,” which was published on page 16 of the March 2016 issue of Chronometrics magazine. He does not intend to register the magazine as a whole. Type of work: Literary work. Title of work being registered: “A Sneak Peek at the Breitling Navitimer” Title of larger work:

Chronometrics (March 2016, p. 16) Name of Author: Al Thomas. Chapter 600 | 109 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices Work made for hire: No. Author Created: Text. 618.8 Examination Guidelines: Author Created / Nature of Authorship This Section discusses the U.S Copyright Office’s practices and procedures for examining the Author Created field in an online application and the Nature of Authorship space in a paper application. 618.8(A) Authorship Unclear The authorship that the applicant intends to register should be clearly identified in the application and the claim to copyright in that authorship should be clearly stated. As a general rule, the U.S Copyright Office will accept any of the terms set forth in Section 618.4(C), any of the terms set forth in Sections 6186 or 6187 (in the case of an application to register a compilation, a collective work, or a contribution to a collective work), or any combination of those terms, unless the

information provided in the Author Created field or the Nature of Authorship space fails to describe the authorship that the applicant intends to register, fails to describe copyrightable authorship, or is contradicted by information provided elsewhere in the registration materials. The Office recognizes that many applicants are not familiar with the correct terms for completing an application or may make a mistake in completing the Author Created field or the Nature of Authorship space. As a general rule, “[a]ny substantive editing of authorship and/or new matter statements and/or material excluded from claim statements, will be done only after contacting the applicant for permission to amend the information” set forth in that portion of the application. Online Registration of Claims to Copyright, 72 Fed Reg 36,883, 36,887 (July 6, 2007). In some cases, the registration specialist may add an annotation to the record to clarify the copyrightable material that the author contributed

to the work. If the information provided in the Author Created field or the Nature of Authorship space is unclear and the issue cannot be addressed with an annotation, the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant. Examples of unclear terms that should be avoided in the application are discussed in Sections 618.8(A)(1) through 6188(A)(11) below 618.8(A)(1) Design As a general rule, the terms “2-D artwork” or “sculpture” should be used to describe the copyrightable authorship in a pictorial, graphic, or sculptural work, while the term “computer program” should be used to describe the copyrightable authorship in a computer program. The term “design” should not be used in the Author Created field or the Nature of Authorship space, because it suggests that the applicant may be asserting a claim in an idea, procedure, process, system, method of operation, concept, principle, or discovery. Chapter 600 | 110 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m :

Examination Practices Example: • An application is submitted for a book titled Redesign Your Backyard. The deposit copies contain text and two-dimensional artwork depicting landscape designs. The application states that the author created “text” and “2-D artwork.” The registration specialist will register the claim If an applicant uses the term “design” in the Author Created field or the Nature of Authorship space for a pictorial or graphic work, the registration specialist may register the claim, if that term is clearly being used to describe copyrightable artwork. Example: • An application is submitted for a book titled How to Make Stained Glass Windows. The deposit copies contain text and two-dimensional artwork depicting stained glass windows. The application states that the author created “text and designs.” The registration specialist may register the claim, because the term “designs” apparently refers to the two-dimensional artwork embodied in the

stained glass windows (although the term “2-D artwork” would be a more appropriate authorship statement). If the applicant appears to be asserting a claim in the ideas, concepts, or methods embodied in the work or the plan, scheme, layout, or format of the work, the registration specialist may communicate with the applicant. Alternatively, the specialist may add an annotation to the registration record, provided that the work contains a sufficient amount of copyrightable authorship to warrant registration. Examples: • An application is submitted for a computer program. In the Author Created/Other field the applicant states that the author created “source code and design for high speed retrieval tasks.” The registration specialist will ask for permission to remove the phrase “design for high speed retrieval tasks,” because it suggests that the applicant is attempting to register the ideas, concepts, or methods embodied in the program. • An application is submitted for

a motion picture. The applicant asserts a claim in “script, cinematography, set design.” The registration specialist may register the claim if the backdrops for the set contain copyrightable artwork. If the set merely consists of furniture and other physical props, the specialist will ask for permission to remove the term “set design,” because it suggests that the applicant is asserting a claim in the arrangement or layout of props. • An application is submitted for a sound recording. The cover of the CD contains a photograph and a list of credits, but no artwork The applicant asserts a claim in “sound recording, photography, and CD design.” The registration specialist will ask for permission to remove the term “CD design,” because it suggests that the applicant is asserting a claim in the layout or format of the CD cover. • An application is submitted for a book containing text, but no illustrations. The applicant asserts a claim in “text, design.” The term

“design” suggests that the applicant is attempting to register the overall format, layout, or appearance of the pages in the book. The registration specialist may ask the applicant Chapter 600 | 111 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices for permission to remove the term “design” or may register the claim with an annotation, such as: “Regarding authorship information: layout and format not copyrightable. Compendium 3133(E)” If the applicant appears to be using the term “design” to assert a claim in a useful article, a typeface, mere variations of typographic ornamentation, or other de minimis or uncopyrightable material, the specialist will communicate with the applicant. If the work is not separable from the useful article, or if it does not contain a sufficient amount of copyrightable authorship, the specialist will refuse registration. Examples: • An application is submitted for a bowl with a flower painted on the surface. The

applicant asserts a claim in “pottery design.” The term “design” suggests that the applicant is asserting a claim in the shape of the bowl, rather than the image of the flower. The registration specialist will ask the applicant for permission to remove this term from the application and replace it with an appropriate authorship statement, such as “2-D artwork.” • An application is submitted for a book containing text and photographs explaining how to knit hats. The applicant asserts a claim in “knitting designs” The term “design” suggests that the applicant is asserting a claim in the hats themselves, rather than the text and photographs. The registration specialist will ask the applicant for permission to remove this term from the application and replace it with an appropriate authorship statement, such as “text, photographs.” • An application is submitted for a motion picture. The applicant asserts a claim in “script, direction, cinematography, and

title design.” The registration specialist will ask for permission to remove the term “title design” because it suggests that the applicant is asserting a claim in typeface or typographic ornamentation. 618.8(A)(2) Game As a general rule, “text” should be used to describe the copyrightable authorship in a literary work, and “2-D artwork” or “sculpture” should be used to describe the copyrightable authorship in a pictorial, graphic, or sculptural work. To describe the copyrightable authorship in a videogame, the applicant should use the term “audiovisual material” or “computer program” depending upon what is being registered. For information concerning the practices and procedures for registering videogames, see Chapter 800, Section 8077(A) The term “game” should not be used in the Author Created field or the Nature of Authorship space, because it is not a form of copyrightable authorship. It also suggests that the applicant may be asserting a claim in

the idea for a game or the method or procedures for playing a game. Example: • An application is submitted for a card game titled The Cow Jumped Over the Moon. Victor Fuentes is named as the author of “text” and “artwork” The deck of cards contains copyrightable artwork, as well as the instruction for playing the game. The registration specialist will register the claim Chapter 600 | 112 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices If the applicant uses the term “game” to describe an audiovisual work, the registration specialist will ask the applicant to provide a more specific authorship statement, such as “audiovisual material.” If the applicant uses the term “game” to describe a literary work and/or a pictorial or graphic work, the registration specialist may register the claim if the work contains a sufficient amount of copyrightable authorship to warrant registration. In this situation, the specialist may add an annotation

indicating that the registration does not cover the uncopyrightable elements of the game. Examples: • An application is submitted for a work titled Geometry Puzzle, naming MB & Company as the author of a “board game.” The deposit copy contains copyrightable artwork The registration specialist may register the claim with an annotation, such as: “Regarding authorship information: idea for, and procedure or method of operation used in, game not copyrightable. 17 USC § 102(b). Registration extends to artwork deposited” • An application is submitted for a work titled Word Search, naming Jill and Michael Thomas as co-authors of a “spelling game and instructional text.” The deposit copy contains copyrightable text on flash cards. The registration specialist may register the claim with an annotation, such as: “Regarding authorship information: registration does not extend to uncopyrightable elements or aspects of game (idea for, and procedure or method of operation

used in, game). 17 USC § 102(b)” • An application is submitted for a videogame naming KuraSonix as the author of a “game.” The registration specialist will ask the applicant to provide a more specific description of the author’s contribution to this work, such as “audiovisual material” (if the applicant intends to register the audiovisual elements of the work) or “computer program” (if the applicant intends to register the source code that generates the videogame). • An application is submitted for a work naming MindStretch as the author of “game.” The deposit copy consists of a single Sudoku puzzle The registration specialist will refuse to register the claim because a single Sudoku puzzle contains no copyrightable expression. 618.8(A)(3) Packaging As a general rule, “text,” “2-D artwork,” and/or “photograph(s)” should be used to describe the copyrightable authorship that appears on product packaging. The term “packaging” should not be used

in the Author Created field or the Nature of Authorship space, because the packaging for a work in and of itself does not constitute copyrightable subject matter. Example: • An application is submitted for a CD and asserts a claim in “music, lyrics, text of liner notes, and photographs.” The CD insert contains publicity photo- Chapter 600 | 113 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices graphs and a short biography for each member of the band. The registration specialist will register the claim. If the applicant uses the term “packaging” alone, the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant to request a more appropriate authorship statement. If the copyrightable authorship on the packaging is stated in terms such as “text and artwork on packaging,” the specialist will register the claim. However, if the work does not contain a sufficient amount of copyrightable authorship to warrant registration, the specialist will refuse

to register the claim. Examples: • An application is submitted to register the “packaging” for a toaster. The packaging contains a photograph and a brief description of the product. The registration specialist will ask for permission to remove the term “packaging” and replace it with a more appropriate authorship statement, such as “text, photograph.” • An application is submitted for a CD. The claim is stated as “sound recording and packaging.” The CD insert contains the title of each track and a list of credits, but no artwork or text. The registration specialist will ask for permission to remove the term “packaging,” because the CD insert does not contain artwork or text to support a copyright claim. • An application is submitted to register the “packaging” for a candy bar. The packaging contains the name of the product and a list of the product’s ingredients, but no artwork or text. The registration specialist will refuse to register the claim.

618.8(A)(4) Author, Artist, Writer, Songwriter, Editor, and Other Professional Designations As a general rule, the applicant should use one or more of the terms set forth in Section 618.4(C) to describe the copyrightable authorship that the applicant intends to register. A term that merely describes the author or the author’s profession should not be used in the Author Created field or the Nature of Authorship space. Example: • Shane Banks is a professional songwriter. He submits an application for a ballad. In the Author Created field, he asserts a claim in “music, lyrics” The registration specialist will register the claim. If an applicant uses the term author, writer, songwriter, or the like in an application to register a literary work or a work of the performing arts, the registration specialist may register the claim if it is clear that the applicant is asserting a claim in text and/or lyrics. If the deposit copy(ies) contain another form of authorship, and if it is

clear that the author(s) listed in the application created all of the copyrightable content that appears in the work, the specialist may add an annotation to clarify the content of the deposit. Examples: • An online application for a musical work is submitted naming Jody Silverman as the sole author of the work. The Author Created/Other field states Chapter 600 | 114 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices “writer.” A statement on the deposit copy reads “music and lyrics by Jody Silverman” Since the copy contains lyrics and an additional authorship element, the registration specialist may register the claim with an annotation to clarify the content of the deposit, such as: “Regarding authorship information: copy states music and lyrics by Jody Silverman.” • A paper application is submitted on Form TX for an article naming Emily Gregor as the sole author of the work. The Nature of Authorship space reads “writer.” The copy only

contains text The specialist may conclude that the applicant is asserting a claim in the text and register the claim. 618.8(A)(5) Story, Story Idea, Story Concept, Story Line As a general rule, the applicant should use one or more of the terms set forth in Section 618.4(C) to describe the copyrightable authorship that the applicant intends to register. The applicant should not use the terms “story,” “story idea,” “story concept,” “story line,” or the like in the Author Created field or the Nature of Authorship space, because these terms do not clearly describe copyrightable authorship. Example: • An application is submitted for a children’s play that is based on the story of Hansel and Gretel. Harry Wheeler is named as the author of the “script” The registration specialist will register the claim. If an applicant uses the term “story” in the application, the registration specialist may register the claim if he or she determines that the applicant is

referring to the text that appears in the work (rather than the idea for the story). Example: • An application is submitted for a screenplay naming Johanna Eagen as the author of “story and dialog.” The registration specialist may register the claim, because the applicant is clearly asserting a claim in the text of this work (although “script” or “screenplay” would be a more appropriate authorship statement). If an applicant asserts a claim in a “story idea,” “story concept,” “storyline,” or the like, and if it is clear from the information provided in the deposit copy(ies) or elsewhere in the registration materials that the author contributed copyrightable authorship to the work, the registration specialist may register the claim. In addition, the specialist may add an annotation to the record stating that ideas are not copyrightable. Examples: • An application is submitted for a play naming James Beck as the author of “story idea and play” and Bob

Bobelli as the author of “play.” The statement in the application indicates that James and Bob contributed copyrightable authorship to this work. The registration specialist may register the claim with an annotation, such as: “Regarding authorship information: ideas not copyrightable. 17 USC § 102(b)” Chapter 600 | 115 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices • An application is submitted to register a proposal for a new television series. The applicant names Sonny Capaldi as the author of “text and story concept.” Sonny appears to be the author of all the authorship that appears in this work, because he is the only author named on the deposit copy. If the proposal contains a sufficient amount of copyrightable authorship to justify a claim in “text,” the claim may be registered with an annotation, such as: “Regarding authorship information: concept not copyrightable. 17 USC § 102(b) Registration extends to text deposited” If the

applicant uses the term “story,” “story idea,” “story concept,” “storyline,” or the like in the Author Created field or the Nature of Authorship space, and if this is the author’s sole contribution to the work, the specialist will communicate with the applicant if the author’s contribution appears to be uncopyrightable or de minimis. Examples: • An application is submitted for a screenplay naming Evelyn Lauder as the author of “text.” A statement on the deposit copy reads “screenplay by Evelyn Lauder, story by Charles Bogart.” The statement in the application indicates that Evelyn contributed copyrightable authorship to this work. The statement on the deposit copy suggests that Charles merely contributed the idea or concept for the story. Charles’s contribution is uncopyrightable and therefore should not be claimed in the application. The registration specialist will register the claim without communicating with the applicant • An application is

submitted for a play naming Samuel Loyer as the author of “story” and Pamela Judge as the author of “play.” A statement on the deposit copy reads “play by Pam Judge, based on concept by Sam Loyer.” The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant, because the statements given on the application and the deposit copy suggest that Samuel contributed only ideas or concepts to this work. 618.8(A)(6) Conceived, Conception As a general rule, the applicant should use one or more of the terms set forth in Section 618.4(C) to describe the copyrightable authorship that the applicant intends to register. The applicant should not use the term “conceived” or “conception” in the Author Created field or the Nature of Authorship space, because they suggest that the applicant may be asserting a claim in an idea, procedure, process, system, method of operation, concept, principle, or discovery. Example: • An application is submitted for a toy train that was

conceived, designed, and produced by HTM Models. The applicant asserts a claim in “sculpture” The registration specialist will register the claim. If an applicant uses the term “conceived,” “conception,” or the like to describe copyrightable authorship, the registration specialist may register the claim if it is clear that the term is being used as a synonym for “created” or “creation.” By contrast, the specialist may communicate with the applicant or may register the claim with an annotation if the applicant appears to be asserting a claim in uncopyrightable subject matter. Chapter 600 | 116 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices Examples: • An application is submitted for a musical work stating that the author “conceived words and music.” The registration specialist may register the claim without communicating with the applicant, because the word “conceived” is clearly being used as a synonym for “created” (although

“music” and “lyrics” would be a more appropriate authorship statement). • An application is submitted for a website. Molly Callaghan is named as the author of “artwork” and Sally Mavory is named as the author of “conception and text.” The statements in the application clearly indicate that Molly and Sally contributed copyrightable text and artwork to this website. The registration specialist may register the claim with an annotation, such as: “Regarding authorship information: concepts not copyrightable. 17 USC § 102(b)” • An application is submitted for a set of blueprints. Sloan Peterson is named as the author of a “technical drawing” and Cameron Rooney is named as the author of “conception.” A statement on the deposit copy reads “by Sloan Peterson.” The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant to determine if Cameron contributed copyrightable authorship to the work. If he contributed only ideas, concepts, or the like, the

specialist will ask for permission to remove all of Cameron’s information and the term “conception” from the registration record. 618.8(A)(7) Plot As a general rule, the applicant should use one or more of the terms set forth in Section 618.4(C) to describe the copyrightable authorship that the applicant intends to register. The applicant should not use the term “plot” in the Author Created field or the Nature of Authorship space, because it suggests that the applicant may be asserting a claim in the plan, scheme, or main idea for the work (which is not copyrightable), rather than the text, dialog, or other copyrightable expression that appears in the work. Example: • An application is submitted for a political thriller with a complicated plot. Tori Taylor is named as the author of the “text.” The specialist will register the claim If the applicant uses the term “plot” together with another form of copyrightable authorship in the Author Created field or Nature of

Authorship space, the registration specialist may register the claim without communicating with the applicant. In this situation, the specialist will add an annotation to the record stating that ideas are not copyrightable. Example: • An application is submitted for a script naming Patrick White as the author of “plot, text” and Jane Watson as the author of “text.” The deposit copy states “teleplay by Patrick White and Jane Watson.” The statement in the application indicates that Patrick and Jane contributed copyrightable text to this work. The specialist may register the claim with an annotation, such as: “Regarding authorship information: ideas not copyrightable. 17 USC § 102(b)” Chapter 600 | 117 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices If the applicant states that “plot” is the author’s sole contribution to the work, the specialist may register the claim if it is clear from the deposit copy(ies) that the author contributed

copyrightable authorship to the work. In this situation, the specialist will add an annotation stating that ideas are not copyrightable and describing the copyrightable material that appears in the work. Examples: • An application is submitted naming Gregory Putter as the author of a “screenplay” and Jackson Place as the author of the “plot.” A statement on the deposit copy reads “screenplay by Gregory Putter and Jackson Place.” The specialist may register the claim without communicating with the applicant, because the statement on the deposit copy indicates that Gregory and Jackson contributed copyrightable authorship to this work. In addition, the specialist will add an annotation, such as: “Regarding authorship information: ideas not copyrightable. 17 USC § 102(b) Copy states ‘screenplay by Gregory Putter and Jackson Place.’” • An application is submitted for a treatment for a motion picture naming Benjamin Barker as the author of “plot.” The deposit

copy states “by Ben Barker.” Benjamin appears to be the author of all the authorship that appears in this work, because he is the only author named in the deposit copy. If the treatment contains a sufficient amount of copyrightable text, the claim may be registered with an annotation, such as: “Regarding authorship information: ideas not copyrightable. 17 USC § 102(b) Registration covers text deposited” If the applicant names two or more authors in the application, and if the applicant asserts a claim in “plot,” the specialist will ask for permission to remove that term from the application if it appears that one of the authors contributed only ideas to the work. If there appears to be no other basis for a valid copyright claim, the specialist will refuse registration. Example: • An application is submitted for a dramatic work naming Rosa Smith as the author of “drama” and Terry Jones as the author of the “plot.” A statement on the deposit copy reads “by Rosa

Smith.” The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant, because the statements given on the application and the deposit copy suggest that Terry contributed only ideas to this work. If that is the case, the specialist will ask for permission to remove all of Terry’s information and the term “plot” from the registration record. 618.8(A)(8) Character(s) Although the copyright law does not protect the name or the general idea for a character, a work that describes, depicts, or embodies a particular character may be registered if it contains a sufficient amount of copyrightable authorship. As a general rule, the applicant should use one or more of the terms set forth in Section 618.4(C) to describe a work that describes, depicts, or embodies a particular character. The applicant should not use the term “character(s)” in the Author Created field or the Nature of Authorship space, because it suggests that the applicant is asserting a claim in the idea for a

character, rather than the text, artwork, or other copyrightable expression that appears in the work. Chapter 600 | 118 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices Example: • An application is submitted for a graphic novel depicting a character named Ultra Man. Kent Clark is named as the author of “text, 2-D artwork” The registration specialist will register the claim. If the applicant asserts a claim in a “character,” and if it is clear that the author contributed copyrightable two-dimensional artwork, the registration specialist may register the claim with an annotation. Otherwise, the specialist will communicate with the applicant Examples: • An application is submitted for a comic book depicting a character named the Arachnid. Parker Peters is named as the author of “2-D artwork, new character: super hero with spider powers” The registration specialist may register the claim with an annotation, such as: “Regarding authorship

information: characters as such not registrable. Registration based on deposited authorship describing, depicting, or embodying such character(s). Compendium 3134(I)” • An application is submitted for a screenplay depicting a private detective. The applicant names Waylon Bruce as the author of “script / screenplay” and Grace Dickinson as the author of “character.” The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant to determine whether Grace contributed copyrightable authorship to this work. If Grace contributed only the name or idea for the character, the specialist will ask for permission to remove all of Grace’s information and the term “character” from the registration record. 618.8(A)(9) Research As a general rule, the applicant should use one or more of the terms set forth in Section 618.4(C) to describe the authorship that the applicant intends to register. The term “research” should not be used in the Author Created field or the Nature of

Authorship space, because it does not specify copyrightable authorship. It also suggests that the applicant may be asserting a claim in the facts that appear in the work or the effort involved in collecting that information, rather than the expression that the author used to communicate facts or information. Example: • An application for a research paper on the Civil War is submitted naming Dr. Len Pittenger as the author of “text” The paper is based on the author’s extensive research at the Library of Congress. The registration specialist will register the claim. If the applicant asserts a claim in “research” together with another form of copyrightable authorship, such as “text,” the registration specialist may register the claim with an annotation indicating that “research” is not copyrightable. If the applicant mentions only “research” in the Author Created field or the Nature of Authorship space, the specialist may register the claim if it is clear from the

deposit copy(ies) that the author contributed copyrightable authorship to the work. In this situation, the specialist will Chapter 600 | 119 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices add an annotation stating that research is not copyrightable and identifying the copyrightable material that appears in the work. Example: • An application is submitted for a scientific paper. The applicant names Dr Anthony Schleicher and Dr. Ron Ayotte as the authors of “research” A statement on the deposit copy reads “by Drs Schleicher and Ayotte” If the work contains a sufficient amount of copyrightable text, the claim may be registered with an annotation such as: “Regarding authorship information: research itself not copyrightable. Compendium 7072 Registration extends to text deposited.” If the applicant uses the term “research” in the application, and if the applicant appears to be asserting a claim in the facts that appear in the work or the effort

involved in collecting those facts, the specialist (i) may communicate with the applicant, (ii) may add an annotation stating that that “research” (i.e, the underlying facts, concepts, and ideas) is not copyrightable and identifying the copyrightable material that appears in the work, or (iii) may refuse to register the claim Examples: • An application is submitted for a genealogy containing text and a list of various names and dates. The applicant states that the author “researched old courthouse records.” It appears that the applicant may be asserting a claim in facts or the effort involved in locating those facts, rather than the text and compilation of information that appear in the work. The registration specialist may communicate with the applicant or may register the claim with an annotation such as: “Regarding authorship information: research itself not copyrightable. Compendium 7072 Registration extends to text deposited” • An application is submitted for a

website containing old photographs with text explaining the significance of each image. The applicant states that Betsy Liu “researched photos and wrote explanation” and that Linda Chan “researched photos and provided information.” The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant. Betsy apparently selected the photographs and wrote the text, but it is unclear whether Linda contributed any copyrightable authorship. The specialist will ask the applicant for permission to replace Betsy’s authorship statement with a more appropriate term, such as “text and compilation of photographs.” If Linda contributed only facts or research, the specialist will ask for permission to remove all of Linda’s information from the registration record. 618.8(A)(10) Unclear Terms for Musical Works and Sound Recordings As a general rule, the terms “music” and/or “lyrics” should be used to describe the authorship in a musical work, and the term “sound recording,”

should be used to describe the authorship in a sound recording. The applicant avoid using the following terms in the Author Created field or the Nature of Authorship space, because they are unclear: • Song • Ballad Chapter 600 | 120 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices • Cancion • Vocals • Musical Instruments • Equalization • Remastering, reverberation, reprocessing, re-engineering • Rap, Hip Hop, Beats, Loops • Transcription, Narration, Spoken Words • Sound Effects For a discussion of U.S Copyright Office’s practices and procedures regarding these terms, see Chapter 800, Sections 802.9(E), 8039(D), and 8039(F)(3) 618.8(A)(11) Entire Work and Other Unspecific Terms As a general rule, the applicant should use one or more of the terms set forth in Section 618.4(C) in the Author Created field or the Nature of Authorship space. The applicant should not use the term “entire work,” because it does not identify the specific form

of authorship that the applicant intends to register. Instead, it suggests that the applicant may be asserting a claim in both the copyrightable and uncopyrightable elements of the work. It also suggests that the applicant may be asserting a claim in any previously published material, previously registered material, public domain material, or third party material that may be present in the work. Example: • An application is submitted for a textbook containing text, illustrations, photographs, as well as a CD insert containing videos and sound recordings. The publisher intends to register the entire copyrightable content of this work. The applicant states that the author created “text, 2-D artwork, photographs, sound recording, and audiovisual material.” The registration specialist will register the claim. If the applicant uses the term “entire work” or other unspecific description that is not listed in Sections 618.8(A)(1) through 6188(A)(10), the registration specialist may

ask the applicant to provide a more specific authorship statement. If the extent of the claim is clear from the deposit copy(ies) or the information provided elsewhere in the registration materials, the specialist may register the claim. In this situation, the specialist may add an annotation that describes the copyrightable content of the work or any relevant statements or information that appear in the deposit copy(ies). Examples: Entire work • An application is submitted for a sound recording naming Wrecked Records as the author of the “entire work.” The registration specialist will ask the ap- Chapter 600 | 121 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices plicant to provide a more specific authorship statement using one or more of the terms set forth in Section 618.4(C) • An application is submitted for a website, naming Magnetic Marketing as the author of the “entire work.” The registration specialist will ask the applicant to provide a more

specific authorship statement using one or more of the terms set forth in Section 618.4(C) • An application is submitted for a computer program that generates typeface designs, naming Fontography as the author of the “entire work.” The registration specialist will ask the applicant to provide a more specific authorship statement, such as “computer program.” • A law firm submits three applications to register a derivative work, a collective work, and a compilation on behalf of its clients. In each case, the application asserts a claim in the “entire work” The registration specialist will ask the applicant to provide a more specific authorship statement using one or more of the terms set forth in Section 618.4(C) In addition, the specialist may ask the applicant to complete the Limitation of Claim screen. Examples: Other unspecific authorship statements • An application is submitted for a literary work, naming St. John Sinclair as the author of “everything.” A

statement on the deposit copy reads “text and artwork by St. John Sinclair” The registration specialist may register the claim with an annotation, such as: “Regarding authorship information: copy states ‘Text and artwork by St. John Sinclair’” • An application is submitted for a work of the performing arts, naming Albert Ferraro as the author of “entire project.” The deposit copy contains music and a statement on the deposit reads “by Al Ferraro.” The registration specialist may register the claim with an annotation, such as: “Regarding authorhship information: copy contains music.” • An application is submitted naming Patricia Feinstein as the author of a “website.” The deposit copy contains text and two-dimensional artwork, and Patricia appears to be the sole author of this work. The registration specialist will ask the applicant to provide a more specific authorship statement, such as “text, 2-D artwork.” • An application is submitted for a

work titled Neurological Examination Simplified. Jason Mackray is named as the author of “a guide to help neurologists conduct quick and simple assessments.” A statement on the deposit copy reads “by Jason Mackray; illustrations by Susan Talbot.” The registration specialist may communicate with the applicant to determine if Susan’s name should be added to the application and to request a more specific authorship statement, such as “text” for Jason and “2-D artwork” for Susan. Chapter 600 | 122 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 618.8(B) Percentage of Authorship The U.S Copyright Office strongly discourages applicants from using numerical percentages to describe an author’s contribution to a work, such as “music by Joe Goldie (50%); lyrics by Pepe Greenwald: (50%).” As discussed in Section 619 a copyright may be registered by or on behalf of the author of the work or a person or entity that owns all rights under the copyright

that initially belonged to the author. 37 CFR § 2023(a)(3) Providing percentages in the Author Created field or the Nature of Authorship space may imply that the work is a joint work or it may raise a question as to whether the person or persons named in the application contributed copyrightable authorship to the work or whether the claimant owns all of the exclusive rights in the work. If the applicant provides a percentage in the Author Created field or the Nature of Authorship space, the registration specialist may register the claim without communicating with the applicant if it is clear that the authors named in the application contributed copyrightable authorship to the work and if the work appears to be jointly owned. The percentage is considered superfluous in this situation, because it presumably refers to some allocation among the co-authors or co-owners of the copyright, rather than an allocation of the ownership in the copyright as a whole. 618.8(C) Uncopyrightable

Material Claimed in the Author Created Field or the Nature of Authorship Space The material described in the Author Created field or the Nature of Authorship space must be copyrightable. If the applicant asserts a claim in uncopyrightable material, the US Copyright Office may ask for permission to remove that element from the application, or in appropriate cases, may add an annotation to clarify that the registration does not cover that element. If the claim appears to be limited to the uncopyrightable material, the Office will refuse to register the claim. For a general discussion of copyrightable and uncopyrightable authorship, see Chapter 300 (Copyrightable Authorship: What Can Be Registered). 618.8(C)(1) Deposit Copy(ies) Containing Copyrightable Authorship and Uncopyrightable Material If the deposit copy(ies) contain copyrightable authorship as well as uncopyrightable material, the registration specialist may register the claim without communicating with the applicant, provided

that the applicant does not claim the uncopyrightable material in the Author Created field or the Nature of Authorship space. Example: • An application is submitted for a work naming Judy Smith as the author of “2-D artwork.” The deposit copy contains an illustration and a short slogan to describe the illustration. The registration specialist will register the claim because the applicant asserted a claim in the copyrightable artwork, but did not assert a claim in the uncopyrightable short phrase. The specialist may add an annotation to identify the uncopyrightable material, such as: “Regarding new material included: slogan, typeface, typographic ornamentation not copyrightable. 37 CFR § 2021” Chapter 600 | 123 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 618.8(C)(2) Claim in Copyrightable Authorship and Uncopyrightable Material If the applicant asserts a claim in copyrightable material as well as material that is uncopyrightable under the

Copyright Act, Section 202.1 of the regulations, or this Compendium, the registration specialist may communicate with the applicant. In the alternative, the specialist may register the claim with an annotation indicating that the registration does not cover the uncopyrightable material. The annotation is intended to put the applicant, the claimant, the courts, and the general public on notice concerning the extent of the claim to copyright. Examples: • Claim in uncopyrightable material under Section 102(b). An application is submitted for a scientific paper containing text, graphs, and mathematical equations. The applicant asserts a claim in “text, illustrations, theory” If the work contains a sufficient amount of copyrightable authorship to support a claim in text and illustrations, the registration specialist may register the claim with an annotation, such as: “Regarding authorship information: ideas not copyrightable. 17 USC § 102(b)” • Claim in uncopyrightable

material under 37 C.FR § 2021 An application is submitted for a banner advertisement. Brian Metcalf is named as the author of “artwork, slogan, typeface.” If the work contains a sufficient amount of pictorial or graphic authorship to support a claim in artwork, the registration specialist may register the claim with an annotation, such as: “Regarding authorship information: slogan, typeface, typographic ornamentation not copyrightable. 37 CFR § 2021” 618.8(C)(3) Claim in Uncopyrightable Material: Deposit Copy(ies) Contain Copyrightable Authorship If the deposit copy(ies) contain copyrightable material, and if the applicant asserts a claim in material that is uncopyrightable, the registration specialist may register the claim with an annotation indicating that the registration does not cover that material. Alternatively, the specialist may communicate with the applicant, which will delay the examination of the claim. Examples: • Claim in uncopyrightable material under

Section 102(b). Amanda Reeves submits for registration a DVD depicting a doctor performing surgery with a voice over commentary. On the application, she describes the nature of authorship as “new process for suturing” The only credit on the footage reads “written, filmed and narrated by Dr. Amanda Reeves” Because the statement indicates that Amanda was the major author of the motion picture, the registration specialist may ask the applicant for permission to add “written, filmed and narrated” to the authorship statement and remove the reference to the suturing process. • Claim in uncopyrightable material under 37 C.FR § 2021 An application is submitted for an album titled The Hottest Hits from Tabasco & Tamale The application states that Chuck Tabasco created the “sound recording” and Janet Tamale created the “name of performing group.” A statement on the deposit copy reads, “C. Tabasco: production; J Tamale: vocals,” which indicates that Chuck and Janet

Chapter 600 | 124 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices contributed copyrightable authorship to this work. The registration specialist may ask the applicant for permission to remove the claim in the name of the performing group. Alternatively, the specialist may register the claim with an annotation, such as: “Name of performing group not copyrightable. 37 CFR 202.1 Copy states ‘C Tabasco: production; J Tamale: vocals’” • Claim in uncopyrightable material under the Compendium. An application is submitted for a proposal for a home renovation. Candace Cooper is named as the author of “text” and William Wilkinson as the author of “interior design.” A statement on the deposit copy reads “text by Candy Cooper; illustrations by Willy Wilkinson.” The statement on the deposit copy indicates that William contributed copyrightable authorship to this work. The registration specialist may ask the applicant to revise the term “interior

design” or may register the claim with an annotation, such as: “Regarding authorship information: interior design not copyrightable. Compendium 9232 Copy states ‘Text by Candy Cooper; Illustrations by Willy Wilkinson.’” 618.8(C)(4) Claim in Uncopyrightable Material: Acceptable Authorship Statement Used to Describe Uncopyrightable Material If the applicant uses a term in the Author Created field or the Nature of Authorship space that normally would be used to describe copyrightable authorship, such as “text” or “artwork,” and if it appears that the applicant is using that term to describe material that is uncopyrightable under the Copyright Act, Section 202.1 of the regulations, or this Compendium, the specialist may communicate with the applicant or may register the claim with an annotation indicating that the registration does not cover the uncopyrightable material. Examples: • Claim in uncopyrightable material under 37 C.FR § 2021 An application is submitted

for an album. The applicant asserts a claim in “music and text” The only text that appears in the deposit copy is the title of each track and a list of credits. The registration specialist may register the claim with an annotation, such as: “Regarding authorship information: liner notes consisting of a listing of titles and/or credits not copyrightable. 37 CFR § 2021” • Claim in uncopyrightable material under 37 C.FR § 2021 An application is submitted for a website. The applicant asserts a claim in “2-D artwork and text.” The deposit copy contains copyrightable artwork, but the only text is a calendar and a football season schedule. The registration specialist may register the claim with an annotation, such as: “Regarding authorship information: text is calendar and schedule of sporting events; not copyrightable. 37 C.FR § 2021” • Claim in uncopyrightable material under the Compendium. An application is submitted for an advertising brochure. The applicant

asserts a claim in “2-D artwork, text, map.” The deposit copy contains copyrightable artwork, text, and a simple outline of the state of Oregon. The registration specialist may communicate with the applicant to ask for permission to remove the reference to “map” or may register the claim with an annotation, such as: Chapter 600 | 125 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices “Regarding authorship information: map is outline map; not copyrightable. Compendium 918.2” 618.8(C)(5) Claim in Uncopyrightable Material: Works Created by Two or More Authors If two or more authors are named in the application, and if it appears that one or more of the authors did not contribute copyrightable authorship to the work, the specialist will ask for permission to remove that author’s name from the registration record. Examples: • Claim in uncopyrightable material under Section 102(b). An application is submitted for a screenplay naming Greg Lange as the

author of a “teleplay for reality show” and Jennifer Lange as the author of the “reality show format.” A statement on the deposit copy states “script by Greg Lange.” The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant and explain that the format for a television show is not copyrightable. Therefore, the specialist will ask for permission to remove all of Jennifer’s information and the reference to “reality show format” from the registration record. • Claim in uncopyrightable material under 37 C.FR § 2021 An application for a board game is submitted naming Mark Zwisler as the author of “2-D artwork” and Abacus LLC as the author of “text.” The only text that appears in the work is a scorecard for recording information. The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant and explain that blank forms are not copyrightable. Therefore, the specialist will ask for permission to remove all of the company’s information and the term

“text” from the registration record. • Claim in uncopyrightable material under the Compendium. An application is submitted for a medical textbook, naming, Dr. Arvind Desai as the author of “text” and MRI Associates as the author of “photographs.” The photographs in the work are medical x-rays. The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant and explain that x-rays generally are not copyrightable. Therefore, the registration specialist will ask for permission to remove all of the company’s information and the term “photographs” from the registration record. 618.8(C)(6) Claim in Uncopyrightable Material: Registration Refused If the applicant asserts a claim in material that is uncopyrightable under the Copyright Act, Section 202.1, or this Compendium, and if the claim appears to be limited to that material, the specialist will refuse registration. Examples: • Claim in uncopyrightable material under the Copyright Act. An application names two

individuals as the authors of a work described as a “sculpture.” The deposit copy is a photograph of a chair containing no separable pictorial, graphic, or sculptural authorship. The registration specialist will refuse registration, because the applicant is asserting a claim to copyright in a useful article Chapter 600 | 126 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices • Claim in uncopyrightable material under 37 C.FR § 2021 An application is submitted for a product label The applicant asserts a claim in “text, 2-D artwork” The deposit copy merely contains the name of the product in a stylized typeface and a list of ingredients. The registration specialist will refuse registration, because the applicant is asserting a claim to copyright in mere words, mere variations of typographic ornamentation, and a mere listing of ingredients • Claim in uncopyrightable material under this Compendium. An application is submitted naming Tamlyn Jackson as the

author of a “choreographic work.” The deposit copy is a DVD depicting various cheerleading routines. The registration specialist will refuse registration, because cheerleading routines do not qualify as copyrightable choreographic subject matter. 618.8(D) De Minimis Material Claimed in the Author Created Field or the Nature of Authorship Space The material described in the Author Created field or the Nature of Authorship space must be copyrightable. If the author’s contribution to the work is de minimis, the US Copyright Office may ask the applicant for permission to remove that claim from the application or may refuse registration. 618.8(D)(1) Deposit Copy(ies) Contain Copyrightable Authorship and De Minimis Material If the deposit copy(ies) contain copyrightable material as well as de minimis material, the registration specialist may register the claim without communicating with the applicant, provided that the applicant does not claim the de minimis material in the Author

Created field or the Nature of Authorship space. Example: • An application is submitted for a greeting card naming Salutations LLC as the author of “2-D artwork.” The deposit copy contains a drawing of a panda and the phrase “FONZ Helps UNESCO. Won’t You?” Because the applicant asserted a claim in the copyrightable artwork, but did not assert a claim in the de minimis text, the registration specialist will register the claim without communicating with the applicant. 618.8(D)(2) Claim in Copyrightable Authorship and De Minimis Material If the applicant asserts a claim in copyrightable authorship as well as de minimis material, the registration specialist generally will ask the applicant for permission to remove the claim in the de minimis material. In some cases, the specialist may register the claim with an annotation identifying the copyrightable material that has been submitted for registration and stating that the registration does not cover the de minimis material

claimed in the application. Examples: • An application is submitted for a work containing a poem and several watercolors. The applicant asserts a claim in “text, artwork” In the Note to Copyright Office field, the applicant explains that the poem was written by Lord Chapter 600 | 127 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices Byron and that she added the words “she,” “her,” and “woman” to change the gender of the title character. Because these revisions are de minimis, the registration specialist will ask the applicant for permission to remove the term “text” and to limit the claim to “artwork.” • An application is submitted naming Shirley Wonder as the author of “text, 2-D artwork.” The deposit is a poster containing a drawing of Jackie Robinson, together with the word “Pioneer” and the phrase “Here’s to You, Mr Robinson” Because the text is de minimis, the registration specialist will ask the applicant for

permission to remove the term “text” from the registration record. • An application is submitted for a musical work naming Susan Harris as the author of “words and arrangement.” The deposit copy contains only lyrics and chord symbols. The registration specialist may register the claim with an annotation, such as: “Regarding authorship information: Standard chord symbols not registrable. Compendium 8025(A)” 618.8(D)(3) Claim in De Minimis Material: Works Created by Two or More Authors If two or more authors are named in the application, and if it appears that one of the authors contributed de minimis authorship to the work, the specialist will ask for permission to remove that author’s information from the registration record. Example: • An application is submitted for a musical work, naming Bert Mendelson as the author of “music” and Alice Cambridge as the author of “lyrics.” The lyrics consist of the words “I love you” repeated over and over again.

The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant and explain that Alice’s contribution to this work appears to be de minimis. If Alice did not contribute any other authorship to the work, the specialist will ask for permission to remove all of Alice’s information and the term “lyrics” from the registration record. • An application is submitted for a scientific article naming Jason Macro as the author of “text” and Erin Abrunzo as the author of “artwork.” The work contains five pages of text with three figures containing de minimis authorship. Because the figures are de minimis, the registration specialist will ask the applicant for permission to remove all of Erin’s information and the term “artwork” from the registration record. • An application is submitted for a work naming Manuel Diego as the author of “technical drawing” and Marcia Mays as the author of “text.” The text consists of three short sentences that describe the

applicant’s idea for a new invention. Because the text is de minimis, the registration specialist will ask the applicant for permission to remove all of Marcia’s information and the term “text” from the registration record. Chapter 600 | 128 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 618.8(D)(4) Claim in De Minimis Material: Registration Refused If the registration specialist determines that the author’s contribution is de minimis, and if there appears to be no other basis for asserting a valid claim in the work, the specialist will refuse registration. Example: • An online application is submitted naming Jason Buck as author of “song lyrics.” The lyrics consist of familiar, short, repetitious phrases, such as “Happy Birthday To You.” The registration specialist will refuse registration For a general discussion of de minimis authorship, see Chapter 300, Section 313.4(B) 618.8(E) Variances Between the Information Provided in the

Application and Elsewhere in the Registration Materials As a general rule, the information provided in the Author Created field or the Nature of Authorship space should be consistent with the information that appears in the deposit copy(ies) or elsewhere in the registration materials. In some cases, the registration specialist may give greater weight to the information that appears in the application, if that information does not raise additional questions concerning the identity of the authors or the ownership of the copyright in the deposit copy(ies). Example: • An application is submitted for a musical work naming Sally Ember and Derek Thomas as the co-authors and describing each author’s contribution as “music, lyrics.” The deposit copy states “music by Derek Thomas; lyrics by Sally Ember.” The registration specialist may register the claim without communicating with the applicant, because the variance between the application and the deposit copy does not affect the

scope of the claim or the ownership of the copyright in the work. The specialist may communicate with the applicant if there is a substantial variance between the information provided in the Author Created field or the Nature of Authorship space and the statements that appear on the deposit copy(ies) or elsewhere in the registration materials. Examples: • A paper application is submitted on Form VA for a sketching workbook naming Mary Hill as the author and claimant of “2-D artwork and some instructional text.” The copyright notice on the workbook reads “ Professional Design, Inc” A statement on the deposit copy indicates Mary Hill is an employee of Professional Design, Inc. The registration specialist may communicate with the applicant, because there appears to be a substantial variance between the application and the statements given in the deposit copy and the copyright notice. • Prendergast Jones submits an application for a book titled Try Another Career. The

application states that Prendergast created the “text” and “photographs,” but a statement on the deposit copies reads “text by Prendergast Jones, photographs by Aloicious Gadfly.” The registration specialist may communicate Chapter 600 | 129 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices with the applicant, because there appears to be a substantial variance between the application and the deposit copies. 618.8(F) Material Claimed in the Author Created Field or Nature of Authorship Space Not Found in the Deposit Copy(ies) As discussed in Sections 618.4(A) and 6184(B), the applicant should only assert a claim in the authorship that will be submitted for registration. The applicant should not assert a claim in material that will not be submitted for registration or material that does not appear in the work. Example: • An application is submitted for a videogame titled Ant Farm. The applicant intends to register the audiovisual material that appears

on the CD-ROM, but does not intend to register the computer program embedded in the disc. In the Author Created field the applicant asserts a claim in “audiovisual material.” The applicant does not assert a claim in the computer program and does not submit any of the source code for that program. The registration specialist will register the claim. If the applicant asserts a claim in material that does not appear in the deposit copy(ies), the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant. Examples: • An application is submitted for a work consisting solely of text. The applicant has checked all of the boxes that appear in the Author Created field. The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant to request permission to limit the claim to “text” and to remove the other terms from the registration record. • An application is submitted for a short story naming Ananeka Kanihl as the author of “text” and “illustrations,” but the copy only

contains text. The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant to request permission to limit the claim to text and to remove the reference to illustrations. If the deposit copy appears to be incomplete, the specialist will communicate with the applicant. Examples: • An application is submitted for a work titled The Annunaki. In the Author Created field the applicant asserts a claim in the “entire motion picture.” The deposit copy consists of a written description, such as a screenplay or synopsis. The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant to determine whether the applicant is attempting to register the description alone or if the claim extends to a motion picture, and if the latter, whether a complete copy of the work has been submitted. • An application is submitted for a twenty-page catalog. In the Author Created field the applicant asserts a claim to copyright in the “text, 2-dimensional artwork.” The deposit copy contains text,

but no artwork The pages on the copy are numbered, but page numbers twelve and thirteen have not been Chapter 600 | 130 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices submitted. The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant to determine if a complete copy of the work has been submitted. • An application is submitted for a computer program. In the Nature of Authorship space the applicant asserts a claim to copyright in “computer program and screen displays” The deposit copy contains C++ source code, but no screen displays. The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant and explain that registration for this computer program covers any copyrightable screen displays generated by the program. Because the applicant expressly asserted a claim in screen displays, the specialist will ask the applicant to submit a copy of the screen displays for examination, or in the alternative, the specialist will ask for permission to remove

“screen displays” from the application. 618.8(G) Copyrightable Material in the Deposit Copy(ies) That Has Not Been Claimed in the Application As discussed in Sections 618.4(A) and 6184(B), the applicant should identify all of the copyrightable authorship that the applicant intends to register in the Author Created field or the Nature of Authorship space. Example: • Masai Designs intends to register a website containing articles, illustrations, photographs, and animated graphics. In the Author Created / Other field, the applicant asserts a claim in “text, 2-D artwork, photographs, and audiovisual material.” The registration specialist will register the claim In the case of a collective work or a derivative work the registration specialist may register the claim without communicating with the applicant if the deposit copy(ies) contain a substantial amount of copyrightable material that is not mentioned in the application and if the author of that material is not specified in

the deposit copy(ies). In this situation, the specialist will conclude that the applicant only intends to register the authorship that is specifically claimed in the application. If the work was created by a single author, and if there is a specific statement on the deposit copy(ies) indicating that the author created all of the copyrightable material that appears in the work, the specialist may communicate with the applicant or may add an annotation to the registration record if the copy(ies) contain a substantial amount of copyrightable material that has not been claimed in the application. Example: • An application is submitted for a musical work naming Greg Gardner as the author of “lyrics.” A statement on the deposit copy reads “music, lyrics, and performance by Greg Gardner.” The registration specialist may communicate with the applicant to determine whether the claim is intended to cover a musical work and a sound recording. Chapter 600 | 131 revised 09/29/2017

c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 618.8(H) Nature of Authorship Statement Omitted from a Paper Application If the applicant fails to complete the Nature of Authorship space in a paper application, the registration specialist may register the claim if the applicant completed spaces 6(a) and 6(b), provided that those spaces clearly identify the copyrightable material that the applicant intends to register and provided that the author named in the application appears to be the author of that material. In this situation, the claim to copyright is defined by the information provided in space 6(b) of the application. In all other cases, the specialist will communicate with the applicant to request an appropriate authorship statement. Examples: • An application is submitted on Form PA for a motion picture. The Nature of Authorship space is blank. Space 6(a) indicates that “preexisting footage” has been excluded from the claim, while space 6(b) indicates that the claim is

limited to “additional new footage.” The registration specialist will register the claim because the applicant clearly intends to register the “new footage” described in space 6(b). • An application is submitted on Form VA for a book of photographs. The Nature of Authorship space is blank. In space 6(a) the applicant lists the photographs that appear on pages 1, 5, 8, and 9 In space 6(b) the applicant lists the photographs that appear on pages 2, 3, 4, 6, 7, and 10. The registration specialist will register the claim because the applicant clearly intends to register the photographs listed in space 6(b). • An application to register an article is submitted on Form TX. Archie Crab and Shellie Carmack are named as co-authors of the work, but the Nature of Authorship space and space 6(b) have been left blank. A statement on the deposit copy states “written and illustrated by Archie Crab and Shellie Carmack” The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant

to request an appropriate authorship statement, such as “text, 2-D artwork.” 618.8(I) Nature of This Work This Section discusses the Nature of This Work space, which appears only in space 1 of Forms VA and PA. This space does not appear in the online application or other paper applications The U.S Copyright Office added this space to Forms PA and VA, because these applications may be used to register different categories of works. The Nature of This Work space should be used to describe the physical nature of the deposit copy(ies) (e.g, cartoon, model, globe, chart, puppet, hologram, etc) It should not be used to describe the authorship that the applicant intends to register. See Registration of Claims to Copyright, 65 Fed Reg 41,508, 41,508 (July 5, 2000) 619 Name of Claimant This Section discusses the U.S Copyright Office’s practices and procedures for identifying the copyright claimant for a work of authorship. Chapter 600 | 132 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u

m : Examination Practices 619.1 Who Is Eligible to Be a Copyright Claimant? An application for registration must identify the name and address of the copyright claimant. 17 U.SC § 409(1) For purposes of copyright registration, the “claimant” is either the author of the work that has been submitted for registration, or a person or organization that owns all the rights under copyright that initially belonged to the author of that work. 37 CFR § 2023(a)(3) A person or entity that owns one or more but less than all of the exclusive rights in a work is not eligible to claim ownership of the entire copyright in the records maintained by the U.S Copyright Office. The Office will not knowingly allow a party that owns less than all the exclusive rights in a work to register the copyright in his or her own name, because this would create a misleading and inaccurate public record and it would subvert the purpose of the registration system. Registration of Claims to Copyright, 43 Fed

Reg 965, 965 (Jan 5, 1978) 619.2 The Claimant Must Be an Individual or a Legal Entity The claimant named in an application must be a human being or a legal entity that is capable of owning property. As a general rule, the registration specialist will conclude that a legal entity is capable of owning property if that entity has been named as the copyright claimant, unless there is evidence to the contrary in the registration materials. 619.3 When Is an Individual or Legal Entity Eligible to Be a Copyright Claimant? An application naming the author as the copyright claimant may be filed at any time before the copyright expires. An individual or entity that owns all of the rights under copyright that initially belonged to the author may be named as the copyright claimant at any time during the life of the copyright, provided that the party owns all of the rights, whether by transfer, bequeath, or operation of law, as of the date that the application is received in the Office. If the

copyright is owned jointly by two or more parties, all of the owners must be listed in the application. 619.4 Claimants Distinguished from the Owner of a Copy or Phonorecord of the Work Ownership of the copyright in a work of authorship is distinct from ownership of the material object in which the work has been fixed. Ownership of a copy or phonorecord does not convey any rights in the copyright, nor does the transfer of ownership of the copyright convey property rights in any material object in which the work has been fixed (absent an agreement to that effect). 17 USC § 202 619.5 Claimants Distinguished from the Applicant and the Correspondent As discussed above, the author of the work or a person or entity that owns all of the rights in the copyright that initially belonged to the author are the only parties entitled to be named as a copyright claimant. However, an application to register a copyright claim may be filed by other parties. 37 CFR § 2023(a)(3), (c)(1) Chapter 600

| 133 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices The applicant is the party who certifies the application and submits it to the U.S Copyright Office. An application to register a copyright may be certified and submitted by any of the following parties: • The author of the work. • An owner of all the rights under copyright that initially belonged to the author of the work. • An owner of one or more but less than all of the exclusive rights in the work. • A duly authorized agent of any of the foregoing parties. No other parties are entitled to file an application for copyright registration. See 37 CFR § 202.3(c)(1) When completing an application, the applicant will be asked to provide the name, address, and other contact information for the person or persons who should be contacted if the registration specialist has questions or concerns regarding the application. This person is known as the correspondent. In most cases, the correspondent and the

applicant are the same person, because the correspondent typically certifies and submits the application. In all cases, the correspondent must be one of the following parties: • An author of the work. • An owner of all the rights under copyright that initially belonged to the author of the work. • An owner of one or more but less than all of the exclusive rights in the work. • A duly authorized agent of any of the foregoing parties. 619.6 Naming the Author as Claimant If the author owns all the rights under the copyright as of the date that the application is filed, the author must be named in the application as the copyright claimant. An application to register the copyright in the author’s name may be certified and submitted by the author or by the author’s duly authorized agent. In this situation, the author is considered the claimant and the author or the author’s agent is considered the applicant (dependent upon who certified and submitted the application.)

619.7 The Author May Be Named as Claimant Even if the Author Has Transferred the Copyright to Another Party The author may always be named as the copyright claimant, even if the author has transferred the copyright or one or more of the exclusive rights to another party, or even if the author does not own any of the rights under copyright when the application is filed. This is due to the fact that the author always retains a legal or equitable interest in the copyright, even if the copyright has been licensed or assigned to a third party. See generally Registration of Copyright: Definition of Claimant, 77 Fed Reg 29,257, 29,258 (May 17, 2012); Applications for Registration of Claim to Copyright Under Revised Copyright Act, 42 Fed. Reg 48,944, 48,945 (Sept 26, 1977) Chapter 600 | 134 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices If the author transferred rights to another party, an application to register the copyright in the author’s name may be certified

and submitted by any of the following parties: • The author. • An owner of all the rights under copyright that initially belonged to the author. • An owner of one or more but less than all of the exclusive rights that initially belonged to the author. • A duly authorized agent of any of the foregoing parties. In this situation, the author is considered the claimant, and the party who certified and submitted the application is considered the applicant. 619.8 Naming a Transferee as Claimant If a person or organization owns all the rights under copyright that initially belonged to the author, that party may be named in the application as the copyright claimant. An application to register the copyright in that party’s name may be certified and submitted by the author, the transferee, or their respective agents. In this situation, the transferee is considered the claimant, and the author, the transferee, or their respective agents are considered the applicant (depending on

who certified and submitted the application). 619.9 A Party That Owns One or More but Less than All of the Exclusive Rights May File an Application to Register a Copyright Claim, but Cannot Be Named as the Copyright Claimant A party that owns one or more but less than all of the rights that initially belonged to the author cannot register the copyright in that party’s own name (i.e, naming itself as the claimant) However, that party may certify and submit an application to register the copyright in the author’s name. In this situation, the author is considered the claimant, and the party that owns one or more of the exclusive rights is considered the applicant. See Registration of Copyright: Definition of Claimant, 77 Fed. Reg at 29,258 Although that party cannot be named as the copyright claimant, it may identify itself in the public record by recording the transfer or other document pertaining to copyright that transferred the exclusive rights from the author or the

author’s successor(s) in interest to that party. Id at n1 619.10 A Nonexclusive Licensee Cannot Be a Claimant A nonexclusive licensee is not entitled to register a copyright in the licensee’s own name, because by definition, a nonexclusive licensee does not own the entire copyright in the work. As a general rule, a nonexclusive licensee is not entitled to file a copyright application, because a nonexclusive licensee is neither the “copyright owner or [an owner] of any exclusive right in the work.” 17 USC § 408(a) (specifying the parties who “may obtain registration of the copyright claim”). A nonexclusive licensee may sign or submit an application to register the copyright only Chapter 600 | 135 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices if the licensee is a duly authorized agent acting on behalf of the author or a person or entity that owns all the rights under copyright that initially belonged to the author. 619.11 One Registration Per Work

A registration that has been issued to an author of a work or a person or entity that owns all the rights that initially belonged to the author secures the statutory benefits of registration to any other author or any other person or entity that owns one or more of the exclusive rights in that work. Consequently, the US Copyright Office will not knowingly issue more than one basic registration for the same work. 37 CFR § 2023(b)(11); Applications for Registration of Claim to Copyright under Revised Copyright Act, 42 Fed. Reg at 48,945 However, there are three exceptions to this rule: • If the work was previously registered as an unpublished work, the Office may issue another registration for the first published edition of that work, even if the published version “is substantially the same as the unpublished version.” 17 USC § 408(e); 37 CFR § 2023(b)(11)(i) • An author may seek a separate registration naming himself or herself as the copyright claimant, even though the

Office has already issued another registration that names a different individual or legal entity as the copyright claimant for that work. This is because an author is always able to file as a copyright claimant. 37 CFR § 2023(b)(11)(ii) • The Office may issue another registration for a work if an applicant alleges that an earlier registration for the same version of that work is unauthorized and legally invalid. 37 CFR § 202.3(b)(11)(iii) For a discussion of adverse claims, see Chapter 1800, Section 1808 For a general discussion of these exceptions, see Chapter 500, Sections 510.1 through 5103 619.12 Completing the Application: Name of Claimant When completing an online application, the applicant should provide the claimant’s name and address on the Claimants screen. (When completing the Single Application the applicant should provide this information on the Claimant screen.) If the claimant is an individual, the applicant should provide the claimant’s first and last name in

the fields that appear under the heading Individual Claimant. If the claimant is a legal entity, the applicant should provide the entity’s name in the field marked Organization Name. The claimant’s address should be provided in the fields marked Address 1, Address 2, City, State, Postal Code, Country. If the copyright is co-owned by two or more parties, the applicant should click “save,” and then repeat this process to add the names of each additional claimant. When completing a paper application on Forms TX, VA, PA, SR, or SE, the applicant should provide the claimant’s name and address in space 4 of the application in the space marked Copyright Claimant(s). If the copyright is co-owned by two or more parties, the applicant should provide the names and addresses of each claimant on space 4. If additional space is needed, the applicant may provide the name and address of each claimant on a continuation sheet submitted on Form CON. Chapter 600 | 136 revised 09/29/2017 c

o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices Applicants should provide the claimant’s full legal name. Providing a full legal name creates a clear record concerning the ownership of the copyright, and it limits the potential for confusion among claimants with similar names. The applicant may provide the claimant’s home address, business address, or any other address where the claimant maintains a fixed and permanent residence or place of business. If the applicant prefers not to provide this information (for instance if the claimant does not want a home address or phone number to appear in the registration record), the applicant may provide a post office box number where the claimant receives correspondence or an address for a third party agent who is authorized to receive correspondence on the claimant’s behalf. However, the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant if the applicant merely provides an email address or an online address rather than a physical

address. The name and address that the applicant provides on the application will appear on the certificate of registration, which will be made available to the public upon request. Likewise, the claimant’s name and address will appear in the online public record for the work, which can be accessed by anyone who performs a search for the work on the U.S Copyright Office’s website Once a certificate of registration has been issued, the Office cannot remove the claimant’s name from the registration record or replace it with a pseudonym. The author, claimant, or their respective representatives may submit a written request to the Office to substitute the claimant’s current legal name for the name shown in the online public record (but not the offline public record). To do so, the requesting party must submit an affidavit together with a court order granting the legal name change, and must pay the appropriate fee for this service. For more information on this procedure, see Chapter

1800, Section 1805. For a general discussion of privacy issues, see Chapter 200, Section 205. 619.13 619.13(A) Examination Guidelines: Name of Claimant Nicknames, First Names, Last Names, and Abbreviated Versions of the Claimant’s Name If the applicant provides a nickname or an abbreviated version of the claimant’s full name, the registration specialist may register the claim provided that the identity of the claimant is clear. If the claimant’s full name appears in the Name of Author field/space, on the deposit copy(ies), or elsewhere in the registration materials, the registration specialist may add that information to the registration record with an annotation, such as: “Regarding copyright claimant: claimant’s full name added by C.O from [Name of Author field, deposit copy, Note to Copyright Office, etc.]” The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant if the application merely provides the claimant’s given name or surname. Examples: • An

application names “Ian McCall a.ka Scooter McCall” as the author of music and lyrics. The Name of Claimant field reads “Scooter McCall” The registration specialist will register the claim without communicating with the applicant. Chapter 600 | 137 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices • An online application names “Mr. T” as the claimant for a sound recording In the Note to Copyright Office field the applicant explains that the claimant’s full name is Terry Thompson Tipley. The registration specialist will add the claimant’s full name to the registration record and add an annotation, such as: “Regarding copyright claimant: claimant’s full name added by C.O from Note to Copyright Office.” • A paper application names “Mr. Robin and Ms McCall” as co-authors and co-claimants for a bird watching guide. The registration materials do not contain any information concerning the claimants’ full names. The registration specialist

will communicate with the applicant 619.13(B) Initials An application may be accepted if the applicant provides initials in lieu of the claimant’s full name, provided that the claimant is known to the public by those initials or provided that the claimant’s full name is clearly given elsewhere in the registration materials. If it is unclear whether the initials identify the claimant, the registration specialist may communicate with the applicant. If the claimant’s full name appears elsewhere in the registration materials, the specialist may add that information to the application with an annotation, such as: “Regarding copyright claimant: claimant’s full name added by Copyright Office from copy.” Examples: • An application is submitted for a technical manual published by the General Motors Corporation. The application names “GM” as the author and claimant The application will be accepted • A publisher submits an application for a novel that names “J.KJ

Bowling” as the author and claimant. The application will be accepted • A paper application names “FIG” as the claimant. The cover letter explains that the claimant is currently doing business under the name “Fantastic Fruit Company,” that the claimant is planning to change its name to the “Fruit Is Good Company,” and that “FIG” will be used as the company’s trade name. Because it is unclear whether the initials identify the claimant to the public, the registration specialist will add the full name to the registration record, and add an annotation, such as: “Regarding copyright claimant: claimant’s full name added by Copyright Office from cover letter.” 619.13(C) Identifying the Author of a Pseudonymous Work as the Copyright Claimant If the applicant intends to register a pseudonymous work, and if the author of that work is named as the copyright claimant, the applicant generally should provide the author’s legal name in the Name of Claimant

field/space, even if the author is generally known by his or her pseudonym. The applicant also may provide the author’s legal name together with the author’s pseudonym in the Name of Claimant field/space, provided that the application clearly indicates which is the legal name and which is the pseudonym (e.g, “Samuel Clemens, whose pseudonym is Mark Twain”). Providing the claimant’s full legal name creates a clear record of ownership, and it may extend or reduce the term of the copyright. See 17 USC § 302(c) Chapter 600 | 138 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices If the author does not wish to provide his or her legal name anywhere in the application, the applicant may provide the author’s pseudonym in the Name of Claimant field/space, provided that the author checks the Pseudonymous box on the application and provided that the work meets the statutory definition of a pseudonymous work. A pseudonym must be a name. The US Copyright Office

will not accept a number or symbol as a pseudonym. For a detailed discussion of pseudonymous works, see Section 615.2 619.13(D) Identifying the Author of an Anonymous Work as the Copyright Claimant If the author and the copyright claimant are the same individual, the applicant should provide the author’s legal name in the Name of Claimant field/space, even if the applicant checks the box indicating that this is an “anonymous” work. If the author does not wish to provide his or her real name in the application, the applicant may state “anonymous” in the Name of Author field/space and may provide a pseudonym in the Name of Claimant field/space. If the applicant states “anonymous” in the Name of Claimant field/space, the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant unless the applicant provides the name of an actual person in the Rights and Permissions field. Examples: • An online application is submitted for the children’s book The Aaron Spates Museum

by Anonymous. The applicant has checked the box indicating that this is an anonymous work and the Name of Author field has been left blank. The Name of Claimant identifies the claimant as “Natalie Whitcomb;” that name also appears in the Rights and Permissions field; no transfer statement has been provided. The application will be accepted, because it appears that the anonymous author either provided her legal name or her pseudonym in the Name of Claimant field. • An online application is submitted for a comedy sketch The Errant Space Museum by Anonymous. The applicant checked the box indicating that this is an anonymous work and stated “Anonymous” in the Name of Author and Name of Claimant fields. The Rights and Permissions field is blank The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant and will explain that a legal name or a pseudonym should be provided in the Name of Claimant field. For a detailed discussion of anonymous works, see Section 615.1 619.13(E)

Two or More Names Provided in the Name of Claimant Field / Space If the copyright is owned by two or more co-claimants, the applicant should provide the name and address for each claimant. Chapter 600 | 139 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices When completing an online application, the applicant should enter the name of one claimant in the appropriate fields, click “save,” and then repeat this process for the other claimant(s). When completing a paper application, the applicant should provide the name of each claimant on space 4 of the application. If additional space is needed, the applicant may use a continuation sheet submitted on Form CON. The name of each claimant should be separated from each other with the word “and” or by listing each name on a separate line. If the applicant provides more than one name in the Name of Claimant field/space, the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant if the identity or number of the

claimants or co-claimants is unclear. 619.13(E)(1) Applications Submitted on Behalf of the Copyright Claimant As a general rule, the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant if the Name of Claimant field/space states that one party is asserting a copyright claim on behalf of another party. Example: • Roberta Timmons submits a paper application on Form VA to register a sculpture. Roberta is named as the author and the Name of Claimant space reads “Robinson Cruz, LLC on behalf of Roberta Timmons.” The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant, because it is unclear whether Robinson Cruz, LLC is the copyright claimant or a duly authorized agent who is submitting the copyright claim for Roberta. 619.13(E)(2) Two or More Names Separated by Conjunctions or Punctuations Marks in a Paper Application If the copyright is owned by two or more claimants, the applicant should use “and” between the claimants’ names in a paper application, rather

than “or” and rather than “and/or.” The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant if two or more names are provided in the Name of Claimant space together with the conjunction “or” (e.g, “John Smith or Jane Doe) or “and/or” (e.g, “John Smith and/or Jane Doe”) Examples: • An application is submitted on Form TX for a guide book on farmers’ markets, naming “Miriam Burchard and The House of Miriam, Inc.” as co-claimants The registration specialist will register the claim. • An application is submitted on Form VA for a comic strip. The application names Nancy Spring as the author of “2-D artwork” and Mario Van San as the author of “text.” The Name of Claimant space names “Nancy Spring and/ or Mario Van San” as the claimant(s). The registration specialist will ask the applicant to identify the party(ies) who own the copyright in this work. In the alternative, the name of each claimant may be separated by a comma, semicolon, or

slash (e.g, “John Smith, Jane Doe,” “John Smith; Smith Publishing,” “John Doe / Jane Smith”) The U.S Copyright Office discourages applicants from using hyphens, dashes, parentheses, or other Chapter 600 | 140 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices forms of punctuation in space 4 of the paper application (e.g, “John Smith (Smith Publishing),” “John SmithJane Doe”). As a general rule, the registration specialist may register a claim if each name appears to be complete, and it is clear that each name refers to a separate individual or legal entity, or if each name clearly refers to an author who is named in the application or elsewhere in the registration materials. The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant if it is unclear whether each name refers to a separate claimant. Examples: • A paper application is submitted for a song containing music and lyrics. “John Dalton; Mary Keating” are named as the

co-authors and co-claimants for this work. The application will be accepted • A paper application is submitted for a novel, naming an individual as the author of the work. The Name of Claimant space reads “Dole Publishing, Inc./Reynolds Corporation,” and an appropriate transfer statement has been provided. The application will be accepted, because the co-claimants appear to be separate legal entities. • A paper application is submitted for a book on how to apply to law school. “Martha Espinosa” is named as the author and “Martha Espinosa (Law School Solutions)” is named as the claimant. No transfer statement is given The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant to determine whether Martha and Law School Solutions are separate legal entities and, if so, whether the company has the right to be named as a co-claimant. 619.13(E)(3) Individual Name Listed Above or Below the Name of a Legal Entity in a Paper Application If the name of an individual

appears above the name of an organization in a paper application and if there are no other ambiguities in the registration materials, the registration specialist will conclude that the individual is the copyright claimant and that the name of the organization is part of the claimant’s address, regardless of whether the address contains the terms “c/o,” “in care of,” “attention,” or the like. If the name of an unincorporated organization appears above the name of an individual in a paper application and if there are no other ambiguities, the specialist will conclude that the organization is the claimant, regardless of whether the organization appears to be a sole proprietorship or whether the individual appears to be doing business under the name of that organization. Likewise, if the name of an incorporated organization appears above the name of an individual in a paper application and if there are no other ambiguities, the specialist will conclude that the organization

is the claimant and that the name of the individual is simply part of the claimant’s mailing address. Examples: • A paper application names Joan Donnelly as the author of an architectural work. The following information appears in the Name of Claimant space: Chapter 600 | 141 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices Joan Donnelly Hoosier Designs 456 Enterprise Avenue Gary, Indiana 46401 The registration specialist will register the claim without communicating with the applicant, because it appears that Joan is the sole copyright claimant and the name of the company is part of her address. • A paper application names Nancy Cross as the author of music and lyrics. The following information appears in the Name of Claimant space: Cross Music Publishing c/o Nancy Cross 234 Elm Avenue Chicago, Illinois 60018 The transfer statement indicates that the claimant obtained the copyright in this work “by written agreement.” The registration specialist will

register the claim, because it appears that the Cross Music Publishing is the sole copyright claimant and that the individual’s name is part of the company’s mailing address. • A paper application names Alexis Consulting, Inc., as the author and the work made for hire box is checked “yes.” The following information appears in the Name of Claimant space: Alexis Consulting, Inc. Robin Alexis 1001 Main Street Parole, MD 21401 The registration specialist will register the claim, because it appears that Alexis Consulting, Inc. is the sole copyright claimant and that the individual’s name is part of the company’s mailing address. 619.13(F) Group of Individuals Provided in the Name of Claimant Field / Space Applicants should provide the name(s) of the specific individual(s) or organization(s) that own the copyright in the work, even if the copyright is owned by a group of individuals. Example: • An application is submitted for a sound recording, naming George Baker,

Michael Warner, and Nathan Pike as the co-authors and co-claimants for the work. A statement on the deposit copy reads “Performed by the Busboys The Busboys are George Baker, Michael Warner, and Nathan Pike.” The registration specialist will register the claim Chapter 600 | 142 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices If the applicant names a group of individuals in the Name of Claimant fields/spaces (e.g, “The 2014 Graduating Class of Summer Glen Elementary School”), the applicant also should provide the name of each individual in the group. The registration specialist may register a claim without communicating with the applicant if the criteria for membership in the group are clearly defined, if the members of that group were clearly established as of the date that the application, deposit, and filing fee were received, and if the applicant provides the names of representative individuals in the application. If the membership of the group is

vague or ambiguous, or if the applicant fails to provide the names of any individuals, the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant. Examples: • An application is submitted for a sound recording naming Derek Sable, Angelo Armstrong, and Kenneth Rainey as the co-authors of the work. “Between Extremes” is named as the copyright claimant, but no transfer statement is provided. The deposit copy reads “performed by Between Extremes” The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant, because the identity of the copyright claimant(s) is unclear. • “The James Martin Family” is named as claimant for a genealogy. The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant because “family” is an ambiguous term and the members of this group are not clearly defined. • An application names “All Right Thinking People” as the claimant for an online message board. The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant, because

it is impossible to identify the members of this group. 619.13(G) Individual and Unincorporated Business Organization Provided in the Name of Claimant Field / Space If an individual and an unincorporated business organization are named together in the Name of Claimant field/space, the application may be accepted if it seems likely that the organization is merely a trade name or other assumed name for the individual. As a general rule, the registration specialist will conclude that an individual and an unincorporated organization are the same legal entity if the applicant clearly states that the individual is “trading as,” “doing business as,” or “also known as” the organization or that the unincorporated organization is “solely owned by” the individual. Likewise, the specialist will conclude that an individual and an unincorporated organization are the same legal entity if there is a clear relationship between the name of the individual and the name of the

organization (e.g, John Smith/Smith Publishing Company) The specialist will communicate with the applicant if the individual and the organization appear to be separate legal entities, if the organization appears to be a corporation, or if the relationship between the individual and the organization is unclear. Chapter 600 | 143 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices Examples: • An online application names “Dear John Publishing Company” as the author of a directory. The claimant is identified as “John Deering d/b/a Dear John Publishing Company.” The application will be accepted • An online application names “Ken Clark” as the author of a photograph. The applicant names “Ken Clark Studios, solely owned by Ken Clark” as the claimant. The application will be accepted • An online application names “Pauline Corelli” as the author of a jewelry design and “Corelli Designs” as the claimant. The registration specialist may register

the claim without communicating with the applicant. The author and the organization appear to be the same legal entity, because they both contain the name “Corelli.” • A paper application names “George Jefferson” as the author of a sound recording and “George Jefferson (Bentley Sound)” as the claimant. No transfer statement has been provided. The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant, because it is unclear whether George and Bentley Sound are the same legal entity. 619.13(H) Individual and Incorporated Organization Provided in the Name of Claimant Field / Space If an individual and an incorporated organization are named together in the Name of Claimant field/space, and if a transfer statement is not provided or is unclear, the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant to determine whether the individual or the organization is the copyright claimant. Examples of corporate designations and abbreviations that may trigger this

inquiry include: • Incorporated (Inc.) • Corporation (Corp.) • Limited (Ltd.) • Professional Corporation (PC) • Limited Liability Company (LLC) • Limited Liability Partnership (LLP) • Public Limited Company (plc) • Aktiengesellschaft (AG) • Aktibolag (AB) • Aktieselskab or Aksjeselskap (A/S) Chapter 600 | 144 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices • Akciová spoločnosť or Akciová společnost (a.s) • Besloten Vennootschap (B.V) • Gesellschaft mit beschränkter Haftung (GmbH, GesmbH, or Ges.mbH) • Société Anonyme, Sociedad Anónima, or Sociedad por Acciones (S.A) • Sociedad Anónima de Capital Variable (S.A de CV) • Sociedad Anónima Bursátil de Capital Variable (S.AB de CV) • Sociedad de Responsabilidad Limitada de Capital Variable (S. de R L de CV) Examples: • An online application is submitted naming Joan Dolan as the author of a book of poetry for teenagers and naming “Joan Dolan (Dolan Publishing Company,

Inc.)” as the copyright claimant The transfer statement reads “author is sole owner of Dolan Publishing.” Because an individual and a corporation are separate legal entities, the specialist will communicate with the applicant to determine whether Joan or Dolan Publishing own the copyright in this work. • A paper application is submitted naming Adelaide Drescher as the author of “2-D artwork” and naming “Adelaide Drescher d.ba Adelaide Dree AG” as the copyright claimant. No transfer statement is provided Because an individual and a corporate organization are separate legal entities, the registration specialist may communicate with the applicant to determine whether Adelaide or Adelaide Dree AG owns the copyright in this work. 619.13(I) Partnership Named as Claimant Typically, a partnership is an unincorporated business that is owned by two or more individuals. A partnership necessarily requires a written agreement stipulating that the partners are coowners of any

property held by the partnership, and works created by one of the partners are often considered the property of the partnership as a whole. Therefore, if an application names a partnership as the claimant without providing a transfer statement explaining how the partnership obtained ownership of the copyright, the application may be accepted if it is clear that at least one of the authors is a member of that partnership. Example: • An application is submitted for a song that names Jim Chapman, Jake Brody, and Jessie Adams as co-authors of music and lyrics. The application names “The Three J’s, a partnership” as the copyright claimant. The registration specialist may register the claim without communicating with the applicant, because it appears that the authors of this work are members of the partnership Chapter 600 | 145 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices 619.13(J) Trust or Estate Named as Claimant The Office will accept an application

that names a trust or estate as the copyright claimant if that entity is a legal or beneficial owner of the copyright. If an individual and a trust or estate are named together in the Name of Claimant field/space, the application may be accepted if it seems likely that the individual is a beneficiary or duly authorized agent of the trust or estate. For example, the registration specialist will accept an application that identifies an individual with one or more of the following terms: • Administrator • Administrator on behalf of • Beneficiary • Executor • Fiduciary • Personal Representative • Trustee If the applicant fails to provide a transfer statement explaining how the trust or estate obtained ownership of the copyright, the registration specialist may communicate with the applicant unless there is a clear relationship between the name of the author and the claimant. Examples: • An application is submitted for a screenplay naming “Riggins National Bank,

Trustee” as the sole copyright claimant. Riggins National Bank holds the copyright in a motion picture screenplay in trust for the investors in a motion picture venture. The transfer statement indicates that the trustee obtained the copyright in this work “by contract.” The registration specialist will register the claim. • An application is submitted for a sculptural work naming Joan Mason as the author and stating that the author died in 2006. The application names “Brian Mason, Administrator” as the copyright claimant, and the transfer statement indicates that the claimant obtained the copyright “by court order.” The registration specialist will register the claim. • An application is submitted for a painting. The application names Jonathan Edwards as the author of this work and states that the author died in 2008. ”The Estate of Jonathan Edwards” is named as the copyright claimant, but a transfer statement is not provided. The registration specialist may

register the claim without communicating with the applicant. The claimant appears to be the owner of the work by inheritance, because there is a clear relationship between the name of the author and the claimant. Chapter 600 | 146 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices • An application is submitted for an autobiographical work, naming Roseanne Smith as the author and stating that the author died in 2010. “The Roseanne Smith Living Trust” is named as the claimant, and there is no transfer statement. The registration specialist will communicate with the applicant, because it is unclear whether the trust still exists or whether it terminated upon the author’s death. • An application is submitted for a musical work naming Michael Stevens as the author and stating that the author died in 2012. “Hands Across the Oceans Trust” is named as the claimant, but no transfer statement is provided. The registration specialist will communicate with the

applicant to request an appropriate transfer statement. 619.13(K) Variances Between the Name Provided in the Name of Claimant Field / Space and Elsewhere in the Registration Materials As a general rule, the individual or legal entity that is identified in the application as the copyright claimant should be consistent with the ownership information that appears on the deposit copy(ies) or elsewhere in the registration materials. Ordinarily, the registration specialist will give greater weight to the information that appears in the Name of Claimant field/space. If appropriate, the specialist may add an annotation to the registration record to clarify the claimant’s name or to add information that appears on the deposit copy(ies) or elsewhere in the registration materials. The specialist will communicate with the applicant if the variance between the name provided in the Name of Claimant field/space is inconsistent with the ownership statements that appear on the deposit copy(ies) or

elsewhere in the registration materials. Example: • An application is submitted naming Maureen Hope Sullivan as the author and Maureen Sullivan Romagnoli as the copyright claimant. A statement on the deposit copies reads “by Maureen Romagnoli.” The registration specialist may register the claim because Maureen Sullivan appears to be the author’s maiden name or married name. The specialist may add an annotation to the record, such as: “Regarding author information: name appears on deposit copy as Maureen Romagnoli.” 619.13(L) Variance Between the Name Provided in the Name of Claimant Field / Space and the Copyright Notice As a general rule, the registration specialist will not communicate with the applicant if the name provided in the Name of Claimant field/space does not match the name provided in a copyright notice, if any. (A proper copyright notice was required for works published in the United States before March 1, 1989, but this requirement does not apply to

unpublished works, foreign works, or works published in the United States after that date.) However, the specialist may communicate, if the variance suggests that the individual or entity named in the application is not the correct copyright claimant. Examples: • An application for an unpublished work names Patrick Mink as the author and copyright claimant. The copy contains the following copyright notice: Chapter 600 | 147 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices “ 2003 Market Music Company.” The registration specialist may register the claim without communicating with the applicant, because the name that appears in the notice could be an alternative name for the copyright claimant, such as a “doing business as” designation. • An application for a published work names “Frank Music Company” as the author and copyright claimant. The deposit copies contain the following copyright notice: “ 2011 Excelsior Music.” The registration

specialist may register the claim without communicating with the applicant, because the name that appears in the notice could be an alternative name for the copyright claimant, such as an “also known as” designation. • An application is submitted for a children’s book. Gloria Nelson is named as the author of “text;” Frank Moore is named as the author of “illustrations.” Gloria Nelson is named as the sole copyright claimant. No transfer statement is provided. The book contains a copyright notice that reads “text Gloria Nelson; illustrations Frank Moore.” Because the claimant name on the application varies from the information provided in the copyright notice, the registration specialist may communicate with the applicant to determine who owns the copyright in the illustrations. 619.13(M) Statements Concerning the Claim to Copyright in the Name of Claimant Field / Space To register a work of authorship, the applicant should identify the work that will be

submitted for registration and the applicant should assert a claim to copyright in that material. As discussed in Sections 618 and 621, this information should be provided in the Author Created field, and if applicable, in the New Material Included field in the online application, or in space 2, and if applicable, in space 6(b) of the paper application. The Office strongly discourages applicants from providing this type of information in the Name of Claimant field/space or in the Transfer field/ space. Statements such as “John Smith: wrote words; Jane Doe: wrote music” or “John Smith owner of words; Jane Doe owner of words” may raise a question as to whether the claimant is an owner or co-owner of the copyright in the entire work or whether the claimant merely owns the copyright in a specific element of a collective work or derivative work. 619.13(N) Percentage of Copyright Ownership in the Name of Claimant Field / Space The U.S Copyright Office strongly discourages

applicants from providing percentages in the Name of Claimant field/space (e.g, John Smith 50%; Jane Doe one half share, etc) because this may raise a question as to whether the claimant owns the entire copyright in the work. 619.13(O) Owner of Copyright for a Limited Term The U.S Copyright Office will accept an application stating that the claimant owns all the exclusive rights in the work for a limited term or a limited period of time, if it is clear that the claimant owned the rights as of the date that the Office received the application, deposit, and filing fee. If it appears that the claimant did not own all the rights when the claim was received Chapter 600 | 148 revised 09/29/2017 c o m p e n d i u m : Examination Practices or if the claim was filed after the period of ownership expired, the registration specialist will communicate with the applicant. 619.13(P) Future and Contingent Interests An individual or legal entity that owns a future interest in the

copyright cannot be named as a copyright claimant. Likewise, an individual or legal entity who may obtain all of the rights under the copyright based upon a future contingency cannot be named as a copyright claimant. In the following examples, the registration specialist would accept an application that names “John Doe” or “John Doe Company” as the copyright claimant, but would ask for permission to remove the name of the party with only a future interest from the Name of Claimant field/space. Examples: • “John Doe, or upon his death, Mary Doe.” • “John Doe, and by will, Mary Doe.” • “John Doe, and after ten years, Sam Doe.” • “John Doe, or if she survives, Mary Doe.” • “John Doe Company or, should its corporate headquarters move to Iowa, Howard Doe Company.” 619.13(Q) Deceased Individual or Defunct Entity Named as a Claimant As a general rule, the claimant named in the application must be an individual or legal entity capable

Introduction to the Third Edition of the Compendium of U.S. Copyright Office Practices (2024)
Top Articles
Latest Posts
Recommended Articles
Article information

Author: Frankie Dare

Last Updated:

Views: 5556

Rating: 4.2 / 5 (53 voted)

Reviews: 92% of readers found this page helpful

Author information

Name: Frankie Dare

Birthday: 2000-01-27

Address: Suite 313 45115 Caridad Freeway, Port Barabaraville, MS 66713

Phone: +3769542039359

Job: Sales Manager

Hobby: Baton twirling, Stand-up comedy, Leather crafting, Rugby, tabletop games, Jigsaw puzzles, Air sports

Introduction: My name is Frankie Dare, I am a funny, beautiful, proud, fair, pleasant, cheerful, enthusiastic person who loves writing and wants to share my knowledge and understanding with you.